UBRMrrOFPMNKnN OCT 2 T 2003 THEOLOGICAL SEMINARY! DEC 1 6 192^ A CRITICAL EXPOSITION OF THE POPULAR "JIM Ad," SHOWING THAT ALLTMEWARSOFMOHAMMAD WERE DEFENSIVE ; AND THAT AGGRESSIVE WAR, OR COMPULSORY CONVERSION, IS NOT ALLOWED IN THE KORAN. WITH APPENDICES FROVING THAT THE WORD 'JIHAD' DOES NOT EXEGETICALLY MEAN 'WARFARE,' AND THAT SLAVERY IS NOT SANCTIONED BY THE PROPHET OF ISLAM. Bv MOULAVr CHERAGH ALI, Author of " REFORMS UNDER MOSLEM RULE," " HYDERAISAD (DECCAN) UNDER SIR SALAR JUNG."' I CALCUTTA: TRACKER, SPINK AND CO. 1885. CALCUTTA : PRINTED BY THACKER. SPINK AND CO. TO THE HONORABLE SYED AHMED KHAN BAHADUR, C.S.r., THIS BOOK IS. WITHOUT EVKS ASKING PERMISSION. AXD WHOLLY WITHOUT HIS KNOWLEDGE. DEDICATED AS A SLIGHT BUT SINCERE TESTIMONY OF ADMIRATION FOlj HIS LONG AND VARIOUS SERVICES IN THE CAUSE OF ISLAM AND IN RESPECT OF HIS RELIGIOUS AND SOCIAL REFORMS IN THE MOSLIMS OF INDIA, AND OF GRATITUDE FOR MUCH PERSONAL KINDNESS AND FKIENDSnil'. BY THE AUTHOR. SUMMARY OF CONTENTS. Introduction ... Note Genealogical Table of the Arabs- Page. 1 — civ cv cvi — evil I. The persecutions sufrered by the early Moslems ... 1 — 11 II. The Meccans or the Koreish ... ... ... 11 — 16 III. The defensive character of the wars of Mohammad 16 — S-t IV. The Jews ... ... ... ... ... 34—10 V. The Christians or Romans ... ... ... 40 — 41 VI. The intolerance ... ... ... ... 42 — .51 VII. The ninth chapter of /S'«?Yr Bnrat ... ... 51 — 55 VIII. The alleged interception of the Koreish caravans by the Moslems ... ... .. ... ... 55—60 IX. The alleged assassinations by the command or conni- vance of Mohammad ... ... ... 60 — 76 X. The alleged cruelty in executing tlie prisoners of war 76 — 91 XI. Some miscellaneous objections refuted ... 01 — 114 XII. The popular Jihad or Crusade ... ... ... 114 — 161 Appendix A. The word Jihad in the Koran does not mean warfare ... ... ... ... IC] — 192 Appendix B. Slavery and concubinage not allowed by the Koran ... ... ... ... 193—22.3 Appendix C. Koranic references ... ... 225 — 227 Index .. ... ... ... ... 229—249 TABLE OF CONTENTS. Introduction— Paras. Page. 1. Object of the book ... 2. Early wrongs of the Moslem ; justification in taking up arms, if taken ... ... ... ... ... ii :?. Commencement of the war ; the Koreisli being public enemy were liable to be treated as such ... ... ih. 4. But the Moslems could not take up arms to redress their ■ wrongs under certain circumstances ... ... ... iii 5. Moslems otherwise engaged at Bledina had no intention of suffering the horrors of war by taking the initiative, but were in imminent danger from the enemy ... iv G. The Koreish first attacked the Moslems at Medina. They could not forbear the escape of the Moslems ... v 7. Three battles waged by the Koreish against Mohammad — - Badr, Ohad, and Ahzab : these wars on the Moslem side were purely in defence, not waged even to redress their wrongs or re-establish their rights ... ... ... vii 8. The battle of Badr was defensive on the part of Moham- mad. Reasons for the same ... ... ... viii 9. Mohammad at IMedina. owing to the attacks, inroads, and threatening gatherings of the Koreish and other tribes, had hardly time to think of offensive measures ... xi 10. Armed opposition of the Koreish to the Moslem pilgrims from Medina in the vicinity of Mecca. The truce of Hodeibia ... ... ... ... ... ... xv 11. The Koreish again commit hostilities and violate their pledge. War declared against those who had violated the truce. War not carried out ... ... ... xvi 12. AVar with foes other than Koreish ... ... ... xviii 13. Expedition to Tabiik to check the advancing enemy. No war took place ... ... ... ... ... xix 14. Number of the wars of Mohammad much exaggerated : GJmzava defined : number of actual wars ... xx Table of Contents. IX Paras. Page. 15. The Revd. Mr. Green's remarks on the wars of Moham- mad criticised ... ... ... ... ... xxiii 16. Another view of the wars of Mohammad ... ... xxviii 17. Caravans if waylaid, were waylaid by way of reprisal ... xxx 18. Intolerance ; no compulsory conversion enjoined or took place during- Mohammad's lifetime : Sir W. Muir quoted and refuted ... ... ... xxxi 19. A brief sketch of the propagation of Islam at Mecca : Islam at Mecca ; Islam at Abyssinia ; Conversions at Nakhla ... ... ... ... xxxii 20. Rapid stride of Islam at Medina ... ... ... xxxvii 21. The increasing number of Moslem converts at Mecca after the Hegira ... ... ... ... ... xxxix 22. Disturbed state of the public peace among the tribes surrounding Medina. Internecine wars, an obstacle to the propagation of Islam ... ... ... ... xl 23. Sketch of the intertribal wars in Arabia during the life- time of Mohammad ... ... ... ... xli 24. Spread of Islam in the surrounding tribes at Medina after the Hegira I — VI ... ... ... ... xliii 25. Mecca a barrier against the conversion of the Southern tribes ... ... ... ... ... ... xliv 26. Tribal conversions in the sixth year. Conversion among several other tribes of the North and North-east in A. H. VIII « ... ... ... ... ... xlv 27. Surrender of Mecca, A. H. VIII ^ ... ... ... xlvii 28. Mecca not compelled to believe ... ... ... ib. 29. The wholesale conversion of the remaining tribes, A. H. IX and X ... ... ... xlviii 30. The various deputations in the 9th and 10th year of the Hegira ... ... ... ... ... ... li 31. A list of the deputations of conversion received by Mohammad at Medina during A. H. IX and X ... li — l?iii 32. All conversions, individual and tribal, were without any compulsion ... ... ... ... ... lix 33. Mohammad was not favoured with circumstances round him. The difficulty Mohammad encountered in his work. Marcus Dods quoted : Dr. Mohseim's causes of the spread of Islam and Hallam quoted ... ... ... ... Ix— Ixv 34. Mohammad's unwavering belief in his own mission and his success show him to be a true prophet. Moham- mad's efforts established monotheism in Arabia. His manly exertions, and his single handed perseverance. 2 Table of Contents. Paras. Page. TLe business and office of a prophet described. Sir W. Muir and Stobart quoted ... ... ... Ixv — Ixix 35. The reforms of Mohammad, his iconoclastic policy. The redemption of Arabia from venal debauchery and in- fatuated superstition. Muir, Marcus Dods, Stephens quoted ... ... ... ... ... Ixix — Ixxvii 36. Indictment against Mohammad. His alleged cruelty and sensuality. Muir, Rev. Hughes, Marcus Dods, and Stanley Poole refuted ... ... ... Ixxviii— Ixxxvii 37. Objections to the (1) Finality of the social reforms of Mohammad, (2) positive precepts, (3) ceremonial law, (4) morality, (.5) want of adaptability to the varying circumstances ... ... ... ... Ixxxvii — Ixxxix 38. All these objections apply rather to the teaching of the Mohamraadan Common Law than to the Koran ... xc 39. (1) Finality of social reforms of Mohammad discussed. Intermediary not to be considered final ... ... xc — xcii 40. (2) Positive precepts and (3) ceremonial law. pilgrimage, Kibla, amount of alms, fasts, forms and attitude of prayer, &c. : pretentious prayers and ostentatious alms- giving ... ... ... ... ... xcii — xcvii 41. (4) The Koran, both abstract and concrete in morals xcvii — cii 42. (5) Adaptability of the Koran to surrounding circum- stances ... ... ... ... ... ... cii — ciii 43. Suitability of the Koran to all classes of humanity ...ciii — civ Note ... ... ... ... ... ... cv Genealogical tables of the tribes mentioned in para. 31 of the Introduction ... ... ... ... ...cvi— cvii ALL THE WARS OF MOHAMMAD WERE DEFENSIVE. 1. — Tlie Persemtion. Paras. Page. 1. The early persecution of Moslems by the people of Mecca ... 2 2. Notices of the persecutions in the Koran ... ... ... 4 3. Insults suffered by Mohammad ... ... ... ... 6 4. Historical summary of the per.secutions ... ... ... 8 5. The Hegira. or the expulsion of the Mo.sleras from Mecca ... 9 6. The persecution of the Moslems by the Koreish after their flight from Mecca ... ... ... ... ... 11 II. — The Meceans or the Koreish. 7. A Koreish chieftain commits a raid near Medina, A. H. 1 ... ib. i^. llie Koreish march to attack Medina. Battle of Badr ... ib. 9. Attack by Abu Sofiau upon Medina, A. 11. 2 ... ... 12 Table of Contents. xi Paras. Page. 10. Battle of Chad... ... ... ... ... ... 12 11. Mohammad's [tre.stig'e affected by the defeat ... ... ih. 12. Abu Sofian threateued the Moslems with another attack next year ... ... ... ... ... ... 13 13. The Koreish a?ain attack Medina with a large army. Mohammad defends the city. The enemy retire, A. H. 5 ... 14 14. Mohammad with his followers advanced to perform the lesser pilgrimage of Mecca. The Koreish oppose Moham- mad, who return disappointed. The treaty of Ilodeibia ... l.i 15. Violation of the treaty by the Koreish and their submission 16 16. Two other tribes assume the offensive ... ... ... ib. 111.— The Defeusine Character of the Wars. 17. Verses from the Koran in support of the defensive character of the wars ... ... .. ... ... ... 25 18. What the above quoted verses show .. ... ... 26 19. Justification of the Moslems in taking up arms against their aggressors ... ... ... ... ... ... 27 20. The first aggression after the Hegira was not on the part of Mohammad ... ... ... ... ... 28 21. The alleged instances examined ... ... ... ... 29 22. Hamza and Obeida's expeditions ... ... ... ib. 23. Abwa, Bowat. and Osheira expeditions ... ... ... 30 24. The affair at Nakhla ... ... ... ... ... 31 2.5. At Badr Mohammad came only in his defence ... ... 33 26. The fii-st aggression after the Hegira. if from Mohammad, might fairly be looked upon as retaliation ... ... 84 IV.— The Jens. 27. The Jews broke treaties ... ... ... ... ib. 28. Bani Kainukaa, Baui Nazeer, Khyber, and Ghatafau ... 3.5 29. Notice of them in Koran ... ... ... ... 37 30. The judgment of Sad ... ... ... ... ... 38 31. Defensive character of the expedition against the Jews of Khyber ... ... ... ... ... ... 40 T". — The Christians or Romans. 32. Tabiik, the last expedition ... ... ... ... ib. 33. Description of the wars concluded ... ... ... 41 VI, — The Intolerance. 34. Mohammad never taught intolerance ... ... ... 43 35. In what sense the wars were religious wars ... ... 44 36. The alleged verses of intolerance explained ... ... 45 37. Sir William Muir quoted ... ... ... ... 47 38. Comment on the above quotation ... ... ... 50 39. Object of Mohammad's wars ... ... ... ... 51 xii Table of Contents. Paras. Page. VIL—Tlie JSlntli Chapter or Sura Barat. 40. The opening portion of the IX Sura of the Koran only relates to the Koreish who had violated the truce ... 55 Vlll. — Th-e allcqed Interceptions of the Koreish Caravans. 41. The nine alleged interceptions of the Koreish caravans ... 57 42. The interceptions were impossible under the circumstances in which Mohammad was placed ... ... ... 59 43. The interceptions, if occurred, were justified by way of reprisal ... ... ... ... ... ... 60 IX. — The allecjed Assassinations. 44. Instances of the alleged assassinations cited ... ... 61 45. Mr. Stanley Poole quoted ... ... ... ... 62 46. Asma-bint Marwan ... ... ... ... ... 6.S 47. The story deserves not our belief ... ... ... 64 48. Abu Afak ... ... ... ... ... ... 65 49. Kab, son of Ashraf ... ... ... 66 50. Mohammad could never have had any share in Kab's murder 68 51. Sofian bin Khalid ... ... ... ... ... 69 52. Justification of Sofian's alleged murder ... ... ... 70 53. Abu Rafe ... ... ... ... ... ... 72 54. Oseir bin Zarim ,, ... ... ... ... ... 73 55. The intended assassination of Abu Sofian ... ... 74 56. Irving and Muir quoted ;, concluding remarks ... ... 76 X, — The alleged Cruelties in Executing Prisoners of War and others. 57. Treatment of the prisoners of war ... ... ... ih, 58. Law of nations regarding the prisoners of war ... ... 77 59. The execution of Nadher Ibn Harith ... ... ... 79 60. The execution of Okba ... ... ... ... ... 80 61. Free liberty granted to Ozza, a prisoner of war ... ... 81 62. Abul Ozza proved a traitor and was executed ... ... ib. 63. The execution of Moavia Ibn Mughira ... ... ... ib. 64. Justification of Mughira's execution ... ... ... 82 65. The intended execution of the prisoners of Badr and the wrong version of Sir W. Muir ... ... ... ... 83 66. Mohammad was never blamed in the Koran for releasing prisoners ... ... ... ... ... ... 84 67. The Koran enjoins the prisoners of war to be either freely liberated or ransomed, but neither executed nor enslaved... 87 68. High treason of the Bani Koreiza against Medina and their execution ... ... ... ... ... ... gg 69. The whole of the Bani Koreiza were never executed ... ib. IQ. The women and children of Bani Koreiza were never sold ... 89 71. The exaggerated number of persons executed ... ... 91 Table of Contents. xiu Paras. Page. XI, — Sume Miscellaneous Objections refuted. 72. The execution of 0mm Kirfa for brigandafre ... ... 92 73. The alleged mutilation of the Urnee robbers ... ... 93 74. Amputation or banishment substituted temporarily in place of imprisonment for want of a well organized system of jails 9.) 75. Torture of Kinana ... ... ... ... ... 90 76. The alleged execution of a singing girl ... ... ... 97 77. The charitable spirit of Mohammad towards his enemies ... 98 78. Abu Basir not countenanced by the Prophet in contravention to the spirit of the treaty of Hodeibia ... ... ... lOl 79. Nueira not employed by the Prophet to circulate false reports in the enemy's camp ... ... ... ... ... ]02 80. Deception in war allowed by the International Law ... ih. 81. Lecky's standard of morality ,.. ... ... ... \q\ 82. The alleged permission to kill the Jews ... ... ... 106 8.3. Sir W. Muir quoted ... ... ... ... ... ]08 84. The expulsion of the Bani Nazeer ... ... ... jh. 8.5. Their fruit-trees were not cut down ... ... ... i09 86. Females and the treaty of Hodeibia ... ... ... no 87. Stanley defended ... .^rff^/n -TV^ ... ... m 88. Marriage a strict bond of unid^^^^- ^v. A ••• ■•• 113 The " ' 89. The Koran enjoins onl/^ 90. The Mohammadan Cgtatgai 91. When is Jihad a posiiiise 92. The Hedaya quoted 93. Rule of interpretati^ 94. The Common Law an^ 95. Kifaya quoted ... 96. Further quotations 97. The Ayaya refuted 98. S. IX, 5, discussed 99. S. II, 189, discussed 100. S. II, 189, and VIII, 40. are defensive ... 101. All injunctions were local and for the time being 102. At nee quoted and refuted 103. Sarahhsee quoted and refuted 104. lb n Ill/Jar quoted 105. Ih?i Hujar refuted 106. Ealahi quoted 107. Halabl xeintQd 108. Ainee again quoted and refuted 109. Continuation of the above 110. Traditions quoted and refuted 111. Early Moslem legists against the Jihad ... 114 116 ib. 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 ib. 124 125 ib. 126 128 129 ib. 132 ib. 133 ib. 134 XIV Table of Contents. Pnras. 112. Biographical sketches of the legists 113. European writers' mistakes 114. Sir W. Muir quoted and refuted ... 115. Islam not aggressive 116. Mr. Freeman quoted and refuted 117. The Revd. Mr. Stephens quoted and refuted 118. Mr. Bosworth Smith quoted and refuted ... 119. Mr. George Sale quoted and refuted 120. Major Osborn quoted 121. Major Osborn refuted 122. The IX Sura of the Koran 123. The Revd. Mr. Wherry quoted 124. Example cited from Jewish history explained 125. Mosaic injunctions 126. The Revd. Mr. Hughes quoted and refuted 127. Meaning of the word Jihad 128. Sura XLVIII, 5, explained 129. The Revd. Malcolm MacColl quoted 130. The untenable theories of the Mohammadan Common Law 1 Page. 135 137 138 139 140 141 143 ih. 14S 149 ih. \m 152 153 154 15.5 156 157 8—161 APPENDIX A. 1. Jihad or Jihd in the Koran does not mean war or crusade 163 2. Classical meaning of Jihad, &c. ... ... ... ... 164 3. Post-classical or technical meaning of Jihad ... ... 165 4. The classical logic and Arabian poets ... ... ... ih. 5. The conjugation and declination of Jahd or Jihad in the Koran ... ... ... ... ... .. 166 6. The number of instances in which they occur in the Koran... 167 7. In what sense they are used in the Koran ... ... 168 8. Conventional significations of Jihad ... ... ... 169 9. Mohammadan commentators, &c., quoted ... ... ... 170 10. When the word Jihad was diverted from its original signi- fication to its figurative meaning of waging religious wars ... ... ... ... ... ... 171 11. All verses of the Koran containing the word Jihad and its derivations quoted and explained ... ... ... 176 12. The above verses quoted with remarks ... ... ... 177 The Meccan Suras. 13. io^OTfl're, XXXI, 14 ... ... ... ... ... 7*. 14. i^«r7^a«, XXV, 53. 521 ... ... ... ... ... 178 15. The Pilgrimage, XXII, 76, 78 ... ... ... ... ih. 16. r/te-Bee, XVI, 108, 111 ... 179 Table of Contents. xv Paras. Pag-e. 17. The Spider, '^lil'^,b ... ... ... ... ... 18U 18. Ihid, 7 ... ... ... ... ... ih. 11). Ihid, 69 ... ... ... ... ... ib. 20. The BecXVl, iO ... ... ... 181 21. Creator, XXXY,M ... ... ... .. ... ib. The Sledinite Suras. 22. The Cow or Heifer. II, 2\o ... ... ... ... 182 2:^. Al Amran, III. VM) ... ... ... ... ... ib. 21. The Spoils, Yin, 73 ... ... ... ... ... 183 2.J. Ibid, 7.5 ... ... ... ... ... ib. 26. Ibid, 76 ... ... ... ... ... ih. 27. The Cattle, Yl.^09 ... ... ... ... ... ib. 28. jVokammad.XhYn,33 ... ... ... ... ... 184 2:). Battle Array. LXI, 11 ... ... ... ... ... ib. 30. Woman. IV. 97 ... ... ... ... ... 185 .SI. Lir/ht. XXIV, 52 ... ... ... ... ... ib. 32. The Forbidding. irXYl, ^ ... ... ... ... ib. 3:^. The Imm>rn.it!/.IX,74: ... ... ... ... ... 186 31. The Tried, LX, I ... ... ... ... ... 187 35. Hafcib's Story ... ... ... ... ... ... 188 36. The Apartmetit, XLlX,l!i ... ... ... ... ib. 37. The Iinnimity,IX,l6 ... ... ... ... ... ib. 38. Ibid. 19 ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. 39. Ibid,20 ... ... ... ... ... ... 189 40. Ibid, 2-1 ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. 41. Ibid.il ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. 42. Ibid ii ... ... ... ... ... ... 190 43. Ibid, 82 ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. 44. Ibid, 87 ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. 45. Ibid, 82 ... ... ... ... ... ... 191 46. T/te Table, Y, 3d ... ... ... ... ... ib. 47. Ibid, as ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. 48. Ibid, .59 ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. 49. Jihad does not mean the waging of Weir ... ... ... 192 60. Xata I and Kit dl ... ... ... ... ... ib. 51. Conclusion ... ... ... ... ... ... ib. APPENDIX B. 1. Slavery and concubinage not allowed by the Koran ... 193 2. Measures taken by the Koran to abolish future slavery ... 194 3. None of the prisoners of war was enslaved ... ... 196 4. liani Koreiza not enslaved ... ... ... ... 198 5. Rihana ... .. ... ... ... ... 201 6. Omar, the second Khalif. liberated all the Arab slaves ... 202 XVI Table of Contents. Pazas. 7. Concubinag'e 8. Maria the Coptic 9. Despatch of JfokowJitin ... 10 & 11. Maria neither a slave nor a concubine 12. Maria had no son 13. The story of Maria and Haphsa a spurious one 14. The affair not noticed in the early biographies 15. Sir W. Muir's authority not valid 16. The best commentators and traditionalists refute the story 17. The story not accredited by the Koran 18. The story when fabricated 19. Zeinab's case 20. The story a spurious one 21. Sir W. Muir's conjectures not justified 22. A wrong translation of Sir W. Muir 23. In Zeinab's case no exceptional privilege was secured 24. The false story traced to Mnhatil 25. Kdtadtis conjectural interpretation not warranted 26. Other conjectures ' ... . ... Page. 203 204 205 207 209 211 212 ■ih. 214 ih. lb. 215 216 217 219 220 ih. 222 223 APPENDIX C. I. — The verses of the Koran referring to the persecution of the Koreish at Mecca ... ... ... ... ... 225 II. — The verses of the Koran referring to the aggressions of the Koreish at Medina as well as those of the inhabitants thereof ... ... ... ... ... ... ih. III. — The verses of the Koran alluding to the wars of defence against the Koreish and Arabs, Sec, with several references to their aggressions ... ... ... ... ... ih. IV. — The verses of the Koran alluding to the various battles ... 226 ERRATA Pacjc Lint For Read V 21 them . Omit „ 22 them . it xvii /. ». Ma;uUite . Moaddite xxxiv 21 Blorra . " . Murra „ 22 Soleim , . Suleim xlii 9 Kauuka . . Kainuka xliii 22 /. 7t. Mozeima , . Mozeina xlv 25 Khusain . Khushain liv 1 Ban . Bani ') 10 Ghassianide . Ghassanide Ixxxviii 30 Khalips . : Khalifs xci 30 Caliphater . Caliphate 11 10 Kurzibu . Kurz-ibn 18 9 God- desist^ . . God: . desist » 16 persecution . persecution- X 17 (fitnah . . (fitnah') 27 5 liberty and . liberty, any of >> 6 brethern merely . brethren, merely »! 6-7 such, a manner . such manner >» 8 Society or . Society, or >> t) of it materially . of it, materially >) 12 deserve pity . deserve only pity 34 6 Ibu . Ibn 61 6 Rafi . Rafe 72 24 ibu . ibn J) 25 ibu . ibn 73 4 bil . bin 90 1 as stallions . for breeding purposes 135 28 Durar . . Dinar 136 16 Sirni , . Sirin 192 1 Jihad does nol -J mean ( Read this as a margi- war . I nal gloss. the waging of „ 3 Jahad . . Jahd. » 14 Katal and Kital . Read this as a margi- nal gloss. »> 20 Conclusion Ditto, ditto. INTRODUCTION. 1. In publisliiiig tliis work, my chief object is to remove the general and errone- Object of the book. ^ ^ , ous impression from the minds of European and Christian writers regarding Islam, that Mohammad waged wars of conquest, extir- pation, as well as of proselytizing against the Koreish, other Arab tribes, the Jews, and Chris- tians ;^ that he held the Koran in one hand and the scimitar in the other, and compelled people to believe in his mission. I have endeavoured in this book, I believe on sufficient grounds, to show that neither the wars of Mohammad were offensive, nor did he in any way use force or compulsion in the matter of belief. ' " He now occupied a position where he might become the agent for executing the divine sentence, and at the same time triumphantly impose the true religion on those who had rejected it." The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, page 211. London, 1877. (New Edition.) " The free toleration of the purer among the creeds around him, which the Prophet had at first enjoined, gradually changes into intoler- ance. Persecuted no longer, Mohammad becomes a persecutor himself ; with the Koran in one hand, and scymitar in the other, he goes forth to oflEer to the nations the three-fold alternative of conversion, tribute, death." — Mohammed and Mohammedanism, by Mr. R. Bosworth Smith page 137. Second Edition. a ii Introduction. 2. All the wars of Moliammad were defensive. Early wrongs of the ^^ and tliose wlio toolv interest in Moslems. i • i ^ Ills cause were severely oppressed at intervals, and were in a sort of general perse- cution at Mecca at the hands of the ungodly and fierce Koreish, Those who were weak and with- out protection had to leave their city, and twice fly to the Christian land of Abyssinia, pursued by the wrathful Koreish, but in vain. Those who remain- ed at Mecca were subject to all sorts of indignities, malignity and a deprivation of all religious and social liberty, because they had forsaken the inferior deities of the Koreish, and believed in the only ONE GOD of Mohammad, in whose mission they Justification in tak- ^'^d full belief. Mohammad and ing up arms, if taken. j^j^ followers had cvery sanction, under the natural and international law, then and there to wage war against their persecutors with the object of removing the {fitnali) persecution and obtaining their civil rights of freedom and religious liberty in their native city. 3. The fierce persecutions renewed by the Koreish Commencement of ^^ the time of the exi)ulsion of the state of war. ^j^^ Moslcms from Mccca were acts of hostility tantamount to a declaration of war. From that time commenced the state of war between the parties. In the Arab society at Mecca there was neither an organized Government, nor any distinction between a public and private person Introdaction. iii and property. There was no regular army in tlie State, and what existed was not a permanently organized body, so provided with external marks that it could be readily identified. The form of Government at Mecca was patriarchal, and the cliiefs of the Koreish and the citizens of Medina themselves constituted an army when occasion arose. Therefore, since the commencement of hos- tilities or the state of war, everj' individual of the Koreish or the Meccans was a public enemy of the The Koreish bein^ Moslcms, and liable to be treated Sbii^ort-tlteH: as such in his person and pro- ^"■^ ■ pei'ty, except those who were unable to take part in the hostilities, or, as a matter of fact, abstained from engaging in them. There- fore it was lawful for the Moslems to threaten or to waylay the caravans of the enemy, which passed to and from Mecca close to Medina, and also to attack the Koreish at Mecca, if they could possibly do so. 4. But as the people amongst whom the Prophet But the Moslems could and his fugitive Moslems now uot take up arms to redress their wrongs SOJOUmcd had Ouly pledged tO under certain circum- ^ *" stances. defend them at Medina, the fly- ing Mohammadans could not take up arms against their aggressors, the Koreish, to defend their rights of religious liberty and citizenship, much less of taking arms to compel the non-believers to believe in Moslem fjiith, and so they preferred to live in peace at Medina, and enjoy the blessings of their new IV Introduction. religion without any disturbance from without, if possible. 5. In fact, the Moslems, after suffering so long ,, , ., . such heavy persecutions at Mecca, Moslems otherwise "^ ' engaged at Medina had jj^^j at lenoth p;ot au asylum of no intention or sui- o i-i' j fering the horrors of pgacG at Medina, where they had war by taking the ini- r ' -^ ^^^^^'^^^ very little desire left to entertain any idea of commencing hostilities or undergoing once more the horrors of war, and were too ghid to live in peace after their last escape. The people of Medina had only agreed to defend the Prophet from attack, not to join him in any aggressive steps towards the Koreish. The attention of Mohammad and his followers who had fled with him was mainly occupied in preaching and teaching the tenets of Islam, in establishing a fraternity be- tween tlie refugees and the citizens, in building a house for prayer, in providing houses for refugees, But were in imminent J" Contracting treaties of neu- danger from the enemy. ^^^^:^^^ ^j^^^ ^^^ j^^^ ^^ j^^^^^.^^^^ and other surrounding tribes, Bani Zamra (a tribe connected with Mecca) and also with Bani Mudlij (a tribe of Kinana related to the Koreish), in anticipation of the impending danger^ from the Koreish, who had pursued them on the similar occa- sions before, and in organizing, above all these, some of the religious and civil institutions for the ' See Sura XXIV, verse oi. Introductum . v Moslems, wlio were now fast assuming the position of an independent society or comnionwealtli. Under such circumstances, it was next to impos- sible for Mohammad or his adherents to think of anything like an offensive war with their inveterate foes, or to take up arms for proselytizing purposes. 6. The Koreish, seeing the persecuted had left The Koreish first almost all their native lands for a attacked the Moslems t , , •, ^ c l.^ ' i at Medina. They could distaut City out ot their approach, not forbear the escape , ■, •■,. . !•.• of the Moslems. cxcept by a military expedition, and losing Mohammad, for whose arrest they had tried their utmost, as well as upon hearing the reception, treatment, religious freedom and brotherly help the Moslems received and enjoyed at Medina, could not subdue their ferocious animosity against the exiles. The hostility of the Koreish had already been aroused. The severity and injustice of the Koreish was so great, that wheu, in 615 A.D., a party of 11 Moslems had emigrated to Abyssinia, they had pursued them to overtake them. And again, in 616 A.D., when the perse- cution bv the Koreish was hotter than before, a party of about 100 Moslems had fled from Mecca to Abj'ssinia, the Koreish sent an embassy to Abyssinia to obtain the surrender of the emigrants. There is every reason to believe that the Koreish, enraged as they were on the escape of the Moslems in their third and great emigration in 622 A. D., \i Introduction. would Daturally have taken every strong and hostile measure to persecute the fugitives/ It was in the second year from the general expulsion of the Moslems from Mecca that the Koreish, with a large army of one thousand strong, marched upon the Moslems at Medina. Medina being 250 miles or 12 stages from Mecca, the aggressive army, after marching 8 stages, arrived at Badr, which is 3 or 4 stages from Medina. Mahommad — with only 300 Moslems, more being from among the people of Medina than the refugees — came out of Medina in self-defence to encounter the Koreish, and the famous battle of Badr was fought only at thirty miles from Medina. There could be no doubt that the affiiir was purely and admittedly a defensive one. Sura XXII, verses 39 — 42, copied at page 17 of this book, was first published in the matter of taking up arms in self-defence after the battle of Badr. ' The idea of forbearance on the part of the Koreish, as entertained by Sir W. Muir, is not borne out by their former conduct of persecuting the believers and pursuing the fugitives among them. He says : " Mahomet and Abu Bakr trusted their respective clans to protect their families from insult. But no insult or annoyance of any kind was offered by the Coreish. Nor was the slightest attempt made to detain them ; although it was not unreasonable that they should have been detained as hostages against any hostile incursion from Medina" («). They were contemplating a grand pursuit and attack on the Moslems, and had no reason to detain the families of Mahomet and Abu Bakr as hostages whilst they could not think that the Moslems will take the initiative, as they were too glad to escape and live unmolested. (//) Muir's Life of Mahomet. Vol II. page 265. Introduction. vii 7. Tlie Koreisli carried on three nggressive l)attles against tlie Moslems at Me- The three battles J^ ^^ ^ ^ t^ ^ wag-ed by the Koreish ilina. 1 he iirst, Called tlie Battle against Mohammad. -r» i of Badr, took place at thirty miles from Medina, the Koreish havins^ come down 250 miles from Mecca. The second, called the Battle of Oliad, was fought at a distance of one mile from Medina, the enemy having advanced 250 miles from Mecca. The third was the battle of con- federates, in which they had mustered an army of ten thousand strong. The city was besieged for several days, and the Moslems defended themselves within the walls of Medina which they had en- trenched. These were the only battles between the Koreish and Mohammad, in each the latter always acted on the defensive. Neither he attacked the Koreish offensively to take revenge, nor to com- pel them by force of arms to accept his religion. Even these three battles were not waged by Moham- mad to redress wrong or establish These wars were piueiy in defence, not imperilled rights. They were to redress their wrongs or to establish their only to repel force by riiiht of rights. J I Jo self-defence. Had Mohammad and his Moslems invaded Mecca and fought battles against the Koreisli there, he would have been justified for waging war to redress the injuries of person and property inflicted by the Meccans on the Moslems whom they were tormenting for their religion and had expelled them from their homes. viii Introd action. and had even barred tlieir yearly visitation to the shrine of Kaaba. A war which is undertaken for just causes, to repel or avert wrongful force, or to establish a right, is sanctioned by every law, religi- ous, moral or political. 8. Sir W. Muir, the great advocate for the The battle of Badr aggressive Koreish, holds that the was defensive. ^^^, ^f ^^^^ ^,^^ u brought On by Mahomet himself," ^ and that he intended to sur- prise the caravan of the Koreish returning from Syria under the charge of Abu Sofiau, and had come out to Medina to waylay it. Abu Sofian sent for an army of the Koreish for his aid, and thus commenced the battle of Badr. I have given my reasons at pages 74-76 of the book to show that this is a false account. I will point out from con- temporary records, i. e., the Koran, that Mohammad neither meant, nor had he come out of Medina, to- attack the caravan. I. The verses 5 and 6 of Sura VIII^ show that a part of the believers were quite Reasons for the same. averse to Mohammad's comiho; ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, page 255, foot-note. This note has been expunged in the New Edition of " The Life " : Vide page 317. * 5. " Rememler how thy Lord caused thee to go forth from thy home on a mission of truth, and verily a part of the believers were quite averse to it." 6. " They disputed with thee about the truth after it had been made clear, as if they were being led forth to death and saw it before them," Sura VIIL Introduction. ix out of Medina on the occasion of the battle of Badr. Had their mission been one of plundering rich caravans, as it is generally alleged, there could be no reason for that aversion of a party of believers who are accused so often of a hostile attitude towards the Koreish, and possessed of that great love of booty and adventure so prominent among the Arabs. The fact is, a party of believers had disputed with Mohammad the necessity of the combat and its probable result outside Medina. They preferred to defend themselves within its walls. This argument is against the allegation that Mohammad with liis followers had started to waylay the caravan, and the Koreish had come only to rescue it. II. The 43rd ^ verse of the same Sura shows that it was by a mere accident or coincidence that all the three parties of the Moslems, the Koreshite army and the caravan had arrived, and encamped close to Badr in front of each other. This is an aro^u- ment against those who say that Mohammad had intentionally come to Badr to waylay the caravan there.^ There was, in fact, no predetermination on the part of Mohammad either to waylay the cara- ' 43. " When ye were encamped on the near side of the valley, and they were on the further side, and the caravan was below you, if ye have made an engagement to attack, ye would assuredly have failed the engagement ; but ye were led into action notn-ithstanding, that God might accomplish the thing destined to be done." Sura VIII. ^ Muir's Life of Mahomet. New Edition, page 226. h X Introduction. van, or encounter the Koreisli army at Badr. Mohammad with his followers had come out only to check the advancing enemy in his self-defence. III. The seventh^ verse of the same Sura shows that while the parties had so accidentally encamped close to each other, the Moslems had desired then and there only to attack the caravan, as a reprisal or by way of retaliation, instead of combating with the Koreish army. This is an argument in support of my contention that there was no previous arranoement to attack the caravan. IV. The same verse also shows that Mohammad had no intention of attacking the caravan either before his coming out of Medina, as it is alleged by ignorant people, or after coming at Badr in front of the enemy's army. V. Sura VIII, verse 72,^ which treats of the pri- soners of the war taken at Badr, expressly notes the treachery of the Meccans before their being taken prisoner, and refers obviously to their aggres- sively setting out of Mecca to attack the Moslems at Medina. ' " And remember when God promised you that one of the two troops should fall to you, and ye desired that they who had no arms should fall to you : but God purposed to prove true the truth of his words, and to cut off the uttermost part of the infidels." ^ " But if they seek to deal treacherously with thee — they have already dealt treacherously with God before ! Therefore hath He given you power over them." Introduction. xi VI. Sura IX, verse 13/ at a subsequent event of the violation of the truce of Hodeibia by the Koreish, verv distinctly cbaroes them with attackins: first and waging offensive war and being aggressive. As there was no war or attack from the Koreish on the Moslems before Badr, I conclude that in the war of Badr the Koreish were airsressive. 9. But Mohammad, harassed and attacked every -^ ^ , year by the Koreish and other Mohammad, ow- ing to the attacks, in- hostile Arab tribes, had hardly roads and threatening- ' '' gatherings from the ^^^y i\^^^q ^^ wa<2;e an asfo^ressive Koreish and other Arab •' ^ ^"^ to tiilf of "otn^ ^'^^ ^^^^^^^ l^is Koreshite foes, to measures. establish his imperilled rights, or to redress the injuries of the Moslems or his own wrong ; much less of taking up arms to compel them to renounce idolatry and believe in his Divine mis- sion. During the first year after their expulsion from Mecca, the Moslems were in constant danger from the ferocity of the Koreish, and when Moham- mad was contracting treiities of neutrality with the neighbouring tribes, Kurz-bin-Jabir, a Koreish of the desert, committed a raid upon Medina. In the course of the second year the Koreish fought the battle of Badr, followed by a petty inroad of theirs upon Medina at the end of the year. The Baui ' '• Will ye not do battle with a people who have broken their cove- nant and aimed to expel your Apostle and attacked you first / Will you dread them? " Xll Introduction. Nazeer treasoned against Medina by giving intelli- gence to, and entertaining, the enemy. In the begin- ning of the third year, tlie nOmad tribes of Suleim and Ghatafan, inhabitants of the plains of Najd, and descendants of a stock common with the Koreish, twice projected a plundering attack upon Medina. At the same time the Moslems were defeated at the battle of Ohad, near Medina, by the Koreish, which circumstance greatly affected the prestige of the Prophet, who was threatened with a similar fate the next year by his victorious ene- mies. With the opening of the fourth year, the inimical spirit of many of the Bedouins, as well as that of the Jews of Bani Nazeer, was perceptible, and in various quarters large masses were organized to act ao-ainst Mohammad and to take advantao;e of the defeat at Medina. The tribes of Bani Asad and Bani Laliyan were brought together to follow the victory of the Koreish at Ohad. And last, not least, the Moslem missionaries were cut to pieces at Raji and Bir Mauna. At the close of the year, the people of Medina were alarmed by an exaggerated account of the preparations at Mecca to attack Medina as promised last year (Sura III, v. 176). During the fifth year certain tribes of Ghatafan were assembling with suspicious purposes at Zat-al- Rikaa and the maraudino; bands near Dumatal Jandal threatened a raid upon Medina. The Bani Mustalik, a branch of Khozaa, hitherto friendly to hitroduction. xiii Moliammad's cause, took up arms with a view of joining the Koreish in the intended attack upon Medina. At the end of the year, the Koreish, joined by an immense force of the Bedouin tribes,* marched against Medina, and laid siege to it for many days. The Bani Koreiza, having defected from Mohammad, joined the Koreish army when Medina was besieo^ed. In the beginning of the sixth year Uyeina, the chief of the Bani Fezara, had committed an inroad upon Medina.^ A Medinite caravan, under the charge of Zeid-bin-Haris, was seized and plundered by the Bani Fezara.^ In the month of Zul- Kada, (the eleventh month of the Arab lunar year), when war was unlawful throughout Arabia, but much more so within the sacred precincts of Mecca, Mohammad and his followers, longing to visit the house of their Lord and the sacred places around it, and to join the yearly ])ilgrimage which they had grown from their childhood to regard as an essential part of their social and reli- gious life, not to mention their intense desire of seeing their houses and families from which they ' Bani Ashja, Murra Fezara, Suleim, Sad, Asad, and several clans of Ghatafan, the Jews of Wady-al-Koraa and Khyber, ^ A party of Moslems at Zil Kassa was slain, and Dihya, sent by Mohammad to the Roman Emperor, on his return, was robbed of every thing by the Bani Juzam beyond Wady-al-Kora. ^ The Jews at Khyber were enticing the Bani Fezara and Bani Sad- bin-Bakr and other Bedouin tribes to make depredations upon Medina. xiv Introduction. were unjustly expelled, started from Medina for performing the lesser pilgrimage. They were under the impression that, in the peaceful habits of pilgrims, the Koreish would be morally bound by every pledge of national faith to leave them unmolested, and Mohammad had promised them a peaceful entry. But the Koreish armed themselves and opposed the progress of the Moslems towards Mecca, notwithstanding the pious object and unwar- like attitude of the pilgrims. At length a treaty, in terms unfavourable to the Moslems, but in fact a victory won by Islam, was concluded by Mohammad and the Koreish at Hodeibia. By this peace war was suspended for ten years. From my brief sketch of Mohammad's first six years' sojourn in Medina, it is evident that during this time Medina was constantly in a sort of military defence. The Moslems were every moment in the dano-er of an invasion, attack, or inroad from with- out, and treachery, conspiracy and treason from within. They either had to encounter superior numbers or to disperse hostile gathering or to chastise sometimes marauding tribes. So Moham- mad could scarcely breathe freely at Medina, but much less could he find time and opportunity to mature a scheme of attacking the Koreish at Mecca in order to revenge himself and his refugees for the persecutions -which the Koreish had inflicted on the Moslems, to redress their wrongs, and to Introduction. XV re-establish their rio;hts of civil and relio-ious liber- ty, or to make converts of them or any other tribes at the point of sword. 10. It was only when the Moslems, unarmed as they were in pilgrim's garb, were thtTo'rsSf"!'""!?' oPI'O^ed by tl,e armed Koreisl,, SScf'SrSa.'"'"' who had encamped at Zii Towa, clothed in panther's skin, or, in other words, with a firm resolution to fight to the last, and when Osman, the Moslem envoy to Mecca, w^as actually placed in confinement,^ of whom the rumour was constantly rife that he was murdered at Mecca, and when a party of the Koreish had actually attacked the camp of Mohammad,^ that ex- citement, alarm and anxiety prevailed in the Moslem camp, and Mohammad took a solemn oath from the Faithful to stand by their cause even unto death. (Sura XL VIII. ^) In the meantime appeals were received from the Moslems detained in confinement at Mecca, and otherwise opj)ressed for deliverance. ^. , , . Vide Sura IV, verses 77, 99, 100; Monammad proclaim- ' 777 trn^:SS\oobta^^ Sura VIII, verses 72, 73. He, on reSgS' IbSy 'ft t^^^^ occasion, proclaimed a war ^^°*^^- with the Koreish in the event of their attacking first, and enjoining the believers to • Ibn Hisham, p. 746. 2 jbid. 745, see Sura XLVIII. ^ Mohammad had gained over some of the Bedouin tribes in the direction of Mecca, and were on friendly terms with him. At this time they were summoned by Mohammad to join Mm if there be a war. They did not join him except a very few. xvi Introduction. redress their earlier and later wrongs, to establish tlieir civil and religious liberty, to have free access to their native city, to have the free exercise of tlieir religion, and to make avray with the oppres- sions of Koreish once for all. The following verses were published on the occa- sion :— Sura II, verses 186—190, 212—215. The Sura XLVIII afterwards had reference to the occa- sion, specially verses 10, 22 — 27. They are quoted in pp. 17 — 19. But happily a truce was agreed upon, and not a The war thus pro- drop of blood was sliod ou either claimed did not take . place. side. Thus the injunctions con- tained in the verses referred to above were never carried out. Mohammad, in proclaiming this war, had all the laws and justice on his side. Even this war, had it been waged, would Iiave been defensive, undertaken for the purpose of establishing the civil rights of the Moslems and their religious liberty, hitherto unjustly denied them. 11. This truce did not last long. The last act The Koreish again of hostility OU the part of the commit hostilities and violate their pledges. aggrcssive Koreish was the vio- lation of the truce within two years of its being concluded. This resulted in the submission of Mecca. The tribe of Bani Khozaa,^ who were now converts to Islam since the truce, and who had entered into an open alliance with Mohammad ^ The Bani Khozaa are also taken notice of in Sura VIII, verses 73-74. Introduction. xvii at the treaty, were attacked by the Koreish and their allies, the Baui Bakr/ The aggressed Mos- lems appealed for aid to Mohammad through a deputation, that displayed their wrongs to Moham- mad and his followers in very touching terms, urging in a plaintive tone to avenge them upon the treacherous murderers. War was declared by Mohammad against the aggressors, who had violated War declared against the truce, and attacked the those who had violated the truce. Baui Kliozaa, to redress their wrongs. A proclamation was issued declaring immunity from God and his Apostle to those who had broken the league and aided the Bani Bakr against the Khozda. Four months' time was allow- ed them to make terms, in default of which they were to be warred against, seized, and besieged, in short, to suffer all the hardships of war. Sura IX, verses 1 — 15, was published declaring the war. It has been copied at pages 22 — 25 of the book. But the threatened war did not actually take place, and Mecca surrendered War not carried out. by a compromise. Thus Moham- mad obtained his object of civil and religious liberty of the Moslems at Mecca and Medina, and averted the {Jitnah) persecutions and oppressions of the Koreish without actual war or bloodshed, and also secured peace for his followers in exchange of ' The Bani Bakr, son of Abd Monat, were a branch of Kinana of the Maaddite stock. xviii Introduction. the constant fear and agitation impending over tliem. This was promised some years ago in Sura XXIV, verse 54, winch runs as follows : — " God hath promised to those of you who believe and do the things that are right, that He will cause them to succeed other in the land, as He gave succession to those who went before them, and that He will establish for them their religion in which they delight, and that after their fears He will give them security in exchange. They shall worship Me : nought shall the}'' join with Me : And whoso after this believe not, they will be the impious." 12. Now I shall dispense with the Koreish and War with foes other ^^fer to the wars of other enemies than the Koreish. ^f ^j^^ ^^^j^ Moslems. There is only one war of the Arab tribes other than the Koreish noticed in the Koran, and that is the battle of Honain. In this war the Sakifites were the aggressors. The battle of Muraisia is not noticed in the Koran, but it is stated by biographers that information of a new project against him after the defeat at Ohad in the direction of Mecca, and the Bani Mustalik's raisins; fresh forces with a view of joining the Koreish in the threatened attack of Medina having reached Mohammad, he resolved by a bold attempt to prevent their design. I have shown in the book that the expedition of Moham- mad against Kliyber was purely in self-defence. A war undertaken to protect ourselves from the impending danger of an attack from the enemy and with the purpose of checking its advance, is a Introduction. xix defensive war under the Law. I am not going to treat of expedition of the Bani Koreizd separately, but this much is necessary to say here, that they had treacherously defected from the Moslem with whom they had entered into a defensive alliance, and had joined the confederate army against the Moslems. For a detail account of them, the reader is referred to pages 87 — 91 of this book. 13. The expedition of Mecca, already described. Expedition to Tabuk ^udcd iu a submissiou and com- ':rpttotTt:oi Pi-omise without any resort to ^^^®" arms: that ao;ainst Tabiik was undertaken, as it is admitted by all writers, Mos- lem and European, for purely defensive purposes. Mohammad was much alarmed on this occasion owing to the threatening news of a foreign invasion against the Moslem commonwealth. The follow- ing verses of the Ninth Sura are most probably directed towards the Romans and their Jewish and Christian allies,^ if not towards the Jews of Khy- ber : — 29. " Make war upon such of those to whom the Scrip- tures have been given as believe not in God or in the last day, and who forbid not that which God and His Apostle have forbidden, and who profess not the profession of the " The Jews of Macna Azruh. and Jabra, and the Christian Chiefs of Ayla and Duma. XX Introduction. Truth, until they pay tribute out of hand, and they be humbled." 124. "Believers wage war against such of the un- believers as are your neighbours, and let them assuredly find rigour in you, and know that God is with those who fear him." — Siira IX, Mohammad returned without any war, and there was no occasion to carry out the injunctions con- tained in these verses. Mohammad had taken great pains, according to the severity of the impending danger, to induce the Moslems to go to war in their own defence. But as the season was hot, and the journey a long one, some of them were very backward in doing so. There is a very violent denunciation against those who on various false pretences held back on the occasion. 14. The above sketch of the hostilities will show Number of the wars ^^^^^ ^liere wcre Only fivc battles in of Mohammad. ^j^-^i^ ^^^^^^^ fighting tOok place. The biographers of Mohammad and the narrators of his campaigns are too lax in enumerating the expeditions led by Mohammad. They have noted down the names and accounts of various expeditions without having due regard to a rational criticism, or without being bound by the stringent laws of the technical requirements of traditionary evidence. Consequently, they give us romances of the expe- ditious without specifying which of them are true and which fictitious. There are many expeditions Introduction. xxi enumerated by the biographers^ which have, in fact, no trustworthy evidence for their support ; some are altogether without foundation, and some of them are wrongly termed as expeditions for warring pur- poses. Ghazdvdt is wrongly understood by Euro- pean writers as meaning " jdundering expeditions.' Deputations to conclude friendly treaties, missions to teach Islam, embassies to foreign chiefs, mer- cantile expeditions, pilgrims' processions, parties sent to disperse or chastise a baud of robbers, or to watch the movements of an enemy, spies sent to bring information, and forces dispatched or led to fight with or check an enemy are all called " Glia- zavdf' (expeditious,) '-^ Sardya^^ and ^^Baus^' (enter- prises and despatches). Thus the number of Mo- hammad's expeditious has been unduly exaggerated, first by biographers, who noted down every expedi- tion or warlike enterprise reported in the several authentic and unauthentic traditions lono; after their occurrences, and did not at all trouble their heads by criticising them; and secondly by giving all missions, deputations, embassies, pilgrims' journies, and mer- cantile enterprises under the category of '■^ Ghazavdt^^ and " Sardya.^^ lately construed by European writers as " plundering expeditions," or " a despatch of body ' The biographers have only compiled or arranged the mass of popular romances and favourite tales of campaigns, which had become stereo- typed in their time, but were for the most part the iuveutions of a playful fantasy. XXll Introduction. of men with hostile intents." The biographers, both Arabian and European, have gone so far as to assert that there were 27 expeditions led by Mohammad in person, and 74 others headed by persons nomi- nated by himself, making in all 101. This number is o-iven by Ibn Sad Katib Wakidi (vide Kustaldni, Vol. VI, page 386). Ibn Is-hak also gives the number of Mohammad's expeditions to be 27, while others led at his order are put down at 38 only (vide Ibn Hishdm, pp. 972 and 973). Abu Yola has a tradition from Jabir, a contemporary of Mo- hammad, who mentions only 21 expeditions. But the best authority, Zeid-bin-Arqam, in the earliest traditions collected by Bokhari, Kitahul Maghazi^ in two places in his book, reduces the number to 19, including all sorts of expeditions and the number in which he was with Mohammad. Out of these alleged 27, 21, 19 and 17 expeditions, there were only 8^ or 9,^ in which an actual fighting took place. Even the latter minimized numbers are not deserv- ing of confidence. The actual expeditions are as follow : — 1. Badr, 4. Khyber. 2. Ohad. * Muraisi. 3. Ahazab. * Koreiza. Mecca, Honain. Tayif. ' Musa-bin-Akba (died 141 A. H.) - Ibu Sad and Ibu Is-hak as already alluded to. Introduction. xxiii There are no good authorities for the war at Muraisi with the Baiii Mustalik. There were no fightings with the Koreiza, as their affair was but a continua- tion of the war of Ahzab, and therefore does not require a separate number. At Mecca there was no action, and it surrendered by a compromise. As for Tayif it was a part of the battle of Honain like Autas. It was besieged to lay hold of the fugitives who had sought there a shelter, and subsequently the siege was raised. Thus, there remain only five expeditions, which I have numbered out of nine, in which Mohammad fought against his enemies in his and his followers' defence. Even these five scarcely deserve the name of battle. From a mili- tary point of view, they were but petty skirmishes in their results. The enemy's loss at Badr was 49, at Ohad 20, at Ahzab 3, at Khyber 93, and at Honain 93 ; but the last two numbers are open to doubt, and seem to be exaggerated. The loss on the Moslem side was 14, 74, 5, 19, and 17 respec- tively. The whole casualties in these wars on the side of the Moslems were 129, and on that of the enemies 258, which is exactly double those of the Moslems, and looks suspicious ; hence it must be accepted with caution. 15. The Kev. Samuel Green Mr. Green quoted. writes : — " It has been insinuated that Mahomet first took up arms in his own defence, and by more than one historian he has been justified in seekiug to repel or prevent the xxiv Tntroduction. hostilities of his enemies, and to exact a reasonable measure of retaliation. ' The choice of an independent people,' says Gibbon, ' had exalted the fugitive of Mecca to the rank of a sovereign, and he was invested with the just prerogative of forming alliances, and of waging offen- sive or defensive war.'^ That such a sentiment was enter- tained by a Mahometan does not at all surprise us, nor is it marvellous that it should be justified by an infidel 5 if it be true, war needs nothing to render laudable but the pretext of former injuries and the possession of power. The defence set up for Mahomet is equally availing for every sanguinary and revengeful tyrant ; and men, instead of being bound together by the ties of clemency and mutual forgiveness of injuries, are transformed into fiends, watching for the opportunity of destroying each other,"^ There was no pretence of former injuries on the part of the Moslems to make war on the Koreish. They were actually attacked by the Koreish and were several times threatened with inroads by them and their allies. So it was not until they were attacked by the enemy that they took up arms in their own defence, and sought to repel and prevent hostilities of their enemies. The defence set up for Moham- mad is not equally availing of every sanguinary and revengeful tyrant. It was not only that Moham- mad was wronged or attacked, but all the Moslems suffered injuries and outrages at Mecca, and when expelled therefrom, they were attacked upon, were ' " Decline and Fall, Chap. I." " The Life of Mahomet, founder of the religion of Islamism and of the Empire of the Saracens, by the Rev. Samuel Green, page 126: London, 1877. Introduction. xxv not allowed to return to their homes, and to perform the pilgrimage there. The social and religious lihert}', a natural right of every individual and nation, was denied them. A cruel or revengeful tyrant may not be justified in taking up arms in his own defence, or in seeking to redress his personal wrongs and private injuries; but the whole Moslem community at Mecca was outraged, persecuted and expelled, — and the entire Mohammadan common- wealth at Medina was attacked, injured and wronged, — their natural rights and privileges were disregarded — after such miseries the Moslems took up arms to protect themselves from the hostilities of their enemies and to repel force by force ; and were justified by every law and justice. The right of self-defence is a part of the law of nature, and it is the indispensable duty of civil society to protect its members. Even if a sanguin- ary and revengeful tyrant were to do so in his own behalf, he would be quite justified in this particular act. A just war, that is one undertaken for just causes to repel or revert wrongful force, or to establish aright, cannot be impeached on any ground, religious, moral, or political. But the Moslems had tried every possible means of obtaining a pacific solution of the difficulty which had arisen between them and tlieir enemies, the Koreish and the Jews, to avert war and its horrors. Mohammad had d xxvi Introduction. repeatedly iuformed the Koreisli that if they desist they will be forgiven. 88. " But if they desist, then verily God is gracious, merciful." 189. " But if they desist, then let there be no hos- tility, save against wrong-doers." — Sura II. 19. " O Meccans ! if ye desired a decision, now hath the decision come to you. It will be better for you to give over the struggle. If ye return to it, we will return ; and your forces, though they be many, shall by no means avail you aught, because God is with the faithful." 89. " Say to the infidels : If they desist what is now past shall be forgiven them ; but if they turn to it, they have already before them the doom of the former." — Sura VIII. And the same was the case regarding the Jews. 104. " Many of those who have Scripture would like to bring you back to unbelief after you have believed, out of selfish envy, even after the truth hath been shown to them. Forgive them then, and shun them till God shall come with his decree. Truly God hath power over all things." — Sura II. 63. " But if they lean to peace, lean thou also to it ; and put thy trust in God. He verily is the hearing, the knowing." — Sura VIII. 16 " Thou wilt not cease to discover the trea- cherous ones among them, except a few of them. But forgive them and pass it over. Verily God loveth those who act generously." — Sura V. But there could be no peace or mutual agreement on the part of the enemy until the truce of Hodeibia, which was also violated by them in a short time. Introduction. xxvii Even in the wars wliicli were waged for self-pre- servation, the Prophet had very raucli mitigated the evils which are necessarily inflicted in the progress of wars. Fraud, perfidy, cruelty, killing women, children and aged persons were forbidden by Mohammad •/ and a kind treatment of the prisoners of war enjoined. But foremost of these all — slavery, and domestication of concubinary slaves, the con- comitant evils of war — were abolished by him, order- ing at the same time that prisoners of war should be either liberated gratis or ransomed. Neither they were to be enslaved nor killed. ( Vide Sura XLVII, verses 4 and 5 ; and Appendix B of this work.) Attacking ofi^ensively was forbidden by the Koran (II, 186 Xa Taaiadii, i. e. ' Do not attack first '). Mohammad had taken oaths from the Moslems to refrain from plundering {vide page 58 of this book). " All hostilities and plundering excursions between neighbourino; tribes that had become Musalman he forbade on pain of death ; and this among those who had hitherto lived by plunder or by war, and who he knew miglit be deterred by such prohibition from joining him. 'Let us make one more expedition against the Temim,' said a tribe that was almost, but not altogether, persuaded to embrace the faith, ' and then we will become Musalmans.' " ^ * Mohammad's instruction to Abdal-Rahman was — " In no case shalt thou use deceit or perfidy, nor shalt thou kill any child." — Muir, Vol. IV, p. 11. - ' Quoted by Dr. Cazenove,' " Christian Remembrancer," January, 1855, page 71, from Caussin de Perceval. Mohammed k Mohamme- danism. By R. Bosworth Smith, Second Edn., pp. 257 & 258. London, 1876. xxviii Introduction. " In avenging m^^'in juries," said he (Mohammad), " molest not the harmless votaries of domestic seclusion ; spare the weakness of the softer sex, the infant at the breast, and those who in the course of nature are hastening from this scene of mortality. Abstain from demolishing the dwell- ings of the unresisting inhabitants; desfcroy not their means of subsistence, respect their fruit trees, and touch not the palm, so useful to the Syrians for its shade, and delightful for its verdure."^ "The Bani Bakr," writes Sir W. Muir, "meanwhile, foreseeing from the practice of the Prophet that, under the new faith, their mutual enmities would be stifled, resolved upon a last passage of arms with their foes. The battle of Shaitain fought at the close of 630 A. D. was a bloody and fatal one to the Bani Tamim."^ 16. There is another view of the wars of Moham- Another view of the "^^^ ^^^Id by SOme of the ElU'O- wars of Mohammad. ^^^^^^ ^^^^ American writers that lie commenced hostilities ou the caravans of the Koreisli which passed from Medina by way of reprisal and retaliation,^ and that be at first took up arms in his self-defence, but at last he proclaimed, ' An History of Mohammedanism ; comprising the Life and Character of the Arabian Prophet ; by Charles Mills, page 27. London 1818. ^ The Life of Mahomet, Vol. I, Intro., p. ccxxvii. London, 1861. ^ Sir W. Muir doubts the intense hatred and bitter cruelty attributed by tradition to the Koreish, and says : " In accordance with this view is the fact that the first aggressions, after the Hegira, were solely on the part of Mahomet and his followers. It was not until several of their caravans had been waylaid and plundered and blood had thus been shed that the people of Mecca were forced in self-defence to resort to arms." The Life of Mahomet, Vol. II. page 265, foot-note. London, 1861. This note disappears in the new edition of 1877. In his work " The Goran," page 24, London, 1878, Sir W. Muir says: "The caravans of Mecca ofEered a tempting opportunity for reprisals, and several expeditions were organized against them." Tntroductlon. xxix and waged, offensive wars against tlie Koreisli/ I have already shown liow improbable the line of action was on the part of Mohammad under the circum- stances at Medina; and this line of policy is quite contrary to the several verses of the Koran on the sub- ject, all enjoining the waging of wars in self-defence. But supposing that hostilities were first commenced by Mohammad after the Hegira, the state of war liaving commenced at the expulsion of the Moslems from Mecca, it was lawful for him to take up arms to redress the wrono-s of the Moslems and to establish their lawful right bj' force of arms. A war commenced on these grounds is a defensive war, though from a military point of view it may be an offensive one.^ " The right of self-defence," writes Kent, a great author- ' Mr. G. Sale writes : " He gave out that God had allowed him and his followers to defend themselves against the infidels; and at length, as his forces increased, he pretended to have the divine leave even to attack them." 'I'lie Prelim. Bis. Sect. 11. Mr. Henry Coppee writes regarding Mohammad: "But he soon found that he must take up arms in self defence, and in the thirteenth year of his mission, he announced that God permitted him not only to fight in his self-defence, but to propagate hia religion by the sword." History of the Conquest of Spain by the Arab- Moors, by Henry Coppee. Vol. I, page 39. Boston, 1881. But Dr. A. Sprenger makes the object of the wars of Mohammad purely defensive. He writes : — " The Prophet now promulgated, in the name of God. the law to fight their enemies, in order to put a stop to persecutions ; and this became henceforth the watchward of his bloody religion." The Life of Mohammad, p. 207 : Allahabad, 1851. 2 M. Bluntschili, a modern authority on the International Law, holds : " A war undertaken for defensive motives is a defensive war. notwith- standing that it may be militarily offensive." The International Law, by William Edward Hall, M. A., Oxford, 1880, page 320. XXX Introduction. ity on the International Law, " is part of the law of our nature, and it is the indispensable duty of civil society to protect its members in the enjoyment of their rights, both of person and property. This is the fundamental principle of the social compact .... The injury may consist, not only in the direct violation of personal or political rights, but in wrongfully withholding what is due, or in the refusal of a reasonable reparation for injuries com- mitted, or of adequate explanation or security in respect to manifest and impending danger."^ 17. As regards the tbreateoed attack on the cara- caravans, if waylaid, vans OF Capturing of it, there were by reprisal. ^^,^ ^^^ ^^^ Satisfactory grounds of proof; but if they were attacked and captured, I do not see any reason why they should be objected to. When hostilities commence, the first objects that naturally present themselves for detection and seizure are the person and property of the enemy. Even under the International Law of most civilized countries, the legitimacy of appropriating the enemy's property rests on the commencement of the state of war. Under the old customs of war a belligerent possessed the right to seize and appro- priate all the property belonging to an enemy's state or its subjects, of whatever kind they be or in whatsoever place where the acts of war are permis- sible. So those who object to the early Moslems' threatening, or capturing, or appropriating the > Kent's Commentary on International Law. Edited by J. T. Abdy, LL.D., Second Edition, page 144. Introduction. XXXI person or property of the enemy, and call them robbery, rapine or brigandage, show their complete ignorance of the International Law, ancient or modern. 18. The subject of the alleged intolerance on Intolerance— no com- the part of Mohammad, the Pro- pulsory conversion enjoined, or took place phet, towards the Unbelievers has during- Mohammad's life-time. been fully discussed in para- graphs 34 — 39 (pp. 41 — 51). It is altogether a wrong assumption of European writers that the Koran enjoins compulsory conversion of the unbe- liever, or that Mohammad proselytized at the point of the sword. Sir W. Muir writes: — " Persecutiou, though it may sometimes have deterred the timid from joining his ranks, was Sir W. Muir quoted. eventually of unquestionable service to Mahomet. It furnished a plausible excuse for casting aside the garb of toleration ; for opposing force to force against those who obstructed the ways of the Lord ; and last pf all for the compulsory conversion of unbelievers." ^ Opposing force to force and even redressing our wrongs and re-establishing our imperilled rights is not ' intolerance.' Mohammad did repel the force of his enemies when it was quite necessary for the Moslem self-preservation and protection, but he never compelled any of his enemies or unbelievers, whether a single individual, or a body of men, or a ' The Life of Mahomet from original sources, by Sir W. Muir, LL.D. New Edition, page 68, London, 1877. See also page 57 of the same. XXX ii Introduction. whole tribe, to believe in him. The Koran and history contradict sucli an allegation. The Koran everywhere in the Meccan and Medinite Suras preaches complete toleration of every religion. History nowhere authentically records any instance of Mohammad's enforcing conversion by means of the sword. 19. Mohammad propagated his religion both at A brief sketch of the Mecca and Medina before, as propagation of Islam at Mecca. Well as after, the Hegira, by per- suasion and preaching sustained by reasonable evidence. It prevailed against all persecution and opposition of the Koreish and Jews. In fact, it flourished and prospered under the severe persecu- tions and crushing oppositions by the mere dint of its own truth. ^ Sometimes the persecution of the Koreish itself was the cause of conversion to the Moslem faith.^ The number of converts durins; the first three 3'ears after the assumption by Moham- ' I do not mean to say that flourishing under persecution is a convinc- ing proof of the divine origin of a religion. Kot that a religion estab- lished by force is altogether of human invention. Almost all religions are divine however they may have been established, but flourishing under opposition and persecution is a natural course. Christianity suffered from persecutions and other harrowing evils for 300 years, after which time it was established, and paganism abolished by public authority, which has had great influence in the propagation of the' one and destruc- tion of the other ever since. ^ " The severity and injustice of the Cureish. overshooting the mark, aroused personal and family sympathies ; unbelievers sought to avert or to mitigate the sufferings of the followers of the Prophet ; and in so doing they were sometimes themselves gained over to his side." The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, Second Edition, page G8. Inti'oduction. xxxiu mad of his prophetical office is estimated at fifty. Then commenced the general persecution and the overwhelming opposition. Mohammad had, in order to prosecute his endeavours peace- ahly and without interruption, occupied the house of Arqam, one of his early converts, and there preached and recited the Koran to those who used to be conducted to him. A great multitude believed therein ; but the brunt of the jealousy and enmity of the Koreish fell upon the converted slaves, as well as upon strangers and believers among the lower classes, wlio had no patron nor protector. Some believers, sixteen in number, had already left for Abyssinia. Some came back and brought tidings of their kind reception there. At this time about a hundred Moslems emigrated to Abyssinia.^ This shows the increasing number of the converts, who represented for the most part fugitives of Mecca. There were some Christian converts to Islam at Abyssinia also.^ The Koreish being disquieted by the hospitable reception of the refugees at Abyssinia, and enraged by the refusal of Najashee to surrender them, sought to stay the progress of secession from • Among them were the representatives of the following tribes or clans of the Koreish, the Hashimites, Omiyyiads, Bani Abd Shams, Bani Asad, Bani Abd bin Kosayy, Bani Abd-ud-Dar, Bani Zohra, Bani Taym bin Morra, the Mukwhumites, the Jomahites, and the Bani Sahm. Vide Sprenger, page 190, Allahabad, 1851. ^ Vide Hishamee, page 259. An allusion to these converts may be found in Sura V, verses 85 and 86, if it does not refer to those of Najran. e XXXIV Introduction. tlieir r.iuks by utterly severing the party of the Prophet from social and friendly communication with them. In the seventh year of the Prophet's mission the ban commenced, and lasted for full three years. There could be very few conversions during the period of this weary seclusion. The efforts of the Prophet were chiefly confined to the conversions of the members of his own noble clan, the Bani Hashim, who, though unbelievers in his mission, had resolved to defend his person, and were with him in their confinement. The time of pilgrimage alone afforded Mohammad a wider field. He preached against idolatry at the fairs and assemblages of the pil- grims.^ After his release from imprisonment in the tenth .year of his mission, he went to preach at Tayif, but was ignominiously expelled the city.^ On his return to Mecca he convert- Conversion at Nakhla. ed a party of the tribe of Jinn"^ * He preached to the following tribes among others : — Bani Aamr bin Sasaa, Bani Moharib, Bani Hafasa (or Khafasa), Bani Fezara, Bani Ghassau, Bani Kalb, Bani Haris, Bani Kab, Bani Ozra, Bani Morra, Bani Hanifa, Bani Soleim, Bani Abs, Bani Nazr, Bani Bakka, Bani Kinda, and Bani Khozaimah. - " There is something lofty and heroic in this journey of Mahomet to Tayif ; a solitary man, despised and rejected by his own people, going boldly forth in the name of God, — like Jonah to Nineveh — and summon- ing an idolatrous city to repentance and to the support of his mission. It sheds a strong light on the intensity of his own belief in the divine origin of his calling."— The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, Vol. II, page 207. ^ The Arabs also had a similar clan named Bani Shaitan, a clan of the Hinzala tribe, the descendants of Tamim, through Zeid Monat of the Moaddite stock. The Bani Shaitan (the children of Satan) dwelt near Kiif a. — Vide Qalqashandi's Dictionary of Arab Tribes. InfroiJ'Uction. xxxv (not Genii according to the vulgar notion)^ at Nakhla. After his return from Tayif he preaclied • Sura XLVI, verses 28,29. These people were from Nisibin and Nineveh in Mesopotamia. They were Chaldeans, soothsayers, and cabal ists. In the book of Daniel the Chaldeans are classed with magicians and astro- nomers, and evidently form a sort of the priest class who have a peculiar "tong-ue" and "learning' (Dan. I. 4). In Arabic, persons of similar professions were called A7//(/«,9. Some of this class of people pretended to receive intelligence of what was to come to pass from certain satans or demons, whom they alleged to hear what passed in the heavens. Others pretended to control the stars by enchanting them. They pro- duced eclipses of the sun and moon by their alleged elRciency in their own enchantments. They practised astrology as well as astronomy and fortune-telling. It appears that the Chaldeans (Ivaldai or Kaldi) were in the earliest times merely one out of the many Cushite tribes inhabiting the great alluvial jjlain known afterwards as Chaldea or Babylonia. In process of time as the Kaldi grew in power, their name prevailed over that of the other tribes inhabiting the country ; and by the era of the Jewish cap- tivity it had begun to be used generally for all the inhabitants of Babylonia. It had thus come by this time to have two senses, both ethnic : in the one, it was the special appellative of a particular race to whom it had belonged from the remotest times ; in the other, it designated the nation at large in which the race was predominant. Afterwards it was transferred from an ethnic to a mere restricted sense, from the name of a i^eople to that of a priest caste or sect of philo- sophers. The Kaldi proper belonged to the Cushite race. While both in Assyria and in Babylonia, the sernitic type of speech prevailed for special purposes, the ancient Cushite dialect was purely reserved for scientific and religious literature. This is no doubt the " learning " and the " tongue " to which reference is made in the Bible (Dan. I. 4). It became gradually inaccessible to the great mass of people who had emigrated by means, chiefly, of Assyrian influence. But it was the Chaldean learning in the old Chaldean or Cushite language. Hence all who studied it, whatever their origin or race, were, on account of their knowledge, termed Chaldeans. In this sense Daniel himself, '"the master of Chaldeans " (Dan. V. 11.), would, no doubt, have been reckoned among them, and so we find Seleucas, a Greek, called a Chaldean by Strabo (XVI. 1, § 6). The Chaldeans were really a learned class, who by their acquaintance with the language of science became its depositaries. xxxvi Introduction. to an audience of six or seven persons from Medina, who believed and spread Islam there. They were priests, magicians or astronomers, as their preference for one or other of those occupations inclined them ; and in the last of these three capacities they probably effected discoveries of g-reat importance. The Chaldeans, it would appear, congregated into bodies forming what we may perhaps call universities, and they all engaged together in it for their progress. They probably mixed up to some extent astrology with their astronomy, even in the earlier times, but they certainly made great advance in astronomical science to which their serene sky and trans- parent atmosphere specially invited them. In later times they seem certainly to have degenerated into mere fortune-tellers (jvide Smith's Diet, of the Bible. Art. Chaldeans). In their practice of astromancy or enchanting the stars, and in pretending to overhear what passed in the heavens, they, the Jinns, used to sit on the tops of lofty mansions at night-time for hours offering sacrifices to the stars and enchanting them. In their peculiar tongue and learning they called this practice " stealing a hearing " and " sitting for listening" (Suras XV, verse 17, and LXXII, verses 8, 9). Now at the time of Mohammad's assuming the Prophet's office there had been an unusually grand display of numerous falling stars, which at certain periods are known to be specially abundant. At the same time there were good many comets visible in different parts of heavens, which certainly might have smitten with terror these Jinns, /. e., the astromancers and soothsayers. There was one comet visible in 602 A. D., and other two appeared in 605 A. D. In 607 A. D. two more comets were visible ; another one appeared in 608 A.D. Each of the years 614 and 615 had one comet. There v/ere also comets visible in 617 A.D. {vide Chambers's Descriptive Astronomy). These comets are most probably noticed in the contemporary record {i, e. the Koran). A comet is called Tariq, or "night comer," in Sura LXXXVI, verse 1; and described as the star of piercing radiance. (^Annajmus Saqib. Ibid 3.) The KaMns were very much alarmed at the stupendous phenomena of the falling stars and the comets ; and had stopped their soothsaying and divinations. Whenever they used to sit on their places of listening, enchanting, and divination during night-time, looking at the heavens, their eyes met with showers of shooting stars and brilliant comets which bewildered them very much. It is said that the first whose attention was attracted to the unusual shooting stars was a clan of the Sakeefites of Us-Tayif (Ibn Hisham, page 131). These Jinns, when they were converted to Islam at Nakhla near Tayif, expressed their bewilder- Introduction. xxxvii 20. Next year twelve new converts were made Rapid Btride of Islam ^i'^"! l^ersoiis who had coiiie to see at Medina. ^|jg Pi-ophet froiii Medina. They returned as missionaries of Islam, and Islam spread ment from the unusual shower of falling stars and the appearance of numerous comets in their peculiar language: — " The heaven did we essay but found it filled with mighty garrison and of darting flames." •'We sat on some of the seats to listen, but whoever now listeneth findeth a darting flame in ambush for him." " We know not whether evil be meant for them that are on earth, or whether their Lord meaneth true guidance for them." — Sura LXXII, verses 8 — 10. So the pretenders of hearing the discourses of heavenly bodies being quite harassed by the extraordinary showers of the falling stars, and the appearances of numerous comets, had stopped their divination. This was taken notice of in the Koran : — " They overhear not exalted chiefs, and they are darted from every side." " Driven off and consigned to a lasting torment ; while if one steal by stealth then a glistering flame pursueth him." — Sura XXXVII, verses 8 — 10. ■' Save such as steal a hearing, and him do visible flames pursue." — Sura XV, verse 18. " The satans were not sent down with this Koran. It beseemed them not, and they had not the power. For they are far removed from the hearing." — Sura XXVI, verses 210 — 212, As an instance of terror and bewilderment caused by meteors and shooting stars among credulous people, I will quote the following anec- dote : About the middle of the tenth century an epidemic terror of the end of the world had spread over Christendom. The scene of the last judg- ment was expected to be in Jerusalem. In the year 999 the number of pilgrims proceeding eastwards, to await the coming of the Lord in that city, was so great that they were compared to a desolating army. During the thousandth year the number of pilgrims increased. Every phenomenon of nature filled them with terror. A thunderstorm sent them all upon their knees. Every meteor in the sky seen at Jerusalem brought the whole Christian population into the streets to weep and pray. The pilgrims on the road were in the same alarm. Every shooting star furnished occasion for a XXXVlll Introduction. rapidly iu Medina from house to house and from tribe to tribe. The Jews looked on in amazement at the people whom they had in vain endeavoured sermon, in whicli the sublimity of the approaching judgment was the principal topic {vide Extraordinary Popular Delusions by Charles Mackay, LL. D., London, pp. 222 and 223). It was a conceit or imposture of the Kahhis to pretend that their demons had access to the outskirts of the heavens, and by assiduous eavesdropping secured some of the secrets of the upper world and communicated the same to the soothsayers or diviners upon earth. The Jews had a similar notion, of the demons (schedim), learning the secrets of the future by listening behind the veil (pargod). The Koran falsified them in their assertions. It says that the heavens (or the stars) are safe and protected against the eavesdropping (or enchant- ments) of the soothsayers. " We have set the signs of Zodiac in the heavens, and we have decked them forth for the bewilders." •' And we guard them from every stoned satan." — Sura XV, verses 16, 17. " Verily we have adorned the lower heaven with the adornment of the stars;" " And we have guarded them against every rebellious satan." — Sura XXXVII, verses 6, 7. " . . . . And we have furnished the lower heaven with lights and have protected it " — Sura XLI, verse 11. The Koran further says that the soothsayers impart to their votaries or to those who go to consult them what they have heard from other people and are liars : — " They impart what they have heard, but most of them are liars." — Sura XXVI, verse 223. It is nowhere said in the Koran that the stars are darted or hurled at the Satans. Sura LXVII, verse 5, literally means, " of a surety we have decked the lower heaven with lights and have made them to be (means of) ' Bojum ' conjectures to the (or for the) devils, i. e. the astrologer." The primary meaning of Rnjm is a thing that is thrown or cast like a stone : pi. ' Ilojilm, ' but it generally means si^eaking of that which is hidden, or conjecturing or speaking by conjecture, as in Sura XVIII, verse 21. In Sura XIX, verse 47, the word " La-arjomannaha'" has been explained both ways, meaning (1) " I will assuredly cast stones at thee," and (2) " I will assuredly say of thee, (though) speaking of that which is hidden (from me) or unknown (by nie), what thou dislikest or hatest." Vide Lane's Arabic-English Lexicon, i)age 1048. Introduction. xxxix from generations to convince of the errors of poly- theism, and to dissuade from the abominations of their idolatry, suddenly of their own accord casting away idols and professing belief in the one True God/ Thus sj)eedily without let or hindrance, force or compulsion, did Islam take firm root at Medina and attain to a full and mature growth. There remained not a single house among the Aws and Khazraj tribes^ of Medina in which there were not believing men and women, excepting the branch of the Aws Allah, who were not converts till after the siege of Medina. At this time there were many Moslems in Mecca, Medina, and Abyssinia, and not a sinole one of them could be said to have been converted to Islam by compulsion : on the contrary, they were used to be forced to renounce Islam. 21. When the Moslems were oblio;ed to emio-rate from Mecca under the severe v:r'at*K: X" Koreishite persecutions, all tlie The increasing- num- !r of Moslem coh- ;rts at Mecca after theHegira. followcrs of the Prophet with ' " After five centuries of Christian evangelization, we can point to but a sprinkling here and there of Christian converts ; — the Bani Harith of Najran : the Bani Hanifa of Yemama ; some of the Bani Tay at Tayma, and hardly any more. Judaism, vastly more powerful, had exhibited a spasmodic effort of proselytizm under Dzu Nowas ; but, as an active and converting agent the Jewish faith was no longer operative." — Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. I, page ccxxxix. ^ The Aws or Khazraj were two branches of the Azdite tribes of Yemen from the Kahlanite stock. After their emigration to the North they separated themselves from the Ghassinides and returned to Medina, where they settled. xl Introduction. the exception of those detained in confinement or unable to escape from slavery had emigrated with their families to Medina. But there were many new converts at Mecca since the expulsion of the Moslems. Those unable to fly from Mecca in the teeth of the oppressions of the wrathful Koreish (Sura IV., 77, 79, 100) were increasing. They appealed for deliverance and aid, while the Moslem pilgrims were near Mecca at Hodeibia, six years after the Hegira, and an allusion is made to the great number of the Meccan converts, living at Mecca during that time in Sura XL VIII, 25. 22. Irrespective of the wars prosecuted by the Disturbed state Koreisli from the South against of the public peace -.^ , -\t ^• among the tribes Mohamuiad at Medina, and the surrounding- Medina. Internecine wars an constaut danger of iuroad and obstacle to the propaga- tion of Islam, attack upon Medina from the neighbouring tribes — a great obstacle in the propa- gation of Islam which could only be successfully accomplished in a state of peace and tranquility of both parties, — the most important and great tribes in the North and Centre of Arabia were at war against each other during the life of Mohammad, either before his mission from 570 to 610 A.D. or during his public mission from 610 to 632 A.D. The disastrous internecine wars were kept up for scores of years and the evils necessarilj'^ inflicted in their progress were not confined to the belligerents only. It required years to remove the evils of war Introduction. xli and to efface the traces of misery aud sorrow the wars had broii2:ht.^ 23. Here 1 will give a brief sketch of the inter- necine wars which took place among the various Arab tribes durino; the time of Mohammad. Wars during Mohammad's Lifetime, between the Ara- bian Tribes in the North and Centre of Arabia. Before his mission, 570 — 610, A.D. (1.) The ])attle of Rahrahan between Bani Aamir bin Saasaa and Bani Taraim in Najd, 578, A.D. (2.) The Bani Abs on the side of Bani Aamir and Bani Zobian on the side of Tamim, 579, A.D., at S/ieb Jahala. (3.) Sacrilegious war at Tayif called Harb fi-jar, 580-590, A.D. (4.) Several battles between Bani Bakr and Tamim in 604, A.D. and the following years. During his mission. {A)— While at Mecca, 610—622, A.D. (1.) The war of Dahis between Bani Abs and Zobian, the branches of Ghatafan in Central Arabia; lasted forty years, 568 to 609, A.D. (2.) The battle of Zii-kdr between the Bani Bakr and the Persians in the Kingdom of Hira, 611, A.D. ^ The same remarks apply to the wars fought during Mohammad's lifetime but before his public mission. / xlii Introduction. (3.) The Baui Kinda aud Bani Haris attacked Bani Tamim wlien tliey Lad retired to Kulab in the coufines of Yemen and repulsed them. (4.) The Bani Aws and Khazraj of Medina were at war. The battle of Bods was fought in 615, A.D. The Bnni Aws were assisted by two tribes of Ghas- san, bv Mozeima and the Jewish tribes Nazeer and Koreiza. The Bani Khazraj were supported by Joheina, Aslija and the Jews of Kanukaa. {^)— While at Medina, 622 to 632, A.D. (l.J The standing warfare between the Bani Hawazin and the Bani Abs, Zobian, and Ashja of Ghatafan was kept up by assassinations and petty engagements till they become converts to Islam. (2.) The Koreish fought two battles of Badr and Oliad aoainst the Moslems at Medina in 624 and 625, A.D, respectively. (3.) Several clans of the great Ghatafan family (the Bani Murra, Asbja and Fezara) the Bani Suleim and Sad, a branch of Hawdzin, and Bani Asad from Najd Bedouin tribes, and Bani Koreiza the Jews, had besieged Medina in 627, A.D., in confederation with the Koreish. (4.) Bani Tamim and Bani Bakr renewed their hostilities, and from 615 to 630, A.D., several battles occurred between them. The last battle was that of Shaitain in 630, A.D. In this year, after the battle, both the tribes were converted to Islam. Infrodudlon. xliii (5.) The Bani Gliaus and Jadila branches of Baui Tay in the north of Medina warred against each other. The war of Fasad continued twenty- five years till they embraced IsLam in 632, A.D. 24. During the six eventful years of Moliatn- spread of Island in ^^'^^^'^ sojoum at Medina, froiii the S%irnr'iffer"tt ^egira to the truce of Hodeibia, Hegirai— VI. wlicrc lie was every year attack- ed or threatened by otlier hostile Arab tribes, acting always in self-defence, he had converted several members or almost entire tribes residino^ round Medina. Among them were the following : — 1. The Baui Aslam. i 4. Gliifar. ^ 2. Joheiua. ^ 5. Saad-biii-Bakr. ^ 3. Mozeina. ^ 6. Baiii Ashja. ^ ' The Bani Aslam tribe settled uorth of Medina in the valley of Wady- al-Koraa. They were a branch of the Kozaaite tribes descended from Himyar. ■^ Joheina were a branch of Kozaa, the descendants of Himyar. This tribe inhabited in the vicinity of Yenbo, north of Medina. ^ Mozeima were a tribe of the Moaddite stock of Mecca. They in- habited in Najd, north-east of Medina. ■* Ghifar were sons of Moleil-bin-Zamra, the descendants of Kinana, one of the Moaddite tribes, ' Saad-bin-Bakr were a branch of Hawazin. Mohammad had been nursed among them. ^ The Bani Ashja were a branch of the Ghatafan of the Meccan stock of the Moaddites. The Bani Ashja appear all to have been hostile to Mohammad. They fought against the Prophet at the siege of Medina with four hundred warriors in their contingent. Sir W. Muir says, '• The Bani Ashja, who had joined in the siege of Medina, gave in their adhesion shortly after the massacre of the Coreitza ; they told Mahomet that they were so pressed by his warring against them, that they could stand out no longer.— K. Wackidi, page 60." Muir's Life of Mahomet, xliv Introduction. We never find a single instance even in the Mag- hdzis (accounts of the campaigns of Moliammad, however untrustworthy they be) of Mohammad's converting any person, families, or branches of tribes by the scimitar in one hand and the Koran in the other. 25. Up to this time, notwithstanding the perse- cutions, exiles and wars against Mecca abarrier against the conversion Islam, it had Spread by the mere of the southern tribes. force of persuasion among the Meccans, some of whom had emigrated to Abys- sinia and most to Medina, the whole of the influ- ential tribes of Aws and Khazraj at Medina, as well as among the Jews there, and among some of the tribes in the north, and east of Medina and the centre of Arabia. But as Mecca in the south had declared war against Islam, most of the Arab tribes connected somehow with the Meccans, and those inhabiting the southern and south-eastern parts of Arabia, to whom Mecca served geographically as a barrier, watched the proceedings of the war and the fate of Islam, and had no opportunity of coming to Medina to embrace Islam, nor of having friendly intercourse with the Moslems, nor of receiving Mohammadan mission- aries in the face of the Avars waged by the Koreish who were looked upon as the guardians of the Vol. IV, 107, footnote. This story is altogether false. We never hear of Mohammad warring against Bani Ashja ; on the contrary, they had them- selves invaded Medina. Introduction. xlv Kaaba, the spiritual or religious centre of the idola- trous Arabs. At the end of the last or the fifth year many Bedouin tribes, among whom miglit be counted the Bani Ashja, Murra, Fezara, Suleim, Sad-bin-Bakr and Bani Asad, had furnished several thousand Arabs to the Koreish for the sietre of Medina. Only when the aggressions of the Koreish against the Moslems were suspended that the war- ring tribes and those of the Central, Southern and Eastern Arabia could think of what they had heard of the reasonable preaching of Islam against their idolatry and superstitious. 26. Since the truce of Hodeibia at the end of Tribal conversions in tl^^ sixth year after the Hegira the sixth year. Mecca was Opened for intercourse, where there were some more and fresh conver- sions. The Bani Khozaa, descendants of Azd, were converted to Islam at the truce of Hodeibia. At the pilgrimage in the following year some influential men of Mecca adopted Islam. The movement was not confined to these leading men, but was wide and general. In the seventh year the following tribes were converted to Islam and their deputations joined Mohammad at Khyber: 1. Bani Ashdr.i 2. Khusain.^ 3. Dous.^ ' The Bani Ash-ar inhabited Jedda. They were of the Kahlanite stock, the descendants of Al-Azd. '^ The Bani Khushain were a clan of Kozaa, of Himiarite stock. ' The Bani Dous belong to the Azdite tribe of the stock of Kahtan. They lived at some distance south of Mecca. They had joined Mohammad at Khyber. xlvi Introduction. Conversions among several other tribes of the North and North- east in A, H., 8. During the same year Mohammad co verted seve- ral other tribes in the north and north-east of Arabia them were — 1. Baui Abs. 5. Suleim.^ 9. 2. Zobidn. 6. Ozra. 10. 3. Murra. 7. Bali. 11. 4. Fezara.1 8, JuzAm.^ 12. Among Sdlaba. ^ Abdul Kays. 5 Baui Tamiui.^ Bani Asad.^ ' These were the sub-tribes of Ghatafan of the Meccan stock. The chief families of Ghatafan were the Baui Ashja, Zobian. and the Bani Abs. Murra and Fezara were the branches of Zobian. They all inhabited Najd. Uyeuia, the chief of the Bani Fezara, had committed an inroad upon Medina in A. H. G. In the same year the Bani Fezara had way- laid a Medina caravan and plundered it. * The Bani Suleim. a branch of the Bani Khasafa and a sister tribe to Hawazin, who lived near Mecca, and in whose charge, Mohammad, when but an infant, was placed, were also a tribe of the Meccan stock descended through Khasafa from Mozar and Moadd. Bani Suleim, like Bani Murra and Fezara, branches of Ghatafan, had long continued to threaten Mohammad with attacks. The Bani Suleim having joined Aamir bin Tofeil. chief of Baui Aamir, a branch of the tribe of Hawazin with their clans Usseya, Ril, and Zakawan. had cut to pieces a party of Moslem missionaries at Bir Mauna, invited by Abu Bera Amr ibu Malik, a chief of the Bani Aamir, who had pledged for their security. The Bani Suleim had joined also the Koreish army at the siege of Medina. In the seventh year, they had slain another body of Moslem missionaries sent to them. ^ The Bani Ozra were a tribe of Kozaa, like Joheina. They, together with the Bani Bali and Juzam, inhabited the north of Arabia in the part of the territory belonging to Ghassan. The family of Himyar, descendants from Kahtan in Yemen, had flourished through the line of Kozaa, the Bani Ozza, Joheina and other important tribes to the north of the Peninsula on the border of Syria. It has been quoted by Sir W. Muir from Katib Wakidi that the chief of the Bani Juzam carried back to them a letter from Mohammad to this tenor : " Whoever accepteth the call of Islam, he is among the confederates of the Lord ; whoever refuseth the same, a truce of two months is allowed for him for consideration." (Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 107, foot-note). The words ''for consideration" are not in the original Arabic. — Vide TutroducUon. xl Vll 27. The position of Islam at Mecca was greatly , * TVT . strenothened since the truce in Surrender of Mec- o ca.— A. H., 8. ^ jj g^ \^y increase in the num- ber of Moslems, influential and leading, as well as of persons of minor note and importance there, consequently the advocates of Islam, peace and com- ])romise were growing in number and confidence. Amono^ the idolatrous Koreish there were no chiefs of marked ability or commanding influence left at Mecca ; almost all of them had gone over to the cause of Islam. In the meantime the infraction of the terms of the truce by the Bani Bakr and Koreish caused the surrender of Mecca without bloodshed. 28. Thouo-h Mecca had surrendered, all its in- The Meccans not com- li^^itauts had Dot already become peiied to believe. converts to Islam. Mohammad Ibn Hisham, p. 963. It is not clear what was meant by the two months' truce he was advised to give them, to make terms before he could commence hostilities, if the tradition for which there is no authority be true. This has nothing to do with their compulsory conversions. * Salaba was a branch of the Zobian. * The Bani Abd-ul-Kays are a Moaddite tribe, the descendants of Rabia. They inhabited Bahrein on the Persian Gulf. * The Bani Tamim were branch of Tabikha, a tribe of the Moaddite stock of Mecca and a sister tribe of Mozeina. They are famous in the history of Najd, a province north-east of Medina, from the confines of Syria to Yemen. Some of these branches were with Mohammad at the expeditions to Mecca and Honain. All the branches of the tribes that had not yet embraced Islam were now converted. ' The Bani Asad ibn Khozeima were a powerful tribe residing near the hill of Katan in Najd. They were of the Moaddite tribe of the Meccan stock. Tuleiba, their chief, had assembled a force of cavalry and rapid camel-drivers to make a raid upon Medina in A. H. 4. They were dispersed by the Moslems. In the next year they joined the Koreish in the siege of Medina. xlvlii Introduction. did not take any compulsory means to convert tlie people : " Although the city had cheerfully accepted his supremacy," writes Sir W. Muir, " all its in- habitants had not yet embraced the new religion, or formally acknowledged his prophetical claim. Per- haps he intended to follow the course he had pur- sued at Medina and leave the conversion of the people to be gradually accomplished without com- pulsion."^ 29. Now it was more than twenty years that the The wholesale con- I^^i''^^" ^^"^ ^^cn Constantly preach- rSn, fribes'ln T. ^^ ^o the surrouuding tribes of ^•'^^^^' Arabs at Mecca at the time of fairs^ and at the annual pilgrimage gatherings,^ by Mohammad, and by special missionaries of Islam from Medina, and through the reports of the travel- lers and merchants comino; and o-oino; from Mecca and Medina to all parts of Arabia. The numbers of different distant tribes, clans and branches had spread 1 The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, Vol. IV, page 136, Those who had newly joined the Moslem Camp at Mecca to repel the threatening gathering of Hawazin, and those of them who preferred submission to the authority of Mohammad, are called by Sir W. Muir '• his new con- verts." (IV., 149). But in fact they were not called believers. They are called simply Muallafa Qolubohuvi in the Koran (IX., 60) which means whose hearts are to be won over. 2 Okaz between Tayif and Nakhla. Mujanna in the vicinity of Marr-al Zahrau, and Zul-Majaz behind Arafat, both near Mecca. s " From time immemorial, tradition represents Mecca as the scene of a yearly pilgrimage from all quarters of Arabia : — from Yemen, Hadhra- maut and the shores of the Persian Gulph, from the deserts of Syria, and from the distant environs of Hlra and Mesopotamia." — Muir, I, ccxi. Introduction. xlix tlie tidiness of Islam. There were individual cou- verts in most of the tribes. Tliose tribes already not brought over to Islam were ready to embrace it under the foregoing circumstances. Idolatry, simple and loathsome, had no power against the attacks of reason displayed in the doctrines of the Koran. But the idolatrous Koreisli opposed and attacked Islam with persecution and the sword, and strengthened idolatry with earthly weapons. The distant pagan tribes on the side of the Koreish, geographically or genealogically, were prevented by them from embracins^ the new faith. As soon as the hostilities of the Koreish were suspended at the truce of Hodeibia, the Arabs commenced to embrace Islam as already described, and no sooner they sur- rendered and Kaaba^ stripped of its idols — and the ' Sir W. Muir thinks : " The possession of Mecca now imparted a colour of right to his pretensions ; for Mecca was the spiritual centre of the country, to which the tribes from every quarter yielded a reverential homage. The conduct of the annual pilgrimage, the custody of the holy house, the intercalation of the year, the commutation at will of the sacred months, — institutions which affected all Arabia. — belonged by ancient privilege to the Coreish and were now in the hands of Mahomet Moreover, it had been the special care of Mahomet artfully to interweave with the reformed faith all essential parts of the ancient ceremonial. The one was made an inseparable portion of the other." — The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 169. But the remaining tribes who had not hitherto embraced Islam, and the chiefs of the Southern and Eastern Arabia, did not adopt Islam, because Mohammad possessed Mecca, a posi- tion of no political supremacy. No paramount authority throughout the Peninsula had ever been vested in the chief who possessed Mecca. Moham- mad on the surrender of Mecca had abolished all the idolatrous institu- tions which might have served as political or social inducements to the Pagan Arabs to embrace Islam. The intercalation of the year and com- 9 1 Introduction. struggle of spiritual supremacy between idolatry and Islam was practically decided — all tlie remaining tribes on the soutli and east who had not hitherto adhered to Islam hastened to embrace it hosts after hosts during the 9Lh and 10th year of the Hegira. 30. During these two years deputations of con- T,, • J 4. version to Islam were received The various deputa- JrVf^"^ T^r>!'' ''' ^>y Mohammad at Medina from the 9th and 10th year J of the Hegira. ^|jg j^^^^ distant parts of the Peninsula, from Yemen and Hazaramaut from Mahra Oman and Bahrein in the soutii, and from the mutation of the sacred months were cancelled for ever in the plain words of the Koran : '• Verily, twelve months is the number of months with God, according to God's book, gince the day when He created the Heavens and the earth, of these, four are sacred ; this is the right usage." "To carry over a sacred month to another is an increase of unbelief only. They who do not believe are led into error by it. They allow it one year and forbid it another, that they may make good the number of months which God hath hallowed, and they allow that which God hath prohibit- ed. The evil of their deeds hath been prepared for them bi/ Satan ; for God guideth not the people who do not believe." — Sura IX, verses 36, 37. The custody of the house was no more an office of honour or privilege. The ancient ceremonial of pilgrimage was not interwoven with the reformed faith. The rites of Kaaba were stripped of every idolatrous tendency. And the remaining and essential part of the pilgrimage was depreciated. " By no means can their flesh reach unto God, neither their blood ; but piety on your part reacheth Him." Sura XXII, verse 38. And after all the idolaters were not allowed to enter it. " It is not for the votaries of other gods with God, witnesses against themselves of iniidelity, to visit the temples of God."— Sura IX. verse 28. Sir W. Muir himself says regarding Mohammad : " The rites of Kaaba were retained, but stripped by him of every idolatrous tendency ; and they still bang, a strange unmeaning shroud, around the living theism of Islam." — Vol. I, Intro., p. cuxviii. Introduction. li borders of Svrin and tlie outskirts of Persia. Many of the chiefs and princes of Yemen and Mahra, of Oman, Bahrein and Yemama — christians and pagans — intimated by letter or by embassy their conversion to Islam. The Prophet used to send teachers with deputations and embassies, where they were not already sent, to instruct the newly converted people the duties of Islam and to see that every remnant of idolatry was obli- terated. 31. Here is a list of the important deputations and embassies as well as the List of the deputa- tions of conversion re- couvcrsion of notable pcrsou- ceived by Mohammad at Medina during A. H. ^o-eS duriuo; tliese tWO VCarS 9 and 10. ^ r) J arranged in alphabetical order with geographical and genealogical notes/ Sir W. Muir thinks it " tedious and unprofitable " to enumerate them all,^ while he takes notice of every apocryphal tradition and devours with eagerness all fictions unfavourable to the cause of Islam. ' For these deputations see Ibn Is-hak (died 151), Hishamee (died 213), Ibn Sad (died 213), Muir's Life of Mahomet, VoL IV, Chap. 30th, Seerat Shami (died 942), and Halabi (died 1044). For the genealogies of these tribes consult Qalqashandi's Dictionary of Tribes, and Ibn Khaldiin's History. Regarding the geographical positions of these tribes the reader is referred to the most valuable map of Arabia in Sir W. Muir's Annals of Early Caliphate, London 1882. - The Life of Mahomet by Sir W. Muir, Vol. IV, pp. 181 and 226. lii Introduction. Bani Atlrair.^ Bani Abcl-ul-Kays.^ Bani Ahmas.^ Bani Anaza.^ Bani Asad.^ Bani Azd (Shanovali).^ Bani Azd (Oman)/ Bani Bahila.^ Bani Bahra.^ Bani BajUa.^*' Batii Baka.ii Bani Bakr bin Wail.^^ Bani Bali.^^ Bani Bjiriq." Bani Daree.^^ Farwa.^*^ Bani Fezara.^'^ Bani Ghafiq.^^ Bani Ghanim.^^ Bani Ghassan.^^ Bani Hamadcln.^^ Bani Hanifa.-^ Bani Htiris of Najran.-^ Baui Hilal bin Aamir bin Saasd,a.^* Bani Himyar.^^ Bani Jaad.^^ Baui Jaafir bin Kelab bin Rabia.2^ Jeifer bin al Jalandi.'-'^ Bani Jobeina.-^ Bani Jufi.3« Bani Kalb.^i Bani Khas-am bin An- mar. " Bani Khaulan.^^ Bani Kilab.3* Bani Kinana.^^ Bani Kinda.^*^ Bani Mahrah." Bani Mohdrib.^s Bani Morad.^^ Bani Muntafiq.^'^ Bani Murrah.*^ Bani Nakha.*2 Bani Nohd.*^ Bani Ozra.** Bani Raha.*^ Bani Rawasa.^" Bani Saad Hozeim.^'^ Bani Sadif.^^ Bani Sadoos.*^ Bani Sahim.^° Bani Sakeef.^i Bani Salamani.^^ Bani Shaiban/^ Bani Sodaa.^* Bani Taghlib.^^ Bani Tajeeb.^^ Bani Tamim.^^ Bani Tay.^« Baui Zobeid.^" ' A branch of Hawazin and sister tribe of -the Sakeef inhabited the province of Najd and were of the Moaddite stock. The tribe had taken little share with the rest of the Bani Hawazin at the battle of Honain against the Moslems A. H. 8. The famous poet Lebid, author of one Introduction. liii Contitutation of Foot-nnte from 2^. Hi. of the Moallakas, belonged to that tribe. [See the Life of Lebid from Ketab-ul-Aghani, in an article on the Moallaqah by Lebid, by C. J. Lyall, C.S., in the Journals of the Asiatic Society, Bengal, No. 1, 1S77, pp. 62-76 : Calcutta. ^ Bani Abd-ul-Kays from Bahrein. The tribe has been described at page 47. There were many persons in the embassy. They were Christians before they embraced Islam. ^ Descended from Anmar of the Kahtanite stock of Yemen. * A sub-tribe of Asad, descendants of Rabia of the Moaddite stock. These are the Aneze of Burkhardt. * Already described at p. 47. The rest of them now embraced Islam. It is said that Sura xlix, 17, refers to them. " Bani Azd (Shanovah) from Yemen. This tribe was a portion of the Azdite tribe left at Yemen at the time of the northern emigration of Azd. They were a branch of Kahtan of the Kahtanite stock. In their emigration northward from Yemen they resided a long time in Hijaz at Batn Murr near Mecca. In their journey further on to the north of Syria, leaving Kozaa, they changed their name to Ghassan from their long residence, by the way, near a fountain of that name. The tribes Aus and Khazraj had separated afterwards from these Ghassanides, and settled at Yathrib, afterwards known as Medina. One Surad was the chief of the embassy of Azd from Yemen to Mohammad at Medina. Sir W. Muir says : " This person was recognized by Mahomet as the ruler of his clan, and commission was given to him to war against the heathen tribes in his neighbourhood." (The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, page 219.) The Arabic word " yojdlild" in the original biographies, only means " to strive," and does not mean '• to make war," as understood by Sir W. Muir, He has himself translated the same word as " striving " in Vol. Ill, page 32. At page 26.5 of the same volume he translates it by " to do ut- most." I have discussed the subject in full in Appendix A. of this work. ^ Another branch of the Azd described above. * Bani Bahila, otherwise called Saad Manat, descendants of Ghatafan of the Moaddite stock. " Bani Bahra (bin Amr bin Al-Haf bin Kozaa), who were a branch of the Kozaa of the Himyarite stock, had emigrated to the north, and settled in the Ghassanide territory. '" Bani Bajila, a sister of Khas-am and descendants of Anmar bin Nizar of the Kahtanite stock. They inhabited Yemen. The Bajila after professing Islam had destroyed the famous image of Kholasa. " A branch of Bani Aamir bin Saasaa in the centre of Arabia. '^ They lived about Yemama and the shores of the Persian Gulf. liv Introduction. Continuatuni, of Foot-note from ]}. Hi. They were one of the Moaddite tribes. The war of Basus between Ban Bakr and their sister tribe Bani Taghlib had lasted for forty years. There have been famous poets in the Bani Bakr tribe, among whom are Tarafa. Haris bin Hiliza, and Maimiin Al-Asha. The Bani Bakr and Bani Tamim were constantly at war, which was abandoned under the influence of Islam, when both the parties were converted to it during the lifetime of Mohammad. " They were a branch of the Kozaa from the Himyarite stock, the descendants of Kahtan, and had settled in the north of Arabia in the Ghassianide territory on the borders of Syria. '^ A sub-tribe of Kozaa. '5 A clan of the tribe of Lakhm. '" An Arab of the Bani Juzam in the north of Arabia and Governor of Amman in the Ghassanide territory announced his conversion to Mohammad by a despatch in A. H. 8. " They have already been described at page 46. Their deputation waited upon Mohammad oq his return from Tabuk. '*■ Descendants of Aumar of the Kahtanite stock. '^ A sub-tribe of Azd at Yemen. "^ Already described under Bani Azd. '^^ Bani Hamadan of the Kahtanite descent. An important tribe in the east of Yemen. ^■^ A Christian branch of the Bani Bakr who inhabited Yemama. " The account of the embassy of the Bani Hanifa is more decidedly unfavourable to Christianity, but its details appear of doubtful authority. Moseilama, the false Prophet, was among the number, and there are some unlikely anticipations of his sacrilegious claims. " As the embassy were departing, Mahomet gave them a vessel in which were the leavings of the water with which he had performed his lustra- tion ; and he said, — ' When you reach ycur country, break down yov,r church, and sprinhle Us sight with this ivater, and make in its jjlaee a jnosque' .... " The story appears to me improbable, because nowhere else is Mahomet represented as exhibiting such antagonism to Christians and their churches when they submitted themselves to him." — Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. II, pp. 30B-i, footnote. The author changes his opinion in the fourth volume of his work and says : " I have there stated (in Vol. II) the story to be improbable. But I am now inclined to think that during the last year or two of Mahomet's life, there was quite enough of anta- gonistic feeling against Christianity as it presented itself in the profession of the Arab and Syrian tribes to support the narrative."^ Life of Mahomet by Sir W. Muir, Vol. IV, page 218, footnote. . . Introduction. Iv Continuation of Foot-note from p. Hi. This is a mere presumption on the part of the writer, and there is no proof of Mohammad's antagonism towards Christianity at any period of his life except against those who waged war with him. The following verse of the Koran will show how far I am true : — " Verily they who believe (Moslems), and they who follow the Jewish religion, and the Christians and Sabeites, whoever of those believeth in God and the Last Day, and doth that which is right shall have their reward with their Lord : Fear shall not come upon them, neither shall they be grieved." ^ Also a Christian tribe in Yemen descended from the Kahtanite stock of the Bani Madhij, and collateral therefore with Bani Kinda. Two of the embassy, one of them being Akil or Abd-ul-Masih, the chief of the deputation, adopted Islam. The rest returned with a full guarantee from Mohammad for the preservation of their social and religious liberty. Farther informatlDa regarding the Bani Haris of Najran will be found at pp. 48 and 106 of this book. " Kdtib ill WdcJ.'idi, p. 69. The subsequent history of the Najran Christians is there traced. They continued in possession of their lands and rights under the treaty during the rest of Mohammad's life and the whole of Abu Bakr's Caliphate. Then they were accused of taking usury, and Omar expelled them from the land, and wrote as follows : — " The despatch of Omar, the Commander of the Faithful, to the people of Najran. Whoever of them emigrates is under the guarantee of God. No Moslem shall injure them ; — to fulfil that which Mahomet and Abu Bakr wrote unto them. " Now to whomsoever of the chiefs of Syria and Irac they may repair, let such chiefs allot them lands, and whatever they cultivate therefrom shall be theirs ; it is an exchange for their own lands. None shall injure or maltreat them ; Moslems shall assist them against oppressors. Their tribute is remitted for two years. They will not be troubled except for evil deeds. " Some of them alighted in Irac, and settled in Najrania near to Cufa. " That the offence of usury is alleged in justification of this measure appears to me to disprove the common tradition that a command was said to have been given by Mahomet on his deathbed for the Peninsula to be swept clear of all other religions but Islam." — Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. II, pp. 301-2, ^* Descendants of the great Ghatafan tribe already described. ^ Bani Himyar from Yemen. The Himyarites are too well-known to be described. The Himyarite princes of Ro-en, Mu-afir, Hamadan and Bazan, all of the Christian faith in Yemen, embraced Islam and announced Ivi Introduction. Continuation of Foot-note from j^- ?"'• their conversion by letter sent to Mohammad through their emissaries which reached him after his return from Tabiik. ^* Either a clan of Lakhm. or a branch of Bani Aamir. " A sub-tribe of the Bani Aamir bin Saasaa already described. ^' The King of Oman, together with the people of Oman, embraced Islam during A. H. 8 and 9. The people of Oman were of the Azdite stock. ^ Already described at page 43. ^" A branch of Saad-al-Ashira from the Kahtanite stock. This tribe inhabited Yemen. They had some peculiar prejudice against eating the heart of an animal. Mohammad had caused their chief to break his superstition, which he did by making him eat the roasted heart of an animal. But they returned disgusted when told that his (the chief's) mother who had committed infanticide was in hell. However they sent another deputation a second time and finally embraced Islam. ^' They settled in Dumat-ul-Jundal, now Jal-al-Jowf, north of Arabia. They were a tribe of the Bani Kozaa descended from Himyar. ^' A tribe of the Kahtanite stock at Yemen. They lived in a hilly country of that name in Yemen. ^' They were a tribe of the Kahtanite stock on the coast of Yemen. ^* A clan of the Bani Aamir bin Saasaa of the Hawazin tribe already described. *^ Descendants of Khazima of the Moaddite stock. '^ The Bani Kinda princes, Vail bin Hi jar and Al-Ash-as bin Kays ; the former, the chief of the coast, and the latter, the chief of the Hazaramaub in the south of Arabia. They with their whole clans embraced Islam. Bani Kinda were a powerful tribe 'of the Kahalanite stock. ^' A clan of Ozra from Kozaa described at page 46. ^ Descendants of G-hatafan of the Moaddite stock. ^^ They inhabited the sea-coast of Yemen, and were a tribe of Muzhie of the Kahtanite stock. ^ A branch of the tribe of Aamir bin Saasaa. ■" A branch of Zobian. *- They were a tribe of the Kahtanite stock, residing in Yemen. Their deputation consisted of two hundred persons. It is said this was the last deputation received by Mohammad. Some time before this Ali was sent to the Bani Nakh-a and other tribes of the Mudhij stock in Yemen. " A tribe of Kozaa of the Himyarite stock at Yemen. hitroduction. Ivii Continnation of Foot-note from j). Hi. ** A sub-tribe of Kozaa inhabiting Syria described at page 46. ^^ A tribe of Muzhij of tbe Kahtanite stock at Yemen. ■"^ They were a clan of the Bani Admit bin Saasaa already described. " A tribe of the Kozad of the Moaddite stock, and according to some from Yemen. *^ Descendants of Hazaramaut of the Kahtanite stock at Yemen. *^ A clan of the Bani Hauifa, descendants of Bakr bin Wail already described. ^" A clan of the Bani Shaiban. the descendants of Bakr bin Wail already mentioned. *' The Bani Sakeef (Thackif) were a branch of the Mazar tribes of the Moaddite stock. They were a sub-tribe of the Hawazin and sister tribe to the Bani Adwan, Ghatafan, and Suleim. They (the Bani Sakeef) lived at Tayif and worshipped the idol Lat ov TaqJiia. Orwa, a chief of Tayif, had gone to Medina to embrace Islam. His first generous impulse was to return to Tayif and invite his fellow-citizens to share in the blessings imparted by the new faith. Upon his making public his conversion, he was wounded by a mob and suffered martyr- dom. But he left a favourable impression of Islam at Tayif. Their deputation consisted of sis chiefs with fifteen or twenty followers. The Prophet received them gladly and pitched a tent for their accommodation in the court of his mosque. Every evening after supper he paid them there a visit and instructed them in the faith till it was dark. Sir W. Muir writes: — "The martyrdom of Orwa compromised the inhabitants of Tayif, and forced to continue the hostile course they had previously been pursuing. But they began to suffer severely from the marauding attacks of Bani Hawazin under Malik. That chief, according to his en- gagement, maintained the increasing predatory warfare against them." — Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, page 204. At page 155 he says regarding Malik,—'- being confirmed in his chiefship he engaged to maintain a constant warfare with the citizens of Tayif." But there was no such engagement with Malik. The authority (Hishamee) referred to by Sir W. Muir does not speak anything of the alleged engagement. Vide Hishamee, page 879. Hishamee has only so much that Mohammad made Malik chief of those who were converted from the tribe. These were the clans of Somala, Salma, and Fahm, and that he used to fight with them against the Sakifites. Sir W. Muir further writes that the inhabitants of Tayif said among themselves : •' We have not strength to fight against the Arab tribe all around that have plighted their faith toM&homet, and bound the7)iselves to fgJit in his cause (Vol. IV, p. 205). The italics are mine and these words are. not to be found in the original h Iviii Introduction. Continuation of Foot-note from p. Hi. authorities. Hishamee (page 91i) has Bayaoo va Aslamoo, i. e., they have plighted and submitted (or converted to Islam). ^- Descendants of the Kozaa inhabited the hills of that name (Salaman). ^^ Descendants and branch of Bakr bin Wail. ^* A tribe of the Kahtanite stock from Yemen. ^° The Bani Taghlib bin Wail were a tribe of the Moaddite stock of Meccan origin and a sister tribe to the Bani Bakr bin Wail. Their wars are famous in the annals of Arabia. The war of Basils has been already alluded to under Bani Bakr. These tribes, the Bani Bakr and Taghlib, were located in Yemama, Bahrein, Najd, and Tihama, but lastly the Bani Taghlib had emigrated to Mesopotamia and professed the Christian faith. The members of their deputation to Mohammad wore golden crosses. When invited to Islam, they did not embrace it, but promised to allow their children to become Moslems. Mohammad allowed them to maintain unchanged their profession of Christianity. Their Christianity was of a notoriously superficial character. " The Taghlib," said Ali, the fourth Khalif, " are not Christians ; they have borrowed from Christianity only the custom of drinking wine." — Dozy Historie, i, 20, ^° A clan of Kinda from the sub-tribe of Sakun at Yemen. " The Bani Tamim were descendants of Tabikha bin Elyas of the Moaddite stock. They are famous in the history of Najd, the north, eastern desert of which from the confines of Syria to Yemama they inhabited. They were at constant warfare with the Bani Bakr bin Abd Monat, descendants of Kinana of the Moaddite stock, from 615 to 630 A.D. All the branches of the tribe which had not yet converted to Islam were now converted in A.H. 9. ^^ The Bani Tay was a great tribe of the Kahtanite stock of Yemen, had moved northwards, and settled in the mountains of Aja and Salma to the north of Najd and Hijaz and the town of Tyma. They had adopted Christianity, but some of them were Jews and Pagans. Their intertribal war has been alluded to in para, 26. The whole tribe now embraced Islam. " A deputation from the Bani Tay, headed by their chief, Zeid-al-Khail, came to Medina to ransom the prisoners, soon after All's expedition. Mahomet was charmed with Zeid, of whose fame both as a warrior and a poet he had long heard. He changed his name to Zeid al Khcir {the henefieent), granted him a large tract of country, and sent him away laden with presents." Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol IV, p. 178. *' They were a branch of Sad-al-Ashira of the Mazhij tribe of the Kahtanite stock. They inhabited the sea-coast of Yemen. Inti'oduction. lix 32. Thus all these tribal conversions and the All the convemoTiK, specclj Spread of Islam in the individual and tribal, i i c k ^ ' without any compui- wiiole ot Arabia was accom- plished without any resort to arms, compulsion, threat, or " the scymitar in one hand and the Koran in the other." The Pas^an Arabs, the Christians and the Jews, those who embraced Islam, adopted it joyfully and voluntarily. Islam had been much persecuted for many years from the third year of its Prophet's mission to the sixth year after the Hegira — a period of about six- teen years, but it flourished alike during persecu- tions and oppositions as well as during periods of peace and security of the Moslems. It was the result of Mohammad's staunch adherence to the uncompromising severity of his inflexible principles of preaching the divine Truth and his sincere belief in his own mission that he bore steadfastly all the hardships of persecutions at Mecca and the horrors of the aggressive wars of the Koreish and others at Medina, and persuaded the whole of Arabia, Pagan, Jewish and Christian, to adopt Islam voluntarily.^ ' The rebellion of almost the whole of Arabia — wrongly called apostasy — after the death of Mohammad was chiefly against the Government of Abu Bakr, the first Khalifa of the Republic of Islam. No such paramount power over the whole of Arabia was ever vested in the chiefs of Mecca, and the Arabs were unaccustomed to this new form of Government. They had neither rebelled against Islam, nor apostatized from their religion, except a very few of them who had attached them- selves to Moseilama for a short time. Ix introduction. 33. It was not an easy task for Mohammad to have converted the Arabs from Mohammad was not . . i . i i t • favoured with circum- their national idolatry to a religion stances round him. of pure and strict monotheism. The aspect of Aral^ia was strictly conservative, and there were no prospects of hopeful changes. The indigenous idolatry and deep-rooted superstition, the worship of visible and material objects of devo- tion, — idols and unshaped stones, — something that the eyes can see and the hands can handle, — and the dread of invisible genii and other evil spirits, held the Arab mind in a rigorous and undisputed thraldom. Arabia was obstinately fixed in the pro- fession of idolatry which the Peninsula being thickly overspread, widely diffused and thoroughly organized, was supported by national pride and latterly by the sword. " It was," writes Dr. Marcus Dods, " certainly no hopeful task which Mohammed undertook when he proposed by the influence of religion to combine into one nation tribes so incapable of being deeply influenced by any religion, and so irreconcilably opposed to one another ; to abolish customs which had the sanction of immemorial usage ; and to root out an idolatry, which, if it had no profound hold upon the spiritual nature, was at least bound up with old family traditions and well-understood tribal interests."^ The sacrifices made to, and the requirements essential to Islam, its numerous positive prohibitions, the immediate repudiation of old prejudices, the ' Mohammed, Buddha and Christ, by Marcus Dods, D.D,, page 83. Introduction. Ixi reniiuciation of all sorts of idolatry and superstition, the throwing aside of fjivourite idols and the aban^ douing of licentious rites and customs, the total abstinence from much-relished vices, the demand for producing practical effect on the will and character, and the reaping of material fruits from holy and religious life — were barriers insurmountable for the speedy progress of Islam. Notwithstanding these impediments Mohammad succeeded, by the influence of his religion, in combining into one nation the wild and independent tribes, and putting a stop to their internecine wars ; in abolishing the custom which had the sanction of immemorial usage ; and in rooting out the national idolatry of indigenous growth, without compromising his inflexible principles of truth and sincerity and honesty ; and without adopting the superstitions and vices of the people. Dr. Mosheim thinks that, " the causes of this new reli- gion's rapid progress are not difficult to be discovered : Mahomet's law itself was admirably fitted to the natural disposition of man, but especially to the manners, opinions and vices prevalent among the people of the East ; for it was extremely simple proposing few things to be believed ; nor did it enjoin many and difficult duties to be per- formed, or such as laid severe restraints on the propen- sities/'i It is manifest from the history of religions that the people generally try their best to obtain reli- ' Mosheiins Ecclesiastical History, Book II, Chap. Ill, page 73. Ixii introduction. gion's sanction for the vices prevalent among tliem. But there is no doubt in this that Mohammad never sanctioned the idolatries and superstitions of the Arabs, nor he framed his doctrines according to the opinions and fancies of the people. He preached vehemently against everything he found blamable in the people ; he spared not their dear idols and beloved gods and the dreaded genii, nor accommo- dated his preaching and reform to indulge them in their evil practices ; nor did he adopt any of the vices current among the people into his system. Mohammad certainly did lay stress on the pro- pensities of the mind and made the actions of the heart answerable to God, and preferred inward holi- ness to outside form. 53. " The heart is prone to evils." — Sura XI [. 38. " The hearing and the sight and the heart, each of these shall be inquired of." — Sura XVI. 225. " God will not punish you for a mistake in your oaths ; but He will punish you for that which your hearts have assented to. God is gracious, merciful." 284. " Whatever is in the Heavens and in the Earth is God's, and whether ye disclose what is in your minds or conceal it, God will reckon with you for it ; and whom He pleaseth will He forgive, and whom he pleaseth will He punish ; for God is All-powerful." — Sura II. 5. " And unless made with intent of heart, mistakes in this matter shall be no crimes in you." — Sura XXXIII. The teachings of the Koran make our natural inclination subject to regulation. It lays stress Introduction. Ixiii upon tlie heart of men. Note the following injunc- tions regarding internal purity : 120, " Abandon the outside iniquity and its inside." — Sura VI. 152. " Come not near the pollutions outside or inward." —lUd. 31. " Say : Truly my Lord hath forbidden filthy actions whether open or secret, and iniquity and unjust violence." —Sura VIII. Keferring to Dr. Mosheim's cause of the spread of Islam, I will quote Henry Hallam's opinion regard- ino' the causes of the success of Islam. Henry Hallam, after enumerating the three import- ant causes of the success of Islam, the first of which is " those just and elevated notions of the divine nature and of moral duties, the gold-ore that pervades the dross of the Koran, which were calculated to strike a serious and reflecting people," and explaining the two others which are not against us, he says:— " It may be expected that I should add to this what is commonly considered as a distinguishing mark of Moham- medanism, — its indulgence to voluptuousness. But this appears to be greatly exaggerated. Although the character of its founder may have been tainted by sensuality as ferociousness, I do not think that he relied upon induce- ments of the former kind for the difi'usion of his system. We are not to judge of this by rules of Christian purity, or of European practice. If polygamy was a prevailing usage in Arabia, as is not questioned, its permission gave no additional license to the proselytes of Mohammed, who will be found rather to have narrowed the unbounded Ixiv Introduction. liberty of oriental manners in this respect ; while his decided condemnation of adultery and of incestuous con- nections, so frequent among barbarous nations, does not argue a very las and accommodating morality. A devout Mussulman exhibits much more of the stoical than the epicurean character. Nor can any one read the Koran without being sensible that it breathes an austere and scrupulous spirit. And in fact, the founder of a new reli- gion or sect is little likely to obtain permanent success by indulging the vices or luxuries of mankind. I should rather be disposed to reckon the severity of Mohammed's discipline among the causes of its influence. Precepts of ritual observance, being always definite and unequivocal, are less likely to be neglected, after their obligation has been acknowledged than those of moral virtue. Thus the long fasting, the pilgrimages, and regular prayers and ablutions, the constant almsgiving, the abstinence from stimulating liquors, enjoined by the Koran, created a visi- ble standard of practice among its followers, and preserved a continual recollection of their law. " But the prevalence of Islam in the lifetime of its Pro- ' phet, and during the first ages of its existence, was chiefly owing to the spirit of martial energy that he infused into it. The religion of Mohammed is as essentially a military system as the institution of chivalry in the west of Europe. The people of Arabia, a race of strong passions and sangui- nary temper, inured to habits of pillage and murder, found in the law of their native prophet not a license, but a command, to desolate the world, and the promise of all that their glowing imaginations could anticipate of Paradise annexed to all in which they most delighted upon earth."^ 1 Hallam's Middle Ages, Vol. II, pp. 118-9. Introduction. Ixv This is sufficient to refute the opiniou of Dr. Moslieim. But wluit ILiUam says regnrding the prevalence of Ishiin in the lifetime of the Prophet, and durinir the first ai>:es of its existence, that "the peoj)le of Arabia, a race of strong passions and sanguinary temjier, inured to habits of pillage and murder, found in the law of their native prophet not a license, but a command, to desolate the world," is untenable. There was neither a command nor a license to desolate the world, nor was ^ny . person or tribe converted to Islam with that object in view. All the teachings of the Koran and the history of the early spread of Islam falsify such an idea. 34. I will pause here for a while, and ask the indulgence of the reader to reflect Mohammad's un- ^ wavering belief in his upOU the cirCUUlStaUCeS of the own mission and his success show him to be persecutions, iusults and injuries, a true prophet. expulsion and attack suffered by Mohammad and his early followers,^ and his un- ' The early followers of Mohammad bore persecutions and exile with patience and steadfastness; and never recanted. Look to the increas- ing number of these early Moslems, their magnanimous forbearance, and the spontaneous abandonment of their dear homes and relations, and their defending their Prophet with their blood. The number of Christian believers during the whole lifetime of Christ was not more than 120 (Act I, 1.5). They had a material view of the Messiah's kingdom, and had fled at the first sound of danger. Two of the disciples when walking to Emmaus observed, " We trusted that it had been He who should have redeemed Israel," and the apostle asked Jesus after the so-called resur- rection, " Lord, wilt Thou at this time restore the kingdom of Israel ?" '• During the periods thus indicated as possible for comparison, perse- cution and rejection were the fate of both. But the thirteen years' i Ixvi Introduction. wavering adherence to preacli against the gross idohitry and immorality of his people, which all show his sincere belief in his own mission, and his possession of .'in irresistible inward impulse to publish the Divine Truth of his Revelations regard- ing the unity in the Godhead and other moral reforms. His preachings of monotheism, and his enjoining righteousness, and forbidding evil deeds, were not attended to for many years with material success. In proportion as he preached against the gross idolatry and superstition of his people, he was subjected to ridicule and scorn, and finally to an inveterate persecution which ruined his and his follower's fortune. But he unflinchingly ke})t his path ; no threats and no injuries hindered him from still preaching to the ungodly people a purer and higher theology and better morality than had ever been set before them. He claimed no temporal power, no spiritual domination ; he asked but for simple toleration, for free permission to win men by persuasion into the way of truth. He declared he was sent neither to compel conviction by miracles, ministry of Mahomet had brought about a far greater change to the external eye than the whole lifetime of Christ. The apostles fled at the first sound of danger, and however deep the inner work may have been in the 500 by whom our Lord was seen, it had produced as yet but little outward action. There was among them no spontaneous quitting of their homes, nor emigration by hundreds, such as distinguished the early Moslems ; nor any rapturous resolution by the converts of a foreign city to defend the Prophet with their blood." —The Life of Mahomet by Sir W. Muir, Vol. II, page 274. Introduction. Ixvii nor to constrain outward profession by tlie sword/ Does this leave any doubt of the strong convic- tion in liis mind, as Avell as in the truth of his cLaim, to be a man sent by God to preach the Divine Per- fection, and to teach mankind the ways of rigliteous- ness? He honestly and sincerely conveyed the message which he had received or which he con- scientiously or intuitively believed to have received from his God and which had all the si2:ns and marks of truth iu itself. What is meant by a True ' " Let us for a momeafc look back to the period when a ban was pro- claimed at Mecca against all the citizens, whether professed converts or not, who espoused his cause ; when they were shut up in the Slich or quarter of Abu Talib, and there for three years without prospect of relief endured want and hardship. Those must have been steadfast anc mighty motives which enabled him amidst all this opposition and apparent hopelessness of success, to maintain his principles unshaken. No sooner was he relieved from confinement, than, despairing of his native city, he went forth to Tayif and summoned its rulers and inhabit- ants to repentance ; he was solitary and unaided, but he had a message, he said, from his Lord. On the third day he was driven out of the town with ignominy, blood trickling from the wounds inflicted on him by the populace. He retired to a little distance, and there poured forth his complaint to God : then he returned to Mecca, there to carry on the same outwardly hopeless cause with the same high confidence in its ultimate success. We search in vain through the pages of profane history for a parallel to the struggle in which for thirteen years the Prophet of Arabia in the face of discouragement and threats, rejection and persecution retained his faith unwavering, preached repentance, and denounced God's wrath against his godless fellow-citizens. Sur- rounded by a little band of faithful men and women, he met insults, menaces, dangers, with a high and patient trust in the future. And when at last the promise of safety came from a distant quarter, he calmly waited until his followers had all departed, and then disappeared from amongst his ungrateful and rebellious people." — Muir, Vol. IV pages 314-15. Ixviii Introduction. Prophet or a Revelation is not more than what we find in the case of Mohammad.^ The general office and main business of a pro- phet is to proclaim to mankind the Divine Perfec- tion, to teach publicly purer theology and higlier morality, to enjoin the people to do what is right and just, and to forbid wliat is wrong and bad. It is neither a part of the prophet to predict future events, nor to show supernatural miracles. And further, a prophet is neither immaculate nor infal- lible. The Revelation is a natural product of human fjiculties. A prophet feels that his mind is illumined by God, and the thoughts which are expressed by him and spoken or written under tiiis influence are to be regarded as the words of God. This illumination of the mind or the effect of the ' " That he was the impostor pictured by some writers is refuted alike by his unwavering belief in the truth of his own mission, by the loyalty and unshaken confidence of his companions, who had ample opportunity of forming a right estimate of his sincerity, and finally, by the magni- tude of the task which he brought to so successful an issue. No impost- or, it may safely be said, could have accomplished so mighty a work. No one unsupported by a living faith in the reality of his commission, in the goodness of his cause, could have maintained the same consistent attitude through long years of adverse fortune, alike in the day of vic- tory and in the hour of defeat, in the plenitude of his power and at the moment of death." — Islam and its Founder, by J. W. H. Stobart, M.A,, page 23, " Of the sincerity of his belief in his own mission there can be no doubt. The great merit is his that among a people given up to idolatry he rose to a vivid perception of the Unity of God, and preached this great doctrine with firmness and constancy, amid ridicule and persecu- tion. But there it seems to me that the eulogy of the Prophet ought to cease." — Islam under the Arabs by R. D. Osborn. London 1876, p. 90. fulrodiictwn. Ixix Divine Influence differ in any propliet according to the capacity of the recipient, or according to the circumstances — physical, moral, and religious — in which he is placed. 35. Although his mission was only to convey striking effects of ^he messagc and preach puhlicly Mohammad's reforms. what was rcvealcd to him, and he was not responsihle for the conversion of the ungodly polytheists to the purer theology and higher morality, or in other words, to the faith of Islam, yet whatever success and bene- ficial results in the sphere of theology, morality, and reforms in social matters he achieved was a strono; evidence of his Divine mission. In the name of God and in the character of His Apostle, he wrought a great reform according to his light in his own country. " Every good tree briugeth forth good fruit."— (Matt. VII, 17). Facts are stubborn things, and facts are conclusive in these points. The effects produced by his preaching, and the changes wrought by them in the religious, social, and political sphere of the polytheists, the idola- trous and grossly superstitious Arabs within a comparatively short period, mostly consisting of persecutions at Mecca, and struggles at Medina, were very striking. From an indiscriminate mass of polytheism and gross superstitious belief in gods, genii, the sons and daughters of God, he Ixx Introduction. irave tliem a pure monotheistic belief, recognizing no other superior power but the Ahnighty. He raised the moral standard of his countrymen, ameliorated the condition of women, curtailed and mitigated polygamy and slavery, and virtually abolished them as well as infanticide. He most sternly denounced and absolutely forbade many heinous evils of the Arab society. He united a number of wild and independent tribes into a nation and abolished their internecine wars. Sir W. Muir says : — " Few and simple as the positive precepts of Mahomet up to this time appear, they had wrought a marvellous and a mighty work. Never, since the days when primitive Christianity startled the world from its sleep, and waged a mortal combat with Heathenism, had men seen the like arousing of spiritual life, the like faith that suffered sacrifice and took joyfully the spoiling of goods for con- science sake. "From time beyond memory, Mecca and the whole Peninsula had been steeped into spiritual torpor. The slight and transient influence of Judaism, Christianity, or Philosophy upon the Arab mind, had been but as the ruffling here and there the surface of a quiet lake ; — all remained still and motionless below. The people were sunk in superstition, cruelty, and vice. It was a common practice for the eldest son to marry his father's widows inherited as property with the rest of the estate. Pride and poverty had introduced among them, as it has among the Hindus, the crime of female infanticide. Their religion consisted in gross idolatry, and their ftiith was rather the Introduction. Ixxi dark superstitious dread of uuseen beings, whose goodwill they sought to propitiate, and to avert their displeasure, than the belief in an over-ruling Providence. The Life to come and Retribution of good and evil were, as motives of action, practically unknown. " Thirteen years before the Hegira, Mecca lay lifeless in this debased state. What a change those thirteen years had now produced ! A band of several hundred persons had rejected idolatry, adopted the worship of one great God, and surrendered themselves implicitly to the o-uid- ance of what they believed a revelation from Him; — praying to the Almighty with frequency and fervour, looking for pardon through His mercy, and striving to follow after good works, almsgiving, chastity and justice. They now lived under a constant sense of the Omnipotent power of God, and of His providential care over the minutest of their concerns. In all the gifts of nature, in every relation of life, at each turn of their affairs, indi- vidual or public, they saw His hand. And, above all, the new spiritual existence in which they joyed and gloried, was regarded as the mark of His especial grace, while the unbelief of their blinded fellow-citizens was the hard- ening stamp of His predestined reprobation. Mahomet- was the minister of life to them, — the source under God of their new-born hopes; and to him they yielded a fitting and implicit submission. " In so short a period, Mecca had, from this wonderful movement, been rent into two factions, which, uimiindful of the old land-marks of tribe and family, were arrayed in deadly opposition one against the other. The believers bore persecution with a patient and tolerant spirit. And though it was their wisdom so to do, the credit of a man-- Ixxii Introduction. nanimous forbearance may be freely accorded to them. One hundred men and women, rather than abjure the precious faith, had abandoned their homes, and sought refuge, till the storm should be overpast, in Abyssinian exile. And now even a larger number, with the Prophet himself, emigrated from their fondly-loved city, with its sacred temple, — to them the holiest spot on earth, — and fled to Medina. There the same wonder-working charm had within two or three years prepared for them a brotherhood ready to defend the Prophet and his followers with their blood. Jewish truth had long sounded in the ears of the men of Medina, but it was not till they heard the spirit-stirring strains of the Arabian prophet, that they too awoke from their slumber, and sprang suddenly into a new and earnest life."^ Further on Sir W. Muir says: — " And what have been the effects of the system which, established by such instrumentality, Mahomet has left behind him. We may freely concede that it banished for ever many of the darker elements of superstition which had for ages shrouded the Peninsula. Idolatry vanished before the battle-cry of Islam ; the doctrine of the unity and infinite perfections of God, and of a special all-pervading Providence, became a living principle in the hearts and. lives of the followers of Mahomet, even as it had in his own. An absolute surrender and submis- sion to the divine will (the very name of Islam) was demanded as the first requirement of the religion. Nor are social virtues wanting. Brotherly love is inculcated within the circle of the faith ; orphans are to be protect- ed, and slaves treated with consideration ; intoxicating ' The Life of Mahomet by Sir W. Muir. LL D.. Vol. II. pp. 269—71. TntroducUon. Ixxiii drinks aro prohibited, and Maliometanisin may boast of a degree of tempei-ance unknown to any other creed. "^ Dr. M;u-cus Dods writes : — " But is Mahomnied in no sense a Prophet ? Certainly he had two of tlie most important characteristics of the pro[)hetic order. He saw truth about God which his fellowmen did not see, and he had an irresistible inward impulse to publish this truth. In i-esjiect of this latter qualification Mahoramed may stand comparison with the most courageous of the heroic pro[)hets of Israel. For the truth's sake he risked his life, he suffered daily persecu- tions for years, and eventually banishment, the loss of pro- perty, of the goodwill of his fellow-citizens, and the confi- dence of his friends — he suffered in short as much as any man can suffer short of death, which he only escaped by flight, and yet he unflinchingly proclaimed his messao-e. No bribe, threat or inducement could silence him. ' Though they array against me the sun on the right hand, and the moon on the left, I cannot renounce my purpose.' And it was this persistency, this belief in his call, to pro- claim the Unity of God which was the making of Islam. Other men Iiave been monotheists in tiie midst of idolaters, but no other man has founded a strong and endurino- monotheistic religion. The distinction in his case was his resolution that other men should believe His giving himself out as a prophet of God was, in the first instance, not only sincere, but probaI)ly correct in the sense in which he himself understood it. He felt that lie had thoughts of God which it deeply concerned all around him to receive, and he knew that these thoughts were ' The Life of Mahomet by Sir W. Muir, Vol. IV, pp. 320-21. Ixxiv Introduction. given him by God, although not, as we shall see, a revela- tion strictly so called. His mistake lay by no means in his supposing himself to be called upon by God to speak for him and introduce a better religion, but it lay in his gradually coming to insist quite as much on men's accept- ing him as a prophet as on their accepting the great truth he preached. He was a prophet to his countrymen in so ffir as he proclaimed the Unity of God, but this was no sufficient ground for his claiming to be their guide in all matters of religion, still less for his assuming the lordship over them in all matters civil as well " The learned doctor further on in his book, " Mo- hammed, Buddha, and Christ," remarks: — "But as we endeavour to estimate the good and evil of Islam, it gradually appears tliat the chief point we must attend to is to distinguish between its value to Arabia in the seventh century and its value to the world at large. No one, I presume, would deny that to Mohammed's contemporaries his religion was an immense advance on anything they had previously believed in. It welded together the disunited tribes, and lifted the nation to the forefront of the important powers in the world. It effected what Christianity and Judaism had alike failed to effect — it swept away, once and for ever, idolatry, and established the idea of one true God. Its influence on Ai-abia was justly and pathetically put by the Moslem refugees in Abyssinia, who when required to say why they should not be sent back to Mecca, gave the following account of their religion and what it had done for them : ' O king, we were plunged in ignorance and barbarisui ; we worshipped idols ; we ate dead bodies ; we committed lewdness ; dis- regarded family ties and the duties of neighbourhood and Introduction. Ixxv hospitality ; we knew no law but that of the strong, when God sent among us a messenger of whose truthfulness, integrity, and innocence we were aware ; and he called us to the unity of God, and taught us not to associate any god with him ; he forbade us the worehip of idols, and enjoined upon us to speak the truth, to be faithful to our trusts, to be merciful, and to regard the rights of others ; to love our relativ^es and to protect the weak ; to flee vice and avoid all evil. He taught us to offer praj^ers, to give alms, and to fast. And because we believed in him and obeyed him, therefore are we persecuted and driven from our country to seek thy protection.' "^ But after all we have here seen of the opinions of Dr. Marcus Dods and Sir W. Muir, let us turn to what the Rev. Stephens thinks of Mohammad : — "The aim of Mahomet was to revive among his coun- trymen the Arabs, as Moses revived among his country- men the Jews, the pure faith of their common forefather Abraham. In this he succeeded to a very great extent. For a confused heap of idolatrous superstitions he substi- tuted a pure monotheistic faith ; he abolished some of the most vicious practices of his countrymen, modified others ; he generally raised the moral standard, improved the social condition of the people, and introduced a sober and rational ceremonial in worship. Finally he welded by this means a number of wild independent tribes, mere floatino- atoms, into a compact body politic, as well prepared and as eager to subdue the kingdoms of the world to their rule and to their faith, as ever the Israelites had been to conquer the land of Canaan. ' Mohammed, Buddha and Chri&b, by Marcus Dods,D.D., pp. 17 — 1&&, iii>. Ixxvi Introduction. "The Koran also enjoins repeatedly and in very empha- tic language the duty of showing kindness to the stranger and the orphan, and of treating slaves, if converted to the faith, with the consideration and respect due to believers. The duty even of mercy to the lower animals is not forgotten, atid it is to be thankfully acknowledged that Mohammedanism as well as Buddhism shares with Ciiristi- anity the honour of having given birth to hospitals and asylums for the insane and sick. " The vices most prevalent in Arabia in the time of Mahomet which are most sternly denounced and absolute- ly forbidden in the Koran were drunkenness, unlimited concubinage and polygamy, the destruction of female in- fants, reckless gambling, extortionate usury, superstitious arts of divination and magic. The abolition of some of these evil customs, and the mitigation of others, was a great advance in the morality of the Arabs, and is a wonderful and honourable testimony to the zeal and influence of the ref )rmer. The total suppression of female infanticide and of drunkenness is the most signal triumph of his work."^ The reverend gentleman quoted above continues: "First of all, it must be freely granted that to his own people Mahomet was a great benefactor. He was born in a country where political orijanization, and rational faith, and pure morals Avere unknown. He introduced all three. • By a single stroke of masterly genius he simultaneously reformed the political condition, the religious creed, and the moral practice of his countrymen. In the place of ' Gliri.stiriiiity ami Islam: The Bible aud the Kurau, by Rev. W. R. W. btepheus, pp 'Jl, lOi, 112, Loiiduu, 1877. Introduction. Ixxvii many independent tribes he left a nation ; for a supersti- tious belief in gods mm\y and lords many lie established a reasonable belief in one Ahniglity 3'et beneficent Being ; taught men to live under an abiding sense of this Beino-'s superintending care, to look to Him as the rewarder, and to fear Him as the punisher of evil-doers. He vigorously attacked, ;>nd modified and snppiessed many gross and revolting customs which had prevailed in Arabia down to his time. For an abandoned profligacy was substi- tuted a carefully regulated polygamy, and the practice of destroying female infants was effectuall}'- abolished. "As Islam gradually extended its conquest beyond the boundaries of Arabia, many barbarous races whom it absorbed became in like manner [)articipators in its bene- fits. The Turk, the Indian, the Negro, and the Moor were compelled to cast away their idols, to abandon their licentious rites and customs, to turn to the w^orship of one God, to a decent ceremonial and an orderly way of life. The faith even of the more enlightened Persian was puri- fied : he learned that good and evil are not co-ordinate powers, but that just and unjust are alike under the sway of one All-wise and Holy Buler, who ordereth all things in heaven and earth. "For barbarous nations, then, especiall}^ — nations which were more or less in the condition of Arabia itself at the time of Mahomet — nations in the condition of Africa at the present day, with little or no civilisation, and without a reasonable religion — Islam certainly comes as a blessing, as a turning from darkness to light and from the ])ower of satan unto God."^ ' Christianity and Islam : The Bible and the Kurau, by the Rev. W. II. W. Stephens, pp. 12'J-30, Loudon, 1877. Ixxviii Introduction. 36. Wlhit tlte opi)OMents of Mohammad can Indictment against P'>S^il>lv S'^Y Hgaiust llis Ulissioil Mohammad. j^ j^j^ nlleoed moral declensioii at Medina.^ Tliev accuse him of crueltv^ and • " We may readily admit that at the first Mahomet did believe, or persuaded himself to believe, that his revelations were dictated by a divine agency. In the Meccan period of his life there certainly can be traced no personal ends or unworthy motives to belie this conclusion. The Prophet was there, what he professed to be. ' a simple Preacher and a Warner;' he was the despised and rejectetl teacher of a gainsay- ing people ; and he had apparently no ulterior object but their reform- ation. Mahomet may have mistaken the right means to effect this end, but there is no suffijient reasoa for doubting that he used those means in good faith and with an honest purpose. " But the scene altogether changes at Medina. There the acquisition of temporal power, aggrandisement, and self-glorification, mingled with the grand object of the Prophet's previous life, and they were sought after and attained by precisely the same instrumentality. Messages from Heaven were freely brought forward to justify his political conduct, equally with his religious precepts. Battles were fought, wholesale executions infiicted, and territories annexed, under pretext of the Almighty's sanction. Nay, even baser actions were not only excused, but encouraged by the pre*:ended divine approval or cammand. A special license was produced, allowing Mahomet a double number of wives ; the discreditable affair of Mary the Coptic slave was justified in a separate Sura ; and the passion for the wife of his own adopted son and bosom friend was the subject of an inspired message in which the Prophet's scruples were rebuked by God ; a divorce permitted, and marriage with the object of his unhallowed desires enjoined." — Muir's Life of Mahomet. Vol. IV, pp. 317-8. - " But the darker shades of character as well as the brighter must be depicted by a faithful historian. Magnanimity or moderation are nowhere discernible as features in the conduct of Mahomet towards such of his enemies as failetl to tender a timely allegiance. Over the bodies of the Coreish who fell at Badr he exulted with savage satisfac- tion ; and several prisoners, accused of no crime but that of scepticism and political opposition, were deliberately executed at his command. The prince of Kheibar, after being subjected to inhuman torture for the purpose of discovering the treasures of his tribe, was, with his cousin, put to death on the pretext of having treacherously concealed them ; Tntrod((ct'um. Ixxix it (if Foot-note from p. I.r.i-riii. and his wife was led away captive to the tent of tlie conqneror. Sentence of exile was enforced by Mahomet with iitj;-orous severity on two whole Jewish tribes at Medina ; and of a third like his neighbours, the women, and children were sold into distant captivity, while the men amounting' to several hundreds were butchered in cold blood before his eyes. '• In his youth Mahomet earned among" his fellows the honourable title of • the Faithful.' But in Inter years, however much sincerity and good faith may have guided his conduct in respect of his friends, craft and deception were certainly not wanting towards his foes. The jierfidious attack at Nakhla. where the first blood in the internecine war with the Coreish v-^as shed, although at first disavowed by Mahomet, for its scandalous breach of the sacred usages of Arabia, was eventually justified by a preteaded revelation. Abu Basir, the freebooter, was countenanced by the Prophet in a manner scarcely consistent with the letter, and certainly opposed to the spirit, of the truce of Hodeibia. The surj^rise which secured the easy conquest of Mecca was designed with craftiness, if not with duplicity. The pretext on which the Baui Nadhir were besieged and expatriated (namely, that Gabriel had revealed their design against the prophet's life), was feeble and unworthy of an honefet cause. When Medina was beleaguered by the confederate army, Mahomet sought the services of Nueim, a traitor, and employed him to sow distrust among the enemy by false and treacherous reports ; ' for,' said he, • what else is war but a game at deception ? ' In his proi^hetical career, political and personal ends were frequently compassed by the flagrant i^retence of Dirlne revelations, which a candid examination would have shewn him to be nothing more than the counterpart of hia own wishes. The Jewish and Christian systems, at first adopted honestly as the basis of his own religion, had no sooner served the purpose of establishing a firm authority, than they were ignored, if not di.^owned. And what is perhaps worst of all, the dastardly assassination of i^olitical and religious opponents, countenanced and frequently directed as they were in all their cruel and perfidious details by Mahomet himself leaves a dark and indelible blot upon his character." — Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, pp. 307—9. "The reader will observe that simultaneously with the anxious desire to extinguish idolatry, and to i)romote religion and virtue in the world, there was nurtured by the Prophet in his own heart a licentious self- indulgence ; till in the end, assuming to be the favourite of Heaven, he justified himself by ' revelations ' from God in the most flagrant breaches of morality. He will remark that while Mahomet cherished a kind Ixxx Tntwdudion. seiisu.'illtv^ (luring liis bojourii in that city after he had passed vvitliout any hhiine more than fifty -five years of his age, and had led a pious missionary life for u[)\vards of fifteen years. These moral stains cannot lie inconsistent with his office of beinir and tender disposition, ' weeping with them that wept,' and binding to his person the hearts of his followers by the ready and self-denying offices of love and friendship, he could yet take pleasure in cruel and perfidious assassination, could gloat over the massacre of an entire tribe, and savagely consign the ianocant babe to the fires of hell." — Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, pp. 322-3. ' " In doaiestio life the couduct of Mahomet with one grave exception was exemplary. As a husband his fondness and devodon was entire, borderiug, however, at times upon jealousy. As a father he was loving and tender. In his youth he is said to have lived a virtuous life. At the age of twenty-five he married a widow forty years old ; and for five and twenty years he was a faithful husband to her alone. Yet it is remarkable that during this period was composed most of those jiassages of the Goran in which the black-eyed Houris, reserved for believers in Paradise, are depicted in such glowing colours. Shortly after the death of Khadija the Propheb married again ; bub it was nob till the mature age of fifby-four that he made the dangerous trial of polygamy, by taking Ayesha, yet a child, as the rival of Sauda. Once the natural limits of restraint were overpassel. Mahomet fell an easy prey to his strong passion for the sex. In his fifty-sixth year he married Haphsa ; and the following year, in two succeeding mouths, Zeinab bint Khozeima and Omm Salma. Bub his desires were not to be satisfied by the range of a harem already greater than was permitted to any of his followers ; rather as age advanced, they were stimulated to seek for new and varied indulgence. A few months after his nuptials with Zeinab and Omm Salma, the charms of a second Zeinab were by accident discovered too fully before the Prophet's admiring gaze. She was the wife of Zeid, his adopted son and bosom friend ; but he was unable to smother the flame she kindled in his breast ; and, by dicine command, she was taken to his bed. In the same year he married a seventh wife, and also a concubine. And at last, when he was full three score years of age, no fewer than three new wives, besides Mary the Coptic slave, were within the space of seven mouths added to his alrealy well-filled harem."— Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, pp. 30^-10. Introduction. Ixxxi a propliet or reformer. It is no matter if a propliet morally degrades his character under certain cir- cumstances, or morally degrades his character at the end of his age — after leading for upwards of fifty-five years a life of the higiiest moral principles, and as a paragon of temperance and high-toned living — while he has faithfully conveyed the mes- sage, and has sincerely and honestly preached religious reforms, and the sublimity of his preach- ings have in themselves the marks of divine truth. If the said prophet defends his stains or immoral deeds by professed revelations, and justifies himself in his flagrant breaches of morality by producing messages from heaven, just and equally as he does when he teaches the purer theology and higher morality for which he is commissioned, then and from that time only we will consider him as an impostor, guilty of high blasphemy iu forging the name of God for his licentious self-indulgences. But in the case of Mohammad, in the first place, the charges of cruelty and sensuality during a period of six or seven years towards the end of his life, excepting three years, are utterly false ; and secondly, if proved to have taken place, it is not proved that Mohammad justified himself by alleging to have received a divine sanction or com- mand to the alleged cruelties and flagrant breaches of morality. The charges of assassinations and cruelties to the prisoners of war and others, and of Ixxxii Introduction. the alleged perfidy and craftiness enumerated hy Sir W. Muir, have been examined and refuted by me in this book. Vide pp. 60—73 and pp. 76—97. The cases of Maria, a slave-girl, and Zeinab not coming- directly under the object of this book have been treated separately in Appendix B, pp. 211 — 220 of this work. Mohanmiad, in his alleged cruelties towards his enemies, is not represented by Sir W. Muir to have justified himself by special revelation or sanction from on high, yet the Rev. Mr. Hughes, whose work has been pronounced as having '" the rai'e merit of being accuraie,^^ makes him (Mohammad) to have done them under the sanction of God in the Koran. " The best defenders of the Arabian Prophet^ are obliged to admit that the matter of Zeinab, the wife of Zeid, and again of Mary, the Coptic slave, are ' an indelible stain ' upon his memory ; that he is untrue once or twice to the kind and forgiving disposition of bis best nature ; that he is once or twice unrelenting in the punishment of his per- sonal enemies, and that he is guilty even more than once of conniving at the assassination of inveterate opponents ; but they do not give any satisfactory explanation or apology for all this being done under the suijijosed sanc- tion of God in the Quran."^ Such is the rare accuracy of Mr. Hughes' work. It is needless for me to repeat here that none of these allegations are either true or facts, or alleged ' " Vide Muhammad and Muhammadanism, by Mr. K. Bos worth Smith, ]M. A., an Assistant Master of Harrow School." ^ Notes on Muhammadanism, by the Rev. T. P. Hughes, Missionary to the Afghans, Peshawar : Second Edition, page 4, Loudon, 1S77. Introduction. Ixxxiii to li.'ive been committed iiiuler tlie sanction of God in tlie Koran. The Rev. Marcus Dods writes regarding the character of Moiiammad : — " The knot of the matter lies not in his polygamy, nor even in his occasional licentiousness, but in the fact that he defended his conducfc, when he created scandal, by }3ro- fessed revelations which are now embodied as parts of the Koran. When his wives murmured, and with justice, at his irregularities, he silenced them by a revelation giving him conjugal allowances which he had himself proscribed as unlawful. When he designed to contract an alliance with a woman forbidden to him by his own law, an inspired permission was forthcoming, encouraging him to the transgression."^ Both of tliese alleged instances given above are mere fabrications. There was no revelation giving Mohammad conjugal allowances wliicli he had him- self proscribed as unlawful, nor any permission was brought forward to sanction an alliance forbidden to bini by his own law. Tliis subject has been fully discussed by me in my work " Mohammad, the True Prophet," and the reader is referred to that work.^ A few verses on the marital subject of • Mohamniei, Baddha and Chrisb, by Marcus Dods, D.D., pp. 2i & 25. ' Vide pp. 48 — 61. This work is being printed at Education Society's Press, Byculla, Bombay. It appears tbat Dr. Dods, in the first instance, had in view Sura XXXIII, 51. This is by no means giving Mohammad conjugal allowances which he himself had proscribed as unlawful. As a preliminary measure to abolish polygamy ami to accustom the people to monogamy, Mohammad, when reducing the unlimited polygamy practised in Arabia, hal pat a strong condition to treat their Ixxxiv Introduction. Moliammud are greatly misunderstood hy European writers on the subject, and Dr. Dods sliares the generally wrong idea when he says: — "He rather used his office as a title to license from which ordinary men were restrained. Restricting his disciples to four wives, he retained to himself the liberty of taking as many as he pleased," (Page 23.) This is altogetlier a gross misrepresentation of the real state of things. Mohammad never retained to himself the lil)erty of taking as many wives as he pleased. On the contrary, Sura XXXIll, 52, expressly forbade him all women except those he had already with him, giving him no option to marry in the case of the demise of some or all of them. This will show that he rather used his office as a restraint against himself of what was lawful for the people in general to enjoy. The only so- called privilege above the rest of the believers (Sura XXXI II, 49) was not " to retain to himself wives, when mor3than one, equitably in every sense of the word, — i.e., in the matter of social comfort, love and household establishment (Sura IV, 3). When the measure had given a monogamous tendency to the Arab society, it was declared that it was impossible practically to treat equitably in all respects the contemporary wives (Sura IV, 128), and those who had already contracted contemporaneous marriage before the measure referred to above was introduced were absolved from the con- dition laid down in Sura IV, 3, but were advised, regarding their then existing wives, not to yield wholly to disinclination. Similarly Mohammad was also relieved from that condition in Sura XXXIII, 51, without •giving him any conjugal allowance which he had himself pronounced unlawful." The second instance is of Zeinab's case I suppose. Zeinab was in no way, when divorced by Zeid, "a woman forbidden to him by hia own laws." Introduction. Ixxxv tlie liberty of taking as luany wives as lie pleased," but to retain tlie wives wliom lie had already mar- ried and wliose number exceeded tlie limit of four under Sura IV, 3. Otlier believers having more wives than four as in the case of Kays, Ghaildn, and JN^aofal, were requested to separate themselves from the number exceeding the limit prescribed for the first time. This was before jiolygamy was declared to have been virtually abolished, i.e.., between the publication of vv. 3 and 128 of Sura IV. There was neither any breach of morality, nor anythino- licentious in his retaining the marriages lawfully contracted by him before the promulgation of Sura IV, 3. Even this privilege (Sura XXXIII, 49) was counterbalanced by Ibid., 52, which runs thus: — " Women are not allowed thee hereafter, nor to chansre them for other women, though their beauty charm thee, except those already possessed by thee." Mr. Stanley Lane Poole suffers under the same misrepresentation as other European writers^ do when he says that : — " The Prophet allowed his followers only four wives, he took more than a dozen himself." ' " The -Apostle becomes a creature so exalted that even the easy drapery of Mohammadan morality becomes a garment too tight-fitting for him. ' A peculiar privilege is granted to him above the rest of the believers.' He may multiply his wives without stint ; he may and he does marry within the prohibited degrees." — Idam under the Arabs, by R, D. Osborn, London 1876, p. 91. Ixxxvi Introduction. He writes: — " When, however, all has been said, when it has been shown that Mohammad was not the rapacious voluptuary- some have taken him for, and that his violation of his own marriage-law may be due to motives reasonable and just from his point of view rather than to common sensuality." " Did Mohammad believe he was speaking the words of God equally when he declared that permission was given him to take unto him more wives, as when he proclaimed, * There is no god but God ?' "^ Mohammad did not violate his own marriage-law, and never pretended that permission was given to him to take more wives tlian what was allowed for other people. All his marriages (which are wrong- ly considered to have been about a dozen) were contracted by him before he pnl)lislied the law unjustly said to have been violated by him. He retained these wives after the law was promulgated, and their number exceeded four, but he was inter- dicted to marry any other women in the place of these in case of their demise or divorce. Other believers were advised after the pronmlgation of the law to reduce the number of their wives exceeding four, but were at liberty to replace their wives within the limit assigned in the case of their demise or divorce. Mohammad's case had no breach of morality or sensual license in it. It was very wise of Mohammad to retain all the wives 1 studies in a Mosque, by S. L. Poole, pp. 77 and 80, London, 1880. Introduction. Ixxxvii lie had manied l)efore Sura IV, 3, came into force, for the reason that the wives thus repudiated by liini might have married some of the unbelievers, even some of his enemies, which would have been derogatory to the Prophet in the eyes of his con- temporaries and a laughing-stock for his enemies. 37. It lias been said with much stress regarding the Finality of the social teachings of Mohammad: (1) That reforms of Mohammad, although under the degraded condi- tion of Arabia, they were a gifu of great value, and succeeded in banishing those fierce vices which naturally accompany ignorance and barbarism, but an imperfect code of ethics has been made a permanent standard of good and evil, and a final and irrevocable law, which is an in- superable barrier to the regeneration and progress of a nation. It has been also urged that his reforms were srood and useful for his own time and place, but that by making them final he has prevented further progress and conse- crated half measures. What were restrictions to his Arabs would have been license to other men.-^ (2) That Islam deals with positive precepts rather than with principles,- and the danger of a pre- positive precepts. ^ _ _ else system of positive precepts regu- lating the minute detail, the ceremonial worship, and ' Vide Islam and its Founder, by J. W. H. Stobart, B.A., page 229, London, 1878 ; and Mohammed. Buddha and Christ, by Marcus Dods, D.D.. pp. 122-23, London, 1878. Major Osborn writes, " But to the polity erected on these rude lines was given the attribute of finality. In order to enforce obedience and eliminate the sijirit of opposition, Mohammad asserted that it was, down to the minutest details, the work of a Divine Legislature." — Idam under the Arah-^, pp. 4.5 and 46. - Vide The Faith of Islam, by the Rev. Edward Sell, page 7, London, 1880. Ixxxviii Introduction. the moi'al and social relations of life, is, that it should retain too tight a grip upon men when the circumstances which justified it have changed and vanished away, and therefore the imposition of a system good for barbarians upon people already possessing higher sort of civilization and the principles of a purer faith is not a blessing but a curse. Nay more, even the system which was good for people when they were in a barbarous state may become positively mischievous to those same people when they begin to emerge from their barbarism under its influence into a higher condition.^ (3) That the exact ritual and formal observations of Islam have Ceremonial law. . - . , , , i , , • -nt carried with them their own Neme- sis, and thus we find that in the worship of the faithful formalism and indifferences, pedantic scrupulosity and positive disbelief flourish side by side. The minutest change of posture in prayer, the displacement of a simple genuflexion, would call for much heavier censure than outward profligacy or absolute neglect.^ (4) That ^ , , „ morality is viewed not in the ab- Concrete morals of •' the Koran. stract, but in the concrete. That the Koran deals much more with sin and virtue in fragmentary ' Vide Christianity and Islam, the Bible, and the Koran, by the Rev. W. R. W. Stephens, pp. 9.5 and 131, London, 1877. 2 Vhh' Islam and its Founder, by J. W. H. Stobart, B.A., page 237 ; and Stephens' Christianity and Islam, page 121. Major Osborn writes : " From the hour of his birth the moslem becomes a member of a system in which every act of his life is governed by a minute ritual. He is beset on every side with a circle of inflexible formalities." — Islam under- the Khalips of Baglidud, pp. 78-9. He further writes in a footnote, p. 79 : " Thus prayer is absolutely useless if any matter, legally consi- dered impure, adheres to the person of the worshipper, even though he be unconscious of its presence. Prayer also is null and void unless the men and women praying are attired in a certain prescribed manner." Introduction. Ixxxix details than as a whole. It deals with acts more than principles, with outward practice more than inward motives, with precepts and commands more than exhortation. It does not hold up before man the hatefulness and ugliness of all sin as a whole} (5) " That Islam is stationary ; Want of adaptibility swathed in the rigid bands of the roundinf Ti re urn^" ^oran, it is powerless, like the Chris- stances. ^jg^j^ dispensation,^ to adapt itself to the varying circumstances of time and place, and to keep pace with, if not to lead and direct, the progress of society and the elevation of the race. In the body politic the spiritual and secular are hopelessly confounded, and we fail of perceiving any approach to free institutions or any germ whatever of popular government."^ ' Vide Christianity and Islam, by W. R. W. Stephens, pp. 122-23. Major Osborn writes : " The Prophet knew of no religious life where the external rite was not deemed of greater importance than the inner state, and, in consequence, he gave that character to Islam also. Hence there are no moral gradations in the Koran. All precepts proceed from the will of God, and all are enforced with the same threatening emphasis. A failure of performance in the meanest trivialities of civil life involves the same tremendous penalties as apostacy and idolatry." — Islam under Khalifi, p. 5. He further says : " In their religious aspect, these tradi- tions are remarkable for that strange confusion of thought which caused, the Prophet to place on one level of wickedness serious moral crimes, breaches of sumptuary regulations, and accidental omissions in cere- monial observations. Sin, throughout, is regarded as an external pollution, which can, at once, be rectified by the payment of a fine of some kind." Ihid, page 62. ^ " Occasionally our author would seem to write what he certainly does not mean ; thus, in the middle of an excellent summary of the causes of Islam's decadence, it is stated, — ' Swathed in the rigid bands of the Koran, Islam is powerless like the Christian dispe7isation to adapt itself to the varying circumstances of time and place.' " — TJie Saturday Review, June 23, 1883. » Vide Annals of the Early Caliphate, by Sir W. Muir, K.C.S.I., LL.D., D.C.L., page 456, London, 1883. m xc Introduction. 38. All these objections more or less apply rather to the teachings of the Moham- The preceding objec- tions not applicable to iiiadan Common Law (canon and the Koran. civil), called Fiqah or Shara, than to the Koran, the Mohammadan Revealed Law. Our Common Law, which treats both ecclesiastical and the civil law, is by no means considered to be a divine or unchangeable law. This subject has been treated by me in a separate work^ on the Legal, Political and Social Reforms to which the reader is referred. The space allowed to me in this Intro- duction, which has already exceeded its proper limit, does not admit a full and lengthy discussion of the objections quoted above, but I will review them here in as few words as possible. 39. (I) Mohammad had to deal with barbarous Finality of the social ^ations arouud him, to be gradu- reforms of Mohammad, ^^j}^ reformed, and besides this the subject of social reforms was a secondary question. Yet it being necessary to transform the character of the people and to reform the moral and social abuses prevailing among them, he gradually introduced his social reforms which proved immense blessings to the Arabs and other nations in the seventh century. Perhaps some tem- porary but judicious, reasonable and helpful accom- modations had to be made to the weakness and ' Keforms, Political, Social and Legal, under the Moslem Rule, Bombay Education Society's Press, 1883. Introduction. xci iinmatiirity of tlie people, as halting stages iu tlie march of reforms only to be set aside at their adult strength, or to be abolished when they were to begin to emerge from their barbarism under its influence to a higher civilization. Consequently gradual amelioration of social evils had neces- sarily to pass several trials during progress of re- form. The intermediate stages are not to be taken as final and irrevocable standard of morality and an insuperable barrier to the regeneration of the Arabian nation. Our adversaries stick indiscrimi- nately to these temporary measures or concessions only, and call them half measures and partial re- forms made into an unchangeable law which exclude the highest reforms, and forma formidable obstacle to the dawn of a progressive and enlightened civilization. I have in view here the precepts of Mohammad for ameliorating the degraded condition of women for restricting the unlimited polygamy and the facility of divorce, together with servile concubinage and slavery.^ Mohammad's injunctions and precepts, intermediary and ultimate, temporary and perma- nent, intended for the removal of these social evils, are interwoven with each other, interspersed in different ' " The cankerworm of polygamy, divorce, servile concubiaage and veil lay at the root. They are bound up in the character of its existence. A reformed Islam which should part with the divine ordinances on which they rest, or attempt in the smallest degree to change them by a rationalistic selection, abetment or variation would be Islam no longer." Annals of the Early Galiphater by Sir \V. Muir, page 458. xcii Introduction. Suras and not clironologically arranged, in conse- quence of which it is somewhat difficult for those who have no deep insight into the promiscuous literature of the Koran to find out which precept was onlj' a halting stage, and which the latest. It was only from some oversight on the part of the compilers of the Common Law that, in tiie first place, the civil precepts of a transitory nature and as a mediate step leading to a higher reform were taken as final ; and in the second place, the civil precepts adapted for the dwellers of the Arahian desert were pressed upon the neck of all ages and countries. A social system for barbarism ought not to be im- posed on a people already possessing higher forms of civilizations. 40. (2) In fact the Koran deals with positive pre- cepts as well as with principles, osi ive precep s. ^^^ .^ ncvcr tcachcs a precise system of precepts regulating in minute details the social relations of life and the ceremonial of wor- ship. On the contrary, its aim has been to coun- teract the tendency to narrowness, formality, and severity which is the consequence of a living under a rigid system of positive precepts. Mohammad had to transform the character of the Arab bar- barians who had no religious or moral teacher or a social reformer before his advent. It was therefore necessary to give them a few positive precepts, moulding and regulating their moral and Introduction. xciii socinl conduct, to make tl>em 'new creatures' witli new notions and nQS7 purposes, and to remodel the national life. (3) But lest they eremonia aw. should confuse virtue as identical with obedience to the outward requirements of tlie ceremonial law, — the formal ablutions, the sacri- fices in pilgrimages, tlie prescribed forms of prayers, the fixed amount of alms, and the strict fasts, the voice of the Koran has ever and anon been lifted up to declare that a rigid conformity to practical precepts, whetlier of conduct or ceremonial, would not extenuate, but rather increase in the eyes of God the guilt of an unprincipled heart and an unholy life. Regarding the pilgrimage^ or tlie sacrifices „., . (its chief ceremonv), the Koran Pilgrimage. ^ " " says : — " By no means can their flesh reach unto God, neither their blood, but piety on your part reaclieth him. Thus hath he subjected them to you, that ye might magnify God for his guidance : and announce glad tidings to the doers of good."— Sura XXII, 88. Regarding the Kibla in prayers Kibla. . . . , . , T^ it is said in the Koran : — " The west and the east is God's : therefore whichever way ye turn there is the face of God." — Sura II, 109, " All have a quarter of the Heavens to which they turn them ; but wherever ye be, hasten emulously after good." — Ibid, 148. ' The institution of pilgrimage is a harmless one; and conducive to unity in religion for Arabs, and gives moreover an impetus to trade at large. xciv Introductioa. " There is no piety in turning your faces toward the east or west, but he is pious who believeth in God and the last day, and the angels and the scripture, and the pro- phets ; who for the love of God disburseth his wealth to his kindred ; and to the orphans, and the needy, and the wayfarer, and those who ask, and for ransoming ; who observeth the pi'ayer, and payeth alms, and who is of those who are faithful to their engagements when they have eno-ao-ed in them, and patient under ills and hardships, and in time of trouble, these are they who are just, and these are they who fear the Lord." — Ibid, 172. In the place of a fixed a;iioiint of alms the Koran only savs to give what ye can Amount of alms. spare. '•' They will ask thee also what shall they bestow in alms : " Say : What ye can spare."— /6i(Z, 216, 217. Instead of imposing a very strict fast, wliich in the middle of snmmer is extreme- Fasts. . IT' 1 ly mortifying, the ivoran makes its observance optional. " And as for those who are able to keep it and yet observe it not, the expiation of this shall be the mainten- ance of a poor man. And he who of his own accord performeth a good work, shall derive good from it : and good shall it be for you to fast, if ye knew it." — Ibid, 180. Tiie Koran does not teacli any prescribed forms ., , „ of worship and other ritnalistic No prescribed forms " i oiv^^y^^' prayers. No attitude is fixed, and no outward observance of posture is required. There is no scrupulosity and punctiliousness, neither Introduction. xcv tlie change of i)Osture in prnyer nor tlie dispLice- inent of a single genuflexiou calls any censure on tlie devotee in the Koran. Simply reading the Koran (Suras LXXIII, 20 ; XXIX, 44), and bearing God in mind, standing and sitting; reclining (III, 188 ; IV, 104) or bowing down or prostrating (XXII, 76) is the only form and ritual, if it may be called so, of prayer and worship taught in the Koran. " Recite then as much of the Koran as may be easy to you."~Sura LXXIII, 20. "Recite the portions of the Book which have been revealed to thee and discharge the duty of prayer ; verily prayer restraineth from tlie filthy and the blameworthy. And assuredly the gravest duty is the remembrance of God ; and God knoweth what ye do." — Sura XXIX, 44. " And when the Koran is rehearsed, then listen ye to it and keep silence : haply ye may obtain mercy." " And think within thine ownself on God, with lowliness and with fear and without loud-spoken words, at even and at morn ; and be not of the heedless." — Sura VII, 203, 204. The Koran condemns preten- Pretentious prayers and ostentatious alms- tious prayers aud osteutatious giving condemned. , , almsgiving. " Verily the hypocrites would deceive God ; but he will deceive them ! When they stand up for prayer, they stand carelessly to be seen of men, and they remember God but little."— Sura IV, 141. " Woe then to those who pra}'," " Who in their prayer are careless ;" " Who make a show of devotion," XCVl Introduction. " But refuse help to the TieecZ^/."— Sura CVII, 4—7- " And they fall down on their faces weeping, and it increaseth the humility." — Sura XVII, 110. " ye who believe ! make not your alms void by re- proaches and injury ; like him who spendeth his substance to be seen of men, and believeth not in God and in the latter day. The likeness of such an one is that of a rock with a thin soil upon it, on which a heavy rain falleth, but leaveth it hard. No profit from their works shall they be able to gain ; for God guideth not the unbelieving people."— Sura II, 266. " We have made ready a shameful chastisement for the unbelievers, and for those who bestow their substance in alms to be seen of men, and believe not in God and in the last day. Whoever hath satan for his companion, an evil companion hath he !" — Sura IV, 42. There are no indispensable hours or places to be observed for prayers. In Suras No indispensable hours or places for XI, 116; and IV, 104, the time of prayers. - ^ ^ - i ^ prayer IS set down in general terms without specifying any fixed hour. There are some more times named in Suras XVII, 81, 82 ; XX, 130; L, 38, 39; and LII, 48, 49, but they are special cases for Mohammad himself, and " as an excess in the service." Vide Sura XVII, 81. On this subject Dr. Marcus Dods observes : — "There are two features of the devout character which the Mohammedans have the merit of exhibiting with much greater distinctness than we do. They show not the smallest hesitation or fear in confessing God, and they reduce to practice the great principle that the Introduction. xcvii worship of God is uot confined to temples or any special place : — " Most honour to the men of prayer, Wliose mosque is in them everywhere I Who amid revel's wildest din, In war's severest discipline, On rollinji deck, in thronged bazaar, In stranger hnnd, however far. However diS'ereiU in their reach Of thought, in manners, dress or speech, - Will quietly their carpet spread. To Mekkeh turn the humble head, And, as if blind to all around, And deaf to each distracting sound, In ritual language God adore. In spirit to his presence soar, And in the pauses of the prayer, Rest, as if rapt in glory there." " There are of course formalists and hypocrites in Islam as well as in religions of which we have more experience. The uniformity and regularity of their prostrations resem- ble the movements of a well-drilled company of soldiers or of machines, but the Koran denounces " woe upon those who pray, but in their prayers are careless, who make a show of devotion, but refuse to help the needy ; " while nowhere is formalism more pungently ridiculed than in the common Arabic i)roverb, " His head is towards the Kibleh, but his heels among the weeds." We could almost excuse a touch of formalism for the sake of securing that absolute stillness and outward decorum in worship which deceives the stranger as he enters a crowded mosque into the belief that it is quite empty. Persons who hold them- selves excused from the duty of worship by every slight obstacle might do worse than get infected with the sub- 71 xcviii Introduction. lime formalism of Cais, son of Sad, who would not shift his head an inch from the place of his prostration, though a huge serpent lifted its fangs close to his face and finally coiled itself round his neck. And if some are formal, cer- tainly many are very much in earnest."^ The ablutions have not been imposed as burdens, or as having any mysterious Ablutions. -i ^ .. ^ n merit, bitt merely as a measure or cleanliness. " God desireth not to lay a burden upon you, but he desireth to purify you." 41. (4) The Koran seems fully aware of the Koran both abstract ^^'^"g^r of the precise and fixed and concrete in morals. g,^.gtem of positi VG preceptS mould- ing and regulating every department of life. The danger is that the system of formalism in which men are tied down to the performance of certain religious functions, minutely and precisely fixed in respect to time, place and manner, so that neither less nor more is required of them, retains too tight a grip upon them, when the circumstances which justified it have clianged or vanished away. The moral o-rowth of those who live under such a system of minute and punctilious restraint is stunted and retarded. The tendency of mankind to form- alism is so strong that they very commonly, though often unconsciously, fall into the error of imagining that there is a peculiar intrinsic merit and virtue ■ Mobammed, Buddha, and Christ, by Marcus Dods, D. D., pp. 30-1. Introduction . x ci x ill tlie mere diseliarge of tliose prescribed forms of duties find religious ceremonies. Morality is with them not in the abstract but in the concrete, as con- sisting of a mass of religious observances, rather than of a certain disposition of heart towards God and man. The Koran deals with vice and virtue as a whole as well as in fragmentary details. It treats of inward motives as much as of outward practice, of exhortations equally with precepts and commands. It holds up before man the hatefulness and ugliness of vice as a whole. It does not enclose the whole of the practical morality and piety within the narrow compass of a fixed number of precepts. It lays the foundation of that far-reaching charity wliicli regards all men as equal in the sight of God, and recognizes no distinction of races and classes. 120. "And abandon the semblance of wickedness and wickedness itself. They, verily, whose only acquire- ment is iniquity shall be repaid for what they hav« gained." 152. " Say : Come, I will rehearse what your Lord hath made binding on you, that ye assign not aught to Him as sharers of his Divine honour, and that ye be good to your parents ; and that ye slay not your children because of poverty, for them and for you will We provide ; and that ye come not near to pollutions, outward or inward ; and that ye slay not anyone whom God hath forbidden you, unless for a just cause. This hath He enjoined on you : haply ye will understand." — Sura VI. c Introduction. 81. " Say : Only hath my Lord forbidden filthy actions, whether open or secret, and iniquity, and unjust violence, and to associate with God that for which He hath sent down- no warranty, and to speak of God that of which ye have no knowledge." — Sura VIL 83. " To those who avoid great crimes and scandals, but commit only lighter faults, verily, thy Lord will be rich in forgiveness. He well knew you when He produced you out of the earth, and when ye were embryos in your mothers' womb. Assert not then your own purity. He best knoweth who feareth him." — Sura LHI. 13. " O men ! verily We have created you of a male and a female : and We have divided you into peoples and tribes that ye might take knowledge one of another. Truly the most worthy of honour in the sight of God is he who feareth Him most. Verily God is Knowing, Cognizant." —Sura XLIX. 143. " And every nation has a quarter of the Heavens. It is God who turneth them toiuards it : hasten then emu- lously after good : wheresoverye be, God will one day bring you all together: verily God is all powerful." — Sura II. 52. " And to thee We have sent down the Book of the Koran with truth, confirmatory of previous scripture and its safeguard. Judge therefore between them by \Yhat God hath sent down, and follow not their desires, after the truth which hath come unto thee. To everyone of you have We given a rule and an open wa3\" 53. " And if God had pleased He had surely made you all one people ; but He would test you by what He hath given to each. Be emulous then in good deeds. To God do ye all return, and He will tell you concerning the subjects of your disputes." — Sura V. Introduction. ci 127. " And vie in haste for pardon from your Lord, and a Paradise, vast as the Heavens and the Earth, prepared for the God-fearing." 128. " Who gives ahns, alike in prosperity and in dis- tress, and who master their anger, and forgive others ! And God loveth the doer of good." 129. "And who, after they have done a base deed or committed a wrong against tlieir own souls, remember God and implore forgiveness of their sins — and who can forgive sins but God only ? — and persevere not in what they have willingly done amiss." — Sura III. 21. " Vie in hasting after pardon from your Lord, and Paradise — whose outspread is as the outspread of the Heaven and of the Earth. Prepared is it for those who believed in God and his apostles. Such is the bounty of God : to whom He will He giveth it : and of immense bounty is God ! " — Sura LH. 183. " Ye shall assuredly be tried in your possessions and in yourselves. And many hurtful things shall ye assuredly hear from those to whom the scriptures were given before you, and from those who join other gods with God. But if 3'e be steadfast and fear God, then this verily is GocVs decree for the affairs of life." — Sura IIL 16. " O my son ! observe prayer and enjoin the right and forbid the wrong, and be patient under whatever shall betide thee : verily this is a bounden duty." — Sura XXXI. • 38. " Yet let the recompense of evil be only a like evil ; but he who forgiveth and maketh peace, shall find his reward for it from God ; verily He loveth not those who act unjustly." 39. " And there shall be no way open against those who, after being wronged, avenge themselves." cii Introduction. 40. " Only shall there be a way open against those who unjustly wrong others, and act insolently on the earth in disregard of justice. These ! a grievous punishment doth await them." 41. " And whoso beareth luroiigs with patience and forgiveth, — this verily is a bounden duty." — Sura XLII. 42. (5) The Koran keeps pace with the most fully and rapidly-developing civi- Adaptability of the . . , . . Koran to surrounding llZatlOn, if it is rationally inter- circumstances. ])reted, not as expounded by the Ulema in the Common Law Book and enforced by the sentiment of a nation. It is only the Moham- niadan Common Law, with all its traditions or oral sayings of the Prophet, — very few of which are genuine reports, and the supposed chimerical con- currence of the learned Moslem Doctors and mostly their analogical reasonings (called Hadees, Ijma., and Kias), passed under the name of Fiqah or Shariat^ that has blended together the spiritual and tlie secular, and has become a barrier in some res- pects regarding certain social and political innovations for the higher civilization and progress of the nation. But the Koran is not responsible for this all. Mr. Stanley Lane Poole writes :— " The Koran does not contain, even in outline, the ela- borate ritual and complicated law which now passes under the name of Islam. It contains merely those decisions which happened to be called for at Medina. Mohammad himself knew that it did not provide for every emergency, and recommended a principle of analogical deduction to Introduction. clii guide his followers when they were in doubt. This ana- logical deduction has been the ruin of Islam. Comment- ators and Jurists have set their nimble wits to work to extract fi'om the Koran legal decisions which an ordinary- mind could never discover there ; and the whole struc- ture of modern Mohammadanism has been built upon the foundation of sand. The Koran is not responsible for it."^ I can only differ from the a!)ove in tlie allegation that Moliammad recommended a principle of ana- logical deduction. 43. Tlius the system of religious and moral teaching of the Koran admirably Suitability of the •/. i.i i i -i i • i Koran to all classes of s^^t'^ the lower and the higlier umani y. forms of humanity. The pre- cepts "which regulate some department of social life, moral conduct, and religious ceremonial are blessings to the barbarous ; and that portion of the Koran wliicli inculcates large principles, for the due application of wliicli much must be left to tlie individual conscience, suits the same people when they begin to emerge from their barbarism under its influence into a higher condition, or to those already possessing the higher forms of civilization. For instance, the command to give full measure, to weigh with just balance, to abstain from wine and gambling, and to treat persons with kindness are ' The Speeches and Table-talk of the Prophet Mohammatl, by Stanley Lane Poole, pages lii and liii, Introduction, London, 1882. civ Introduction. intended for men not reacliing tlie liigli forms of civilization. The teacliini^s of the Koran resjardino- the graces of truth, honesty and temperance and mercv, the virtues of meekness, and the stress laid upon thouglits and inclinations are fit to instruct persons who have attained the higher forms of civilization, and have outgrown the need of positive precepts of minute detail. C. All ! Hyderabad, Deccan, March 1884. NOTE. I here take the opportunity of removing a wrong idea of the alleged injunction of the Prophet against our countrymen the Hindus. The Hon'ble Eaj;c Siva Prasad, in his speech at the Legislative Council, on the 9th March. 1883, while discussing the Ilbert Bill, quoted from Amir Khusro'a T'urlhh Alai that, " Ala-ud-din Khiliji once sent for a Kazi, and asked him what was written in the Code of Mehammadan law regarding the Hindus. The Kazi answered that, the Hindus were Zimmix (condemned to pay the Jizya tax) ; if asked silver, they ought to pay gold with deep respect and 'mmility ; and if the collector of taxes were to fling dirt in their faces, they should gladly open their mouths wide. God's order is to keep them in subjection, and the Prophet enjoins on the faithful to kill, plunder and imprison them, to make Mussulmans, or to put them to the sword, to enslave them, and confiscate their property ' " [ Vide Supple- ment to the Gazctti' of India, April 21, 1883, page 807.] These alleged injunctions, I need not say here, after what I have stated in various places of this book regarding intolerance, and compulsory con- version, are merely false imputations. There are no such injunctions of the Prophet agq,in3t either Ztmmis, (i. e., protected or guaranteed) or the Hindus. I Rabia. 1 Auaza. 1 Jalila. ♦ 1 1. 1 * * 1 1 Ab(l-ul-Kays. ~l 1 Taym Allah. Wail. Ai us Allat. ozeil. 1 1 byan, Taghlib. 1 r>akr. * i :ar. * 1 ik. L- Kor eish. T Han if a, * 1 ib. 1 aheem. 1 * 'y- T :eima. * 1 Shaiban. * KI102 Sailiis. Jamah. 1 I "U, ■ 1 niaa. AbJU 1 Hodr'k.. f_ TuiB. • Ho S«Ub« biD su Dktla. oa.L ^uu. - lUkr. 1 1 M> <;> Konldl Z«mtm. 1 1 OiilJb. AfikUk jJllt. f ] 1 Abil.iilK«)» T«}ii> All>li. W«ll. Au AlUl T«|bllU lUkr. llMirii. Hir^. 1 KlUb. 1 Wn. Mok Kj:r Zobra. Abd >luu>. 1 Abd'Od'Dit. L Ilxblm. : aiumailb. 1 AbdBbuu. 1 {9>khr). Abo Solao. Uo«lv \'4Gllall. AbaT>in> 1 1 MvhimiiiaJ. AIL ^*N .\S ^^" Amr. Mahra ^hoshain. A»lum. Zcicl. I : Yoshjab. I Saba. Hazarnmaut. SaJif. Hamadan Nohd. Jarm. Tashlib. I K»lb. I Tayni AHat. Lablim. Ofeir. Juzam. Ans. I I I Dar. Kinda. Morad. I Sukun. Saad-ul-Ashira. Kharija. I Jadila. Harb. mr. ^^akha. Lobay. I Kliozaa. I Mustalik, ALL THE WARS OF MOHAMMAD WERE DEFENSIVE. The Persecutions. The severe persecution which Mohammad and his 1. The early perse- early convcrts suffered at Mecca at cutions of Moslems by f the people of Mecca. the hands of their fellow-citizens, the Koreish, is a fact admitted by all historians. The Koran, which may be regarded as a con- temporary record of the ill-feeling manifested towards the Prophet and his followers, bears ample testimony to the fact. Not only were the early Moslems perse- cuted for renouncing the pagan religion and obtaining converts to the monotheistic religion of Mohammad, but they were also tortured and otherwise ill-treated to induce them to return to the religion which they had forsaken. The persecution seems to have been so great that Mohammad was compelled to recognize those of his followers, who by force and cruelty were compelled to renounce Islam and profess paganism, but were inwardly steadfast in their belief of the one true God, as true Moslems. The Koran says: " Whoso after he hath believed in God denieth 2 Notices of Persecution in the Koran. Him, if lie were forced to it, and if his heart remain steadfast in the faith, shall he guiltless ; but whoso openeth his breast to infidehty, on them, in that case, shall be wrath from God, and a severe punishment awaiteth them." — Sura xvi, 108. " The incarceration and tortures," says Mr. Stobart, " chiefly by thirst in the burning rays of the sun, to which these humble converts were subjected, to induce their recantation and adoration of the national idols, touched the heart of Mahomet, and by divine author- ity, he permitted them, under certain circumstances, to deny their faith so long as their hearts were stead- fast in it." ^ The oppressions, trials, and sufferings which the 2. Notices of the early Moslems underwent com- persecution in the Ko- m t , no ^ • ^ ran. pcllcd them to ny from their homes, leaving their families and property in the hands of their oppressors. They chose this course rather than revert to paganism. They held steadfastly to the one true God whom their Prophet had taught them to trust and believe. All these facts are clearly out- lined in the following verses of the Koran : — " And as to those who when oppressed have fled their country for the sake of God, We will surely ' Islam and its Founder, by J. W. H. Stobart, B. A., page 76. But, in fact, there was no such permission. The verse quoted above says, that the wrath and punishment of God will be on those who deny God. except those who do so by being forced. The latter were not put on the same footing as the former; in short, those who denied God under compulsion were not counted unbelievers. Notices of Persecution in the Koran. 3 provide tliem a goodly abode in this world, but greater tlie reward of next life, did tliey but know it." " They who bear ills with patience, and put their trust in the Lord ! " — xvi, 43, 44. " To those also who after their trials fled their country, then did their utmost and endured with patience, veril^T-, thy Lord will afterwards be forgiving, gracious . ' ' — Ibid, 111. "But they who believe, and who fly their country, and do their utmost in the cause of God, may hope for God's mercy : and God is Gracious, Merciful." — ii, 215. . " And they who have fled their country and quitted their homes and suffered in my cause and have fought and fallen — I will blot out their sins from them and will bring them into gardens beneath which the streams do flow." — iii, 194. " And as to those who fled their country for the cause of God, and were afterwards slain, or died, surely with goodly provision will God provide for them ! for verily, God is the best of providers !" — xxii, 57. ; " Those believers who sit at home free from trou- ble, and those who toil in the cause of God with their substance and their persons, shall not be treated alike. God hath assigned to those who strive with their persons and with their substance, a rank above those who sit at home. Goodly promises hath He made to 4 Insults suffered by Mohammad. all : But God hath assigned to those who make efforts a rich recompense above those who sit still at home." " The angels, when they took the souls of those who had been unjust to their own weal, demanded, ' What hath been your state ? ' They said, ' We were the weak ones of the earth.' They replied, ' Was not God's earth broad enough for you to flee away in ? ' These ! their home shall be Hell, and evil the passage to it " — " Except the men and women and children who were not able through their weakness to find the means of escape, and were not guided on tUeir way. These haply God will forgive : for God is Forgiving, Pardoning."— iv, 97, 99, 100. "God doth not forbid you to deal with kindness and fairness towards those who have not made war upon you on account of your religion, or driven you forth from your homes : verily, God loveth those who act with fairness." " Only doth God forbid you to make friends of those who, on account of your religion, have warred against you, and have driven you forth from your homes, and have aided your expulsion : and whoever maketh friends of theui, these therefore are evil- doers."— Ix, 8, 9. The Prophet himself suffered insults and personal 8. Insults suffered ^juries from the hands of his by Mohammad. persccutors. He was prevented Summary of Persecutions. 5 from offering Lis prayers (xcvi, 10). He allowed himself to be spat upon, to have dust thrown upon him, and to be dragged out of the Kaaba by his own turban fastened to his neck. He bore all these indig- nities with the utmost humility, and he daily beheld his followers treated oppressively. After his uncle's death his life was attempted, but he escaped by flying to Medma. ^^ And call to mind when the unbelievers plotted against thee, to detain thee prisoner or to kill thee or to banish thee : they plotted — but God plotted ; and of plotters is God the best." — viii, 30. About 615 of the Christian era, the Koreish of 4. Historical sum- Mccca began to persecute the mary of the persecu- tions, faith of Islam. Those who had no protection among the early IVIoslems were hard pressed, as related above. A body of eleven men, some with their families, fled the country, and found refuge, notwithstanding their pursuit by the Koreish, across the Red Sea at the Court of Abyssinia. This was the first Hegira, or flight of the persecuted Moslems. After some time, the persecution being resumed by the Koreish more hotly than ever, a larger number of Moslems, more than hundred, emigrated to Abyssinia. This was the second flight of the Moslems. The Koreish had sent an embassy to the Court of Abyssinia to fetch back the refugees. The king denied their surrender. About two years 6 Summary of Persecutions. later the Koreish formed a hostile confederacy, by which all intercourse with the Moslems and their suj^porters was suspended. The Koreish forced upon the Moslems, by their threats and menaces, to retire from the city. For about three years, they, together with the Prophet and the Hashimites and their families, had to shut themselves up in the Sheb of Abu Talib. They remained there, cut off from communication with the outer world. The ban of separation was put rigorously in force. The terms of the social and civil ban put upon them were, that they would neither intermarry with the proscribed, nor sell to or buy from them anything, and that they would entirely cease from all intercourse with them. Mohammad, in the interval of the holy months, used to go forth and mingle with the pil- grims to Mecca, and preached to them the abhorrence of idolatry and the worship of the One True God. The Sheb, or quarter of Abu Talib, lies under the rocks of Abu Cobeis. A low gateway cut them off from the outer world, and within they had to suffer all privations of a beleaguered garrison. No one would venture forth except in the sacred months, when all hostile feelings and acts had to be laid aside. The citizens could hear the voices of the half- famished children inside the Sheb ; and this state of endurance on the one side, and persecution on tlie other, went on for some three years. Five of the Summarij of Persecutions. 7 chief supporters of the adverse faction detached from tlie league and broke up the confederacy and released the imprisoned religionists. This was in the tenth year of Mohammad's ministry. Soon after Mohammad and the early Moslems suffered a great loss in the death of his venerable uncle and protector Abu Talib. Thus, Mohammad and his followers became again exposed to the unchecked insults and perse- cutions incited by Abu Sofian, Abu Jahl, and others ; and being a handful in the hostile city, were unable to cope with its rich and powerful chiefs. At this critical period, either because he found it unsafe to remain at Mecca, or because he trusted his message would find more acceptance elsewhere, Mohammad set off to Tayef of the Bani Thakif, — the town was one of the great strongholds of idolatry. There was a stone hnage, called Al-Lat, adorned with costly vestments and precious stones, was an object of worship, and esteemed to be one of the daughters of God. Here Mohammad preached to unwilling ears, and met with nothing but opposition and scorn from the chief men, which soon spread to the popu- lace. He was driven out of the town, maltreated, and wounded. He could not return to and enter Mecca unless protected by Mut-im, a chief of the blood of Abd Shams. At the yearly pilgrimage, a little group of wor- shippers from Medina was attracted and won over 8 The Ilegira. by the preaching of IsLam ; and the followhig year it increased to twelve. They met Mohammad and took an oath of allegiance. A teacher was de; uted by Mohammad to Medina, and the new faith spread there with a marvellous rapidity. Again the time of pilgrimage arrived, and more than seventy disciples from Medina pledged themselves to receive and defend him at the risk of their lives and property. This was all done in secret ; but the Koreish, having got notice of it, renewed such severities and perse- cutions, including, in some cases, imprisonment, as hastened the departure of the Moslems to Medina, their city of refuge. Mohammad, being much troubled by the into- „ „ . lerance of the people and the per- 5. The Hegira. ^ -^ ^ sonal safety and security of him- self and his followers being endangered, and mutual intercourse denied, saw that it was hopeless to expect any forbearance on the part of the Koreish, who would not permit him to live and preach his religion at home, and looked for assistance and protection from a strange land. He asked the people of Medina to re- ceive and protect him. The Medina converts, who had come to Mecca on pilgrimage, pledged themselves to Mohammad, and promised to defend him as they would defend their wives and children. The Medina converts, although not acting on the offensive, be- came at once objects of suspicion to the Koreish, TJie Hegira. 9 who endeavoured to seize those who were m Mecca. They maltreated one of the Medina converts who fell into their hands, and the work of persecution was recommenced in right earnest.^ Two months elapsed before the believers, except those detained in confine- ment or who were unable to escape from slavery, or women and children, could emigrate. Families after families silently disappeared, and house after house was abandoned. One or two quarters of the city were entirely deserted. The Koreish held a council and proscribed Mohammad, who escaped together with Abu Bakr, leaving Ali in his house, around whom, to lull the suspicions of his neighbours, he threw his own mantle, and desired him to occupy his bed. Mohammad and his follower took refuge in a cave. The Koreish despatched scouts in all directions to search for Mohammad, but in vain. After hiding for three days in the cave, Mohammad and Abu Bakr started for Medina, where they arrived safely. The foregoing circumstances would have fully jus- tified immediate hostilities on the part of Mohammad, but he did not take up arms until compelled to do so by the attacks of the Meccans. ' " The support of the Medina adherents, and the suspicion of an intended emigration, irritated the Koreish to severity ; and this severity forced the Moslems to petition Mahomet for leave to emigrate. The two causes might co-exist and re-act one another ; the persecution would hasten the departure of the converts, while each fresh departure would irritate the Koreish to greater cruelty." — William Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. II, pp. 242, 243, foot-note. 6 10 Persecution by Koreish. Notwithstanding the flight of the Prophet and of 6. The persecution ^^^ t^ie early Moslem converts of the Moslems by the i t ^ > oo i Koreish after their who Were able to eiiect an escape flight from Mecca. , ,^ > n •^• -, except their families, women and children, and those weak Moslems who could not leave Mecca, the Meccans or the Koreish did not forgive the fugitives and did not abstain from their aggressions against them. They maltreated the children and weak Moslems left at Mecca (iv, 77, 99 and 100), expelled the Moslems from their houses, and would not allow them to come back to Mecca for a pilgrimage (ii, 214). The Meccans several times invaded the Medina territory with the avowed intention of making war upon the Moslems (and actually fought the battles of Bedr, Ohad, Khan- dak or Ahzab, at Medina), consequently the Moslems were forced to resort to arms in pure self-defence. These were sufhcient grounds for the Moslems to assume the offensive. They were desirous also of rescuing their families and those who had been un- able to join in the flight from the tyranny and oppres- sion of the Meccans. Yet they were in no instance the asfOTessors. Driven from their homes and fami- ies they did not resort to arms until absolutely com- pelled to do so in self-defence. All that Mohammad claimed for himself and his fol- lowers was, full liberty of conscience and actions, and permission to preach and practice his religion with- Battle at Badr. 11 out being molested. This being refused, he advised his followers to leave the city and seek refuge else- where. They emigrated twice to Abyssinia, and for the third time were expelled to Medina, where he himself followed, when his own life was attempted. The Meccans or the Koreish. The attitude of the Koreish towards the Prophet and his followers after the flight 7. A Koreish chief- ^ ^^ tain commits a raid rapidly bccamc morc hostile. near Medina.— A. H., I. Kurzibn Jabir, one of the maraud- ing chieftains of the Koreish, fell upon some of the camels and flocks of Medina, while feeding in a plain a few miles from the city, and carried them off. Still there was no hostile response from Medina, 8. The Koreish march ti^ ^^^ aggrcssors (the Korcish) £.mSmS:s fortt brought from Medina an army iLtttratBl?^!! of 950 strong, mounted on 700 ' ■ camels and 100 horses, to Badr, nine stages from Mecca, advancing towards Medina. Then the Prophet set out from Medina at the head of his small army of 305 to check the advance of his ao-o-ressors. This was the first offensive and defensive war between the Koreish and Mohammad respec- tively. The aggressors lost the battle. After this Abu Sofian, the head of the Koreish, accompanied by 200 mounted 9. Attack by Abu i at i i i Sofian upon Medina.— followcrs, alarmed Mohammad and *' ' the people of Medina by a raid 12 Battle of Ohad. upon the cornfields and palm gardens two or three miles north-east of Medina. The nomad tribes of Suliem and Ghatafau, who were descended from a common stock with the Koreish, being probably incited by them, or at least by the example of Abu Sofian, had twice assembled and projected a plun- dering attack upon Medina — a task in itself congenial with their predatory habits. The Koreish made great preparations for a fresh 10. The battle of attack upon Medina. One year ^'^^^' after the battle of Badr, they com- menced their march, — three thousand in number, seven hundred were mailed warriors, and two hundred well mounted cavalry. Reaching Medina they encamped in an extensive and fertile plain to the west of Ohad. Mohammad met Abu Sofian at the head of 700 followers and only two horsemen, but lost the battle and was wounded. Mohammad's prestige bemg affected by the defeat at 11. Mohammad's pres- Ohad, maiw of the Bedouiii tribes tige affected by the defeat. began to assume an hostile atti- tude towards him. The Bani Asad, a powerful tribe connected with the Koreish in Najd and Bani Lahyan in the vicinity of Mecca, prepared to make a raid upon Medina. The Mohammadan missionaries were killed at Raji and Bir Maiina. The marauding bands of Duma also threatened a raid upon the city. Bani Mustalik also raised forces to join the Koreish in their threatened attack upon Medina. Koreish besieged Medina. 13 Abu Sofiaii, while retiring from the field, victorious 12. Abu sofian ^s lie was, threatened the Moslem threatened the Moslems „ vi, ^ ^ i-i. ^ l.^ i. with another attack With a Iresh attack the next year ^^^ ^^^^* as he said to Omar : " We shall meet again, let it be after a year, at Badr." Medina and the Moslems, however, enjoyed a long exemption from the threatened attack of the Koreish. At length the time came when the forces of the Koreish and the Moslems were again to meet at Badr. But the year was one of great draught, and the Koreish were desirous that the expedition should be deferred to a more favorable season. Accord- ingly the Koreish engaged Naeem, an Arab of a neutral tribe, to repair to Medina, and there to give forth an exaggerated account of the preparations of the Koreish, in the hope that, with the field of Ohad fresh in memory, it might deter the Moslems from setting out to meet them. But Mohammad, with a force of fifteen hundred men and only ten horses, set forth for Badr. The Koreish, who never appeared mortified at the triumph of Mohammad, began to project another grand attack upon him. The winter season in the next year was chosen for 13. The Koreish thc rciicwal of hostilities by the again attack Medina . . , with a large army. Korcish. They joiucd an im- Mohammad defends the city. The enemy re- meiise forcc of the Bcdouiu tribcs tire. (Ditch or Nations. —A. H., V.) (the entire army was estimated at ten thousand), marched against Mohammad, and 14 Pilgrimage at Mecca. besieged Medina. Mohammad defended the city by- digging a Ditch. The army of Medina was posted within the trench, and that of the Koreish encamped opposite them. In the meantime Abu Sofian suc- ceeded in detaching the Jewish tribe of Koreiza from their allegiance to Mohammad. The danger to Medina from this defection was great. The enemy made a general attack, which was repulsed. Bad weather set in, and Abu Sofian ordered the allied force to break up. The enemy retired, and never came again to attack the Moslems. This, therefore, was the last war of aggression on the part of the Koreish, and of defence on the part of Mohammad. Six years had passed since the expulsion of , , ,^ , , .,, Mohammad and his followers 14. Monainmad, with Ms followers advanced fj,Qj^^ McCCa. ThcV had not siuCC to periorm the lesser •' Sf SeV' oJpS Visited the Holy house, nor had uirneTTsippdnted!-- they joiucd the yearly pilgrimage, '' * which was an essential part of their social and religious life. Mohammad undertook to perform the lesser pilgrimage to Mecca in. the month of Zalkada, in which war was unlawful throughout Arabia. Mohammad, with his followers, the pious and peaceful worshippers, fifteen hundred in number, set forth for Mecca. The pilgrims carried no arms, but such as were allowed by custom to travellers, — namely, each a sheathed sword. The Koreish, with their allies, the surrounding tribes, Violation of treaty by Koreish. 15 hearing of the approach of the pilgrims, took up arms. They pushed forward to obstruct the pilgrims. Mohammad encamped at Hodeibia, where a treaty of peace was concluded between the Koreish and Mohammad. The treaty was to the effect, that war should be suspended for ten years, neither party attacking the other. Whosoever wished to join Mohammad and enter into treaty with him, should have liberty to do so. " If any one goeth over to Mohammad, without the permission of his guardian, he shall be sent back to his guardian. But if any one from amono-st the followers of Mohammad return to the Koreish, the same shall not be sent back, provided, on the part of the Koreish, that Mohammad and his followers retire from us this year without entering our city. In the coming year he may visit Mecca — he and his followers — for three days, when we shall retire therefrom. But they may not enter it with any weapons, save those of the travellers — namely, to each a sheathed sword." Bani Khozaa entered into the alliance of Mohammad, and Bani Bakr adhered to the Koreish. The peace remained unbroken until the Koreish violated the treaty of Hodeibia^ 15. Violation of the t i 'n i treaty by the Koreish, and treaclicrously killed scvcral and their submission. t* • t^i men of the Bani Khozad. Moham- ' Unfortunately several missionary expeditions sent by Mohammad were met with unfavorable circumstances. The party sent to Bani Suleim, demanding their allegiance to the faith of Islam, was slain. Another party sent to Bani Leith was surprised, and its camels phindered. A small party sent by Mohammad to Fadak was cut to pieces by Bani Murra. Another party sent to Zat Atlah to call upon the people to 16 Proof that wars were defensive. mad marched against them in the eighth year of the Hegira in defence of the injured and oppressed -Bani Khozaa, and to chastize the Koreish for viola- tion of the treaty. But the Koreish submitted to the authority of Mohammad before he arrived at Mecca, and the city was occupied without resistance. Soon after, the great and warlike tribe of Hawazin 16. Two other tribes ^^^ Thakccf assumcd the ofFen- assume the offensive. ^-^^^ rpj^^^ assembled at Autas, and advanced upon Honain to attack Mohammad. He was obliged to leave Mecca and set out to disperse them, who were beaten back at Honain (S. ix, 26-28). Taif of the Thakeef was besieged, but in vain. The defensive character of the wars. This brief sketch of the defensive wars of Moham- 17. Verses from the ^^^d with the Korcish wiU fully deSiV^'e'chaSlter^of ^l^ow, that those who asscrt that ^ ^^^^' Mohammad was aggressive or re- vengeful in his wars, or that he made war to force his religion upon the people, are altogether in the wrong. I will now quote some verses of the Koran, show- ing that all the wars of Mohammad with the Koreish were defensive wars. 39. " Verily, God will ward off^ mischief from believers : lo, God loveth not the false, the unbeliever." embrace Islam, of which only one person escaped. Mohammad's messen- ger despatched to the Ghassanide Prince at Bostra was murdered by the chief of Muta. His army sent to avenge the treachery of the chief was defeated. All these mishaps and reverses dangerously affected the prestige of Mohammad, and encouraged the Meccans to violate the truce. ' Or defend, ' Yadafeo ' repel. Proof that wars were defensive. 17 40. "A sanction is given to those who have been fought/ because they have suffered outrages, and verily, God is well able to succour them " — 41. " Those who have been driven forth from their homes wrongfully, only because they say, ' Our Lord is the God.' And if God had not repelled some men by others, cloisters and churches and oratories and mosques wherein the name of God is ever com- memorated, would surely have been destroyed ! And him who helpeth God will God surely help : Yerily, God is Strong, Mighty." 42. " They who, if We established them in this land, will observe prayer and pay the alms of obliga- tion and enjoin what is recognized as right — and forbid what is unlawful. And the final issue of all things is unto God." — Sura, xxii. 186. " And fight for the cause of God against those who fight against you : but commit not the injustice of attacking them first: verily, God loveth not the unjust." 187. " And kill them wherever ye find them, and eject them from whatever place they have ejected you, for (fitnahy persecution is worse than slaughter: yet attack them not at the sacred mosque, until ' Tohataloonn, or who fight YoTtateloona. The former reading is the authorized and general. ^ The primary signification oifitnah is burning with fire. It signifies a trial or x^^olation and afiiiction, distress or hardship; and particularly an affliction whereby one is tried, proved, or tested, — Vide Lane's Arabic- English Lexicon, p. 2335. 18 Proof that tears loere defensive. they attack you tlierein ; but if tliey attack you, then slay them — Such is the recompense of the infidels ! "— 188. " But if they desist/ then verily God is Gracious, Merciful ! " 189. " And do battle against them until there be no more (fitnali) persecution, and the worship be that of God -? but if they desist,^ then let there be no hostility, save against wrong-doers." 214. " They will ask thee concerning war in the Sacred Month. Say : The act of fighting therein is a grave crime ; but the act of turning others aside from the path of God, and unbelief in Him, and to prevent access to the Sacred Mosque, and to drive out his people, is worse in the sight of God ; and persecution {fitnah) is worse than bloodshed. But they will not cease to war against you until they turn you from your religion, if they be able : but whoever of you shall turn from his religion, and die an infidel, their works shall be fruitless in this world and in the next : and they shall be consigned to the fire ; therein to abide for aye." 215. " But they who believe, and who fly their • Desist from perseciiting you and preventing you to enter your native city and prohibiting access to tlie sacred mosque and attacking you, and from religious intolerance. ^ i.e., the religious persecution and intolerance and hindrance to visit the sacred mosque being suppressed ; you may profess, preach and practice your religion freely. •'' Vide note 2 in p. 17. Proof that wars ivere defensive. 19 country, and do their utmost in the cause of God, may hope for God's mercy : and God is Gracious, Merciful." 245. " And fight in the cause of God ; and know that God is He who Heareth, Knoweth." 247. " Hast thou not considered the assembly of the children of Israel after the death of Moses, when they said to a prophet of theirs, — ' Raise up for us a king ; we will do battle for the cause of God ? ' He said, ' May it not be that if to fight were or- dained you, ye would liot fight ? ' They said, ' And why should we not fight in the cause of God, since we are driven forth from our dwellings and our children ? ' But when fighting was commanded them they turned back, save a few of them : But God knew the offenders ! " 252. " And by the will of God they routed them ; and (Daood) David slew Goliath ; and God gave him the kingship and wisdom, and taught him according to his will : and were it not for the restraint of one by the means of the other imposed on men by God, verily the earth had assuredly gone to ruin, but God is bounteous to his creatures." — Sura, ii. 76. "Let those then fight in the cause of God who barter this present life for that which is to come ; for whoever fighteth on God's path, whether he be slain or conquer, We will in the end give him a great reward." 20 Proof that wars were defensive. 77. " But wliat hath come to you that ye fight not on the path of God, and for the weak among men, women and children, who say, ' our Lord ! bring us forth from this City whose inhabitants are oppressors ; give us a champion from thy presence ; and give us from thy presence a defender ? ' " 78. " They who believe, fight on the path of God ; and they who believe not, fight on the path of Thagoot : Fight then against the friends of Satan — Verily, the craft of Satan shall be powerless ! " 86. " Fight then on the path of God : lay not burdens on any but thyself ; and stir up the faithful. The prowess of the infidels, God will haply restrain ; for God is the stronger in prowess, and the stronger to punish." 91. " They desire that ye should be unbelievers as they are unbelievers, and that ye should be alike. Take therefore none of them for friends, until they have fled their homes for the cause of God. If they turn back, then seize them and slay them wherever ye find them ; but take none of them as friends or helpers." 92. " Except those who seek asylum among your allies, and those who come over to you — prevented by their own hearts by making war on you, or from making war on their own people. Had God pleased, He would certainly have given them power against you, and they would certainly have made war upon Proof that tears were defensive. 21 you ! But, if they depart from you, and make not war against you and offer you peace, then God alloweth you no occasion against them." 93. "Ye will find others who seek to gain your confidence as well as that of their own people : So oft as they return to sedition, they shall be over- thrown in it : But if they leave you not, nor pro- pose terms of peace to you, nor withhold their hands, then seize them, and slay them wherever ye find them. Over these have We given you undoubted power." — Sura, iv. 19. "0 Meccans ! If ye desired a decision, now hath the decision come to you. It will be better for you if ye give over the struggle {or attacking wpon Medina or the Moslem). If ye return to it we will return ; and your forces, though they may be many, shall by no means avail you aught, because God is with the faithful." 39. " Say to the infidels : If they desist {from persecuting^ obstructing, and attacking the Moslems), what is now past shall be forgiven them ; but if they return to it (commit again the hostilities), they have already before them the doom of the ancients ! " 40. " Fight then against them till civil strife be at an end, and the religion be all of it God's ; and if they desist, verily God beholdeth what they do." 41. " But if they turn their back, know ye that God is your protector : Excellent protector ! and excellent helper ! " 22 Proof that wars were defensive. 73. " And they who have believed, but have not fled their homes, shall have no rights of kindred with you at all, until they too fly their country. Yet if they seek aid from you on account of the faith, your part it is to give them aid, except against a people between whom and yourselves there may be a treaty. And God beholdeth your actions," 74. " And the infidels have the like relationships one with another. Unless ye do the same (z'.g., aid the oppressed and repel the oppressor), there will be discord in the land and great corruption." — Sura, viii. (When the Meccans broke the Hodeibia treaty mentioned m the above paragraph, the Koreish and Bani Bakr attacked Bani Khozaa, who were in alliance with Mohammad. It became incumbent on him to assist Bani Bakr and to chastize the aggressors. The fol- lowing verses were published on that occasion, but happily, before the expiration of the fixed period, the Koreish submitted and Mecca was taken without bloodshed, and these verses were not acted upon : — ) 1. " An immunity from God and His Apostle to those with whom ye are in league {and they' have violated the same — compare verses 4, 8 and 10) among the polytheist Meccans." 2. " Go ye therefore at large in the land four months (i.e., four sacred months from Shaw-ival. The treaty luas violated by the Koreish in Ramzan, a month immediately previous to the sacred months. Proof that wars were defensive. 23 It is announced here that four months' time is given to the aggressors, ivho violated the treaty of Hodeibia, to maJce terms. After the time is over (verse 5) the Moslems will commence hostilities to defend their allies, the Bani Khozad), but know that ye shall not find God feeble, and that those who believe not, God will put to shame." 3. "And a proclamation on the part of God and His Apostle to the people on the day of the greater pilgrimage, that God is free from any engagemetit with those who worship other gods with God, as is his Apostle. If then, ye turn to God, it will be better for you ; but if ye turn back, then know that ye shall not find God feeble : and to those who believe not, announce thou a grievous punishment." 4. " But this concerneth not those Polytheists with whom ye are in league, and who have afterwards in no way failed you, and not yet aided any one against you. Observe, therefore, your engagement with them through the whole time of their treaty. Yerily, God loveth those who fear Him." 5. " And when the sacred months are passed^ kill those who join other gods with God^ wherever ye find them ; and seize them, and besiege them, and lay wait for them with every kind of ambush ; ' Sliaw-wal. Zulkada, Zulhij, and Moharram, the lOth, 11th, 12th, and 1st mouths of the Arabian year. These verses were promulgated in Ramzan, the 9th month of the year, ^ And have violated the Hodeibia Truce. Compare verses i, 8, and 12. 24 Proof that wars were defensive. but if they repent and observe prayer and pay the obligatory alms, then let them go their way.^ Verily, God is Gracious, Merciful." 6. "If any one of those who join gods with God ask an asylum of thee, grant him an asylum, in order that he hear the Word of God ; then let him reach his place of safety. This, for that they are people devoid of knowledge." 7. " How can they who add gods to God be in league with God and His Apostle, save those with whom ye made a league at the sacred temple ? So long as they are true to you,^ be ye true to them : verily, God loveth those who fear Him." 8. " How can they? since if they prevail against you, they will not regard in their dealing with you, either ties of blood or good faith : "With their mouths they content you, but their hearts are averse, and most of them are perverse doers." 9. " They sell the signs of God for a mean price, and turn others aside from his way ; of a truth, evil is it that they do ! " 10. " They respect not with a believer either ties of blood or good faith ; and these are the transgressors ! " ' It is not meant that they should be forced to observe prayer or pay obligatory alms, or in other words be converted to Islam ; the context and general scope of the Koran would not allow such a meaning. The next verse clearly enjoins toleration. 2 The Bani Kinana and Bani Zamara had not violated the truce of Hodeibia while the Koreish and Bani Bakr had done so. Proof that wars tcere defensive. 25 11. " Yet if they turn to God and observe prayer, and pay the impost, then are they your brethren in relifrion : and We make clear the sio;ns for men of knowledge."^ 12. " But if, after alHance made, they violate their covenant and revile your religion, then do battle with the ringleaders of infidelity — verily there is no faith in them ! Haply they will desist." 13. " Will ye not do battle with a people {the ]\[eccans) who have broken their covenant and aimed to expel your Apostle and attacked you first ? Will ye dread them ? God truly is more worthy of your fear if ye are believers ! " 14. " Make war on them : By your hands will God chastize them, and put them to shame, and give victory over them, and heal the bosom of a people who believe." 36. " and attack those who join gods with God one and all, as they attack you one and all." — Sura, ix. I need not repeat here what these verses and the 18. What the above- ^^^cts related above show, that the quoted verses show. ^^^^,^ ^^ Mohammad with the Koreish were merely defensive, and the Koreish were • This is the same as verse 5. It only means, if meanwhile they become converts to Islam, they are to be treated as brethren in religion. But it cannot mean that it was the sole motive of making war with them to convert them. Such an interpretation is quite contrary to the general style of the Koran. 2 G Moslems justified. the aggressors, and that Mohammad was quite jus- tified in taking up arms against them. " In the state of nature every man has a right to defend," writes Mr. Edward Gibbon,^ " by force of arms, his person and his possessions ; to repel, or even to repeat, the violence of his enemies, and to extend his hostilities to a reasonable measure of satisfaction and retaliation. In the free society of the Arabs, the duties of subject and citizen imposed a feeble restraint ; and Mahommed, in the exercise of a peaceful and benevolent mission, had been des- poiled and banished by the injustice of his country- men." It has been fully shown in the foregoing paragraphs that the Moslems in Mecca enjoyed neither safety nor security. Religious freedom was denied to them, though they were harmless and peaceful members of the community. Besides this they were expelled from their homes, leaving their families and their property in the hands of their persecutors, and were prevented from returning to Mecca, and were refused access to the Sacred Mosque ; and, above all, they were attacked by the Meccans in force at Medina. The persecution of the early Moslems by the Koreish 19. Justification of "^^^ 0^ rcligioiis gTouuds. They ^^"^^iS^t^ would not allow the believers to aggressors. rcnouncc the religion of their fore- ' The History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, by Ed- ward Gibbon, Vol. VI, p. 245, Opinions of European Biograp)hers. 27 fathers and profess Islam. Their intolerance was so strong and harsh that they tortured some of the professors of the new faith to renounce the same and to rejoin their former idolatry. " Taking away the lives, the fortune, the liberty and the rights of our brethren merely for serving their Maker in such a manner as they are persuaded they ought, when by so doing they hurt not human society or any member of it materially, is evidently inconsistent with all justice and humanity: for it is punishing those who have not injured us, and who, if they mistake, deserve pity from us." ^ The early Moslems had had every international right to resent persecu- tion and intolerance of the Meccans and to establish themselves by force of arms, to enjoy their religious liberty and to practise their religion freely. Some of the European biographers of Mohammad 20. The first a^gres- ^ay, "that the first aggressions iZ ^Vt. ^il\ ^fter the Hegira were solely on the Mohammad. p.^j,|. ^f Mahomct and his fol- lowers. It was not until several of their caravans kad been waylaid and plundered, and blood had thus been shed, that the people of Mecca were forced in self-defence to resort to arms." ^ This is not correct. The aggressors, in the first instance, were the Koreish, who, as already shown, ' Archbishop Seeker's Works, III, p. 271. • Sir W. Muir, II, p. 265. 28 Opinions of European Biographers. followed up their persecution of the Moslems by an attack upon the city in which the Prophet and his fol- lowers had taken refuge. Even taking it for granted that the Moslems were the first aggressors after the Hegira, was not the Hegira, or expulsion itself (leaving aside the previous j^ersecutions and oppressions at Mecca), a sufficient reason for the commencement of hostilities by the Moslems, who were anxious to secure their moral and religious freedom, and to protect them- selves and their relatives from further aggressions ? Sir William Muir admits, that " hostilities, in- deed, were justified by the ' expulsion ' of the be- lievers from Mecca." ^ "It may be said," says Major Vans Kennedy, " that, in these wars, Mohammad was the aggressor by his having, soon after his flight, attempted to intercept the caravans of Mecca. But the first aggression was, undoubtedly, the conspi- racy of the Koreish to assassinate Mohammad, and when to save his life he fled from Mecca, himself and his followers were thus deprived of their property, and obliged to depend for their subsistence on the hospitality of the men of Medina, it could not be reasonably expected that they would allow the cara- vans of their enemies to pass unmolested."^ ' Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, p. 79. - Remarks on the character of Mohammad (sug-gested by Voltaire's Tragedy of Mahomet) by Major Vans Kennedy. Vide Transactions of the Literary Society of Bombay for 1821, Vol. Ill, p. io3, reprint Bombay, 1877. Moliaiiii)ia(Ts alUujed e.rpeditions. 29 There is no proof that Mohammad, after the Hcgira, 21. The aiie-ed ins- commenced hostilities against the tances examined. Roreish hj intercepting their cara- vans. The alleo'ed instances of the caravans beino- waylaid by the Moslems at Medina are not corroborat- ed by authentic and trustworthy traditions. They have also internal evidences of their improbability. The Medina people had pledged themselves only to defend the Prophet from attack, and not to join him in any aggressive steps against the Koreish.^ Therefore, it seems impossible that they should have allowed Mo- hammad to take any aggressive steps against the Koreish which would have involved them in great trouble. The alleged expeditions against the Koreish caravans 22. Hamza and ^Y Hamza and the other by Obeida Obeida expedition. -^^ pursuit of caravans which escaped, are in themselves improbable. Mohammad would not send fifty or sixty persons to waylay a caravan guarded by two or three hundred armed men. The alleged expeditions of Abwa, Bowat, and Osh- 23. The Abwa. Bowat, ^ira. Said to havc been led by &Osheira expeditions. Mohammad himself to intercept the Mecca caravans, but in vain, are altogether with- out foundation. He might have gone, if he had gone at all, to Abwa, and Osheira to negotiate friendly ' ''Mahomet did not send the Medina converts on any hostile expedi- tion against the Koreish, until they had warred with him at Badr, and the reason is, that they had pledged themselves to protect him only at their homes." — K. Wackidi, 48 ; JMuir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, p. 64, note. 30 Mohammad's alleged expeditions. terms with Bani Dhumra^ and Bani Mudlij, as his biographers say, he did. The affair of the Nakhla marauding party, as related 24. The affair at ^^ ^^^^ traditions, is full of discre- ^' pancies, and is altogether incon- sistent and untrustworthy. The very verse (Sura, ii, verse 214) which the biographers say was revealed on the occasion, and whicli I have quoted above (para. 16), contains a reference to the Meccans' fio-htino- against the Moslems, which runs counter to the assumption of the European biographers, who make it an aggressive attack on the part of Mohammad. It is probable that Mohammad might have sent some six or eio'ht scouts to brins^ in news of the move- ments and condition of the Koreish, whose attitude towards Mohammad had become more hostile since his flight to Medina. As the Koreish had a regular and uninterrupted route to Syria for traffic, it was only reasonable on the part of Mohammad to take precautions, and he was always on his guard. The biographers Ibn Is-Iiak, Ibn Hisham (p. 424), Tahri (Vol. II, p. 422), Ibnal Athir in Kamil (Vol. II, p. 87), Halahi in Insanid Oijoon (Vol. Ill, p. 318), say, that Mohammad had given written instructions to ' "K. Wackidi, 98^. The provisions are noted only generally, "that neither party would levy war against the other, nor help their enemies." The version quoted by Weil binding the Bani Dhumra to fight for the faith, &c., is evidently anticipatory and apocryphal. It is not given by the Secretary of Wackidi in his chapter of treaties." — Muir's Life of Mahomet, III, p. G7, note. Battle of Badr criticised. 31 Abdoollali-bin- Jahsli, which was to the effect " bring me intelligence of their affairs." They also say that Mohammad was displeased with AbdooUah's affair at Naklila, and said, " I never commanded thee to fight in the Sacred Month." The biographers also relate that Mohammad even paid, blood-money for the slain. Some of the European biographers of Mohammad allesje, that the battle of Badr was 25. At Badr Moham- mad had come ouiy in broiight by Moliammad himself. his defence. They appear to hesitate to justify Mohammad in defending himself against the superior numbers of the Koreish, who had advanced to attack him as far as Badr, three stages from Medina. It is alle2:ed that Mohammad intended to attack the cara- vans returning from Syria, conducted by Abu Sofian, his arch-enemy, therefore he set out upon his march with eighty refugees and two hundred and twenty-five people of Medina, and halted at Safra to waylay the caravan. Abu Sofian, warned of Mohammad's inten- tion, sent some one to Mecca for succour. The Koreish, with nine hundred and fifty strong, marched forth to rescue the caravan. In the meantime, the caravan had passed unmolested, but the Koreish held a council whether to return or go to war. On the one hand, the biographers say, it was argued that the object for which they had set out having been secured, the army should at once retrace its steps. Others demanded that the army should advance. Two tribes returned -r ^ — 32 Battle of Badr criticised. to Mecca, the rest marched onwards ; but it is not fair to allege that Mohammad had set forth to attack the caravan. Had he any such intention, the people of Medina, who had pledged themselves only to defend him against personal attack, would not have accompanied him. The presence of a large number of the Anschs, the people of Medina, more than double that of the Mohajirins, the refugees, is a strong proof that they had come out only in their defence. Mohammad, on receiving intelligence of the ad- vancing force of the Koreish, set out from Medina to check the advance of the Meccan force, and encountered it at Badr, three days' journey from Medina. The Meccan arm}'- had advanced nine days' journey from Mecca towards Medina. The forces met at Badr on the 17th of Ramzan (13th January 623), the Meccans had left Mecca on the 8 th of Ramzan (4th January), and Mohammad started only on the 12th of Ramzan (8th January), about four days after the Meccan army had actually set out to attack him. Supposing Abu Sofian had some reason for apprehending an attack from Medina, and sent for succour from Mecca, but the object of the Meccan army of the Koreish for which they had set out having been secured, the caravan having passed un- molested, they ought at once to have retraced their steps. The fact that Mohammad left Medina four days after the Koreish had left Mecca with a large Other aggressions criticised. 33 army advancing towards Medina, is strongly in Lis favour. Even taking it for granted that the first aggres- 26. The first ag-gres- sions after the Hegira were solely sious after the Hegira, if from Mohammad, on the part of the Moslcms, and might fairly be looked upon as retaliation. that Several of the caravans of the Koreish had been waylaid and plundered, and blood had been shed, it would be unfair to condemn Moham- mad, Such attacks, had they been made, might fairly be looked upon as a retaliation for the ill-treat- ment of the Moslems before the flight from Mecca. " Public war is a state of armed hostility between sovereign nations or governments. It is a law and requisite of civilized existence that men live in poli- tical continuous societies, forming organized units called states or nations, whose constituents bear, enjoy and suffer, advance and retrograde together, in peace and in war. The citizen or native of hostile country is thus an enemy, as one of the constituents of the hostile state or nation, and as such is subjected to the hardships of war." ^ The almost universal rule of most remote times was, and continues to be with barbarous nations, that the private individual of a hostile country is destined to suffer every pri- vation of liberty and protection, and every description of family ties. But Mohammad protected the inof- ' Contributions to Political Science by Francis Lieber, LL.D., Vol. II of his miscellaneous writings, p. 251, London, 1881. 34 Breaking of treaties hy the Jews. fensive citizen or private individual of the hostile country. He even protected those who had actually come out of Mecca to fight at Badr, but were reluc- tant to do so. Mohammad had desired quarters to be given to several persons in the Koreish army at Badr. Abul Bakhtari, Zamaa, Harith Ibu Amir, Abb^s and other Bani Hdshim were amongst those named. The Jews. Mohammad, on his first arrival at Medina, made a 27. The Jews broke t^'^^ty of alliance with the Jews, *^®^*^^^" by which the free exercise of their religion and the possession of their rights and pro- perty were guaranteed. It was stipulated in the treaty that either party, if attacked, should come to the assistance of the other. Medina should be sacred and inviolable for all who joined the treaty. But the Jews broke their treaty and rebelled. They assisted the enemy during the siege of Medina, and committed treason against the city. The Bani Kainiikaa were the first among the Jews who broke the treaty and fought 28. Bani Kainiikaa, . nr ^ i i j j.i Bani Nazeer, Koreiza, agamst Mohammad betwcen the Khyber, and Ghatafan. ^^^^^^^ ^^ ^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^^, The Bani Nazeer broke their compact with Moham- mad after his defeat at Oliad. They had also made a conspiracy to kill Mohammad. They were banished ; some of them went over to Khyber. The Jewish ' Hishamee, p. 54.5. Gottengen, 1859 ; or, The Life of Muhammad, by Abd etl Malik ibn Hisham. London : Trubner and Co., 18G7. Proof of Treacheries of the Jews. 35 tribe of Koreiza had defected from their allegiance to Mohammad, and entered into negotiations with the enemy, when Medina was besieged by the Koreisli and Bedouin tribes at the battle of the Ditch. They were afterwards besieged by Mohammad. They surrendered at the discretion of Sad, who joassed a bloody judgment against them. The Jews of Khyber (including those of Nazeer) and Bani Ghatafan, who had lately besieged Medina with the Koreish in the battle of the Ditch, made alliance against Mohammad,^ and were making preparations for an attack on him. They had been inciting the Bani Fezara and other Bedouin tribes in their depre- dations, and had combined with Bani Sad-Ibn Bakr to attack upon Medina. They were subjected at Khyber, and made tributaries, paying yzVt/a in return of the protection guaranteed to them. The treachery of the Bani Kainiikad, Nazeer and 29. Notices of them Korciza, and Khyber is noticed in the Koran. -^^ ^^^ j^^^,^^ .^^ ^^^ following verses : — 58. " They with whom thou hadst leagued, but who ever afterwards break their league, and fear not God !" 59. " And if thou capture them in battle, then {hy the example of their fate) put to flight those who are behind them — they will perhaps be warned:" — ' Hishamee, p. 757. 36 Proof of Treacheries of the Jews. 60. " Or, if thou fear treachery from any people, throw back their treaty to them in like manner: verily, God loveth not the treacherous." 61. "And think not that the infidels shall get the better of Us ! Verily, they shall not find God to be weak." 62. " Make ready then against them what force ye can, and squadrons of horse whereby ye may strike terror into the enemy of God and your enemy, and into others beside them whom ye know not, hut whom God knoweth ; And all that you expend for the cause of God shall be repaid you ; and ye shall not be wronged." 63. But if they lean to peace, lean thou also to it ; and put thy trust in God : He verily is the Hearing, the Knowing." 64. " But if they seek to betray thee, then verily God will be all-sufiicient for thee. He it is who strengthened thee with his help and with the faithful and made their heart one. Hadst thou spent all the riches of the earth, thou wouldst not have united their hearts ; but God hath united them : He verily is Mighty, Wise." 65. "0 Prophet! God and such of the faithful as follow thee will be all-sufiicient for thee ! " &Q. "0 Prophet! stir up the faithful to the fight " — Sura, viii. 26. " And He caused those of the people of the Judgment of Sad. 37 Book (the Jews) who had aided tlte confederates, to come down out of then' fortresses, and cast dis- may into their hearts : a part ye slew, a part ye took prisoners." — Sura, xxxiii. 29. " Make war upon such of those to whom the Scriptures have been given,^ as believe not in God, or in the last day, and who forbid not that which God and his apostles have forbidden, and who pro- fess not the profession of the Truth, until they pay tribute out of hand, and they be humbled." 124. "Believers! wage war against such of the unbelievers as are your neighbours, and let them assuredly find rigour in you : and know that God is with those who fear Him." — Sura, ix. The Bani Koreiza had surrendered themselves to 30. The judgment ^he judgment of Sad, an Aicsite «^^^^- of their allies, Bani Aws. To this Mohammad agreed. Sad decreed that the male captives should be slaughtered. Mohammad, dis- ' The Jews of Khyber , if it does not relate to Tabook. Sir W. Muir calls this hostile declaration against Jews and Christians, and says, — " The exclusion and growingly intolerant position of Islam is sufficiently manifested by the ban issued against the Jews and Christians, as unfit for the sacred rites and holy precincts of the Meccan temiile ; and by the divine commands to war against them until, in confession of the superiority of Islam, they should consent to the payment of a tribute." — Life of Mahomet, Vol. II, p. 289. The command referred to by Sir W. Muir refers to the treatment of those who took up arms against the Mussalmans, rather than to their ordinary condition. No ban was issued against the Jews and Christians, as unfit for the sacred rites and holy precincts of the Meccan temple. On the contrary, the Christians of Najran, when arrived at Medina, were accommodated by the Prophet iu his Mosque, and they used to say their prayers there. 38 Expedition against the Jews. approving the judgment, remarked to Sad : '' Thou hast decided like the decision of a king, " meaning thereby a despotic monarch. The best authentic tradition in Bokhari (Kitdb-ul- Jihad) has the word ' Malik,' monarch ; but in other three places of Bokhari, Kitabul Monakib, Maghazi, and Istizan, the narrator has a doubt whether the word was Allah or Malik. Moslim, in his collection, has also ' Malik,' and in one place the sentence is not given at all. It was only to eulogize the memory of Sad after his death, that some of the narrators of the story gave out that Mohammad had said that Sad had decided like the decision of a Malak, angel ; or some narra- tors interpreted the word Malik, king, as meaning God ; and therefore put the word Allah in their traditions. Mohammad never said Malak, meaning angel, or Malik, allegorically meaning Allah; he simply said Malik, literally meaning a king or monarch. The expedition against the Jews of Khyber was 31. Defensive char- Purely defensive ui its character.. agSnsf thryewfof They had, since the Jews of the ^ ^^' tribe of Nazeer and Koreiza being banished from Medina in consequence of their trea- son against the Moslem commonwealth, had joined them, been guilty of inciting the surrounding tribes to attack upon Medina, and had made alHance with the Bani Ghatafan, who had taken a prominent part Expedition against the Jews. 39 among the confederates who had besieged Medina at the battle of the Ditch, to make a combined attack upon Medina. They, especially Abul Hukeik, the chief of Bani Nazeer, had excited the Bani Fezdra and other Bednoiu tribes to commit incursions on Medina. They had made a combination with the Bani Sad-Ibn Bakr to make inroads on the Moslims. Bani Sd,d, a branch of Hawazin, were among the confederates who had besieged Medina. Lately, Oseir Ibn ZMm, the chief of Nazeer at Khyber, maintained the same relations with Bani Ghatafdn, as their former chief had, to make a combined attack on Medina. The Bani Ghatafdn, with their branches of Bani Fezdra and Bani Murra, in league with those of Khyber, were always plotting mischief in the vicinity of Fadak at Khyber. They (the Grhatafdn) had continued for a long time to alarm Medina with threatened attacks. At the seventh year of the Hegira timely information was received by Mohammad of the combined preparation of Khyber and Ghatafdn. He rapidly set forth in his defence, and marched to Khyber at once. He took up a position at Raji, between Khyber and Ghatafan, to cut off their mutual assistance. So it was not a sudden and unprovoked invasion, as Sir W. Muir calls it. He writes : " Mahomet probably waited for some act of aggres- sion on the part of the Jews of Kheibar (it was the fertile lands and villages of that tribe which he had 40 Christians or Romans. destined for his followers), or on tlie part of their allies, the Bani Ghatafan, to furnish the excuse for an attack. But no such opportunity offering, he resolv- ed, in the autumn of this year, on a sudden and unprovoked invasion of their territory."^ It will appear from what I have stated above, that the in- vasion of Khyber was purely defensive in its character. The Christians or Romans. The last expedition of Mohammad was that of 32. Tabuk, the last Tabi'ik, and it was also purely expedition. defensive. The travellers and traders arriving from Syria brought news of the gathering of a large army on the borders of Syria. A year's pay, they said, had been advanced by the Greek or Roman Emperor, who was then at Hims, in order that the soldiers might be well-furnished for a long campaign ; the tribes of the Syrian desert, the Bani Lakhm, Judzam, Amila, and Ghussan were flocking around the Roman Eagles, and the vanguard was already at Balca. Mohammad at once resolved to meet this danger. When he arrived in the vici- nity of the Syrian border at Tabiik, he found no troops to oppose him. There were no signs of impending danger, and he therefore returned with his army to Medina. This was in the ninth year of the Hegira. » Life of Maliomet, Vol. IV, p. 61. Conclusion. 41 This concludes the description of all the wars of the Prophet. I hope I have shown, 33. The conclusion. on good and reasonable grounds, and from the surest and most authentic sources, that the wars were not of an offensive and ao:o;res- sive character ; but, on the contrary, they were wars of defence and protection. The early Moslems were wronged, because they believed in the faith of Moham- mad ; they were deprived of. their civil and religious rio-hts, were driven forth from their homes and their properties, and after all were attacked first, by the Koreish and their confederates, the Jews and other Arabian tribes. They fought neither for revenge, nor to impose the faith of Mohammad by force of arms, nor for the plunder of the caravans which passed in proximity to their city. The permission to fight was only given to the believers because they were fought against or were attacked first, and had been wronged and driven from their homes without just cause. They therefore took up arms against those who first compelled them to fly from their homes, and then attacked them. This was in full accordance, therefore, with the law of nations and the sacred law of nature. The people of Medina had only pledged themselves to protect Mohammad from his enemies. They could not, and would not, have gone forth or allowed Mohammad and his ansdrs to go forth to plunder the caravan of the Koreish passing by Medina. 42 Intolerance never taught. The Intolerance. Those people are greatly mistaken who say, that 34. Mohammad never " ^^^ ^ne COmmOH duty laid Upon taught intolerance. ^^^ Faithful is to be the a^ents of God's vengeance on those who believe not. These are to be slaughtered until they pay tribute, when they are allowed to go to Hell in their own way with- out further molestation." ^ Mohammad did not wage war against the Koreish and the Jews because they did not believe in his mission, nor because he was to be the instrument of God's vengeance on them ; on the contrary, he said, " He was no more than a warner." " The truth is from your Lord, let him then who will, believe; and let him who will, be an un- believer." ^ " Let there be no compulsion in religion." ^ " Verily, they who believe, and the Jews, and the Sabeites, and the Christians, whoever of them be- lieveth in God and in the last day, and doth what is right, on them shall come no fear, neither shall they be put to grief." ^ Even during active hosti- lities, those who did not believe were allowed to come and hear the preaching, and were then conveyed to their place of safety.^ Nor were the wars of Mohammad to exact tribute from the unbelievers. ' Islam under the Arabs, by Major R. D. Osborne, London, 187G, p. 27. « XVIII, 28. ' II, 257. * V, 73. ^ IX, 6. In ivhat sense Wars were Religious. 43 The tribute was onty imposed upon those who had sought his protection, and even then they were ex- empted from other regular taxes which the Moslems paid to their Commonwealth. On the contrary, as has already been shown, Mohammad merely took up arms in the instances of self-preservation. Had he neglected to defend himself after his settlement at Medina against the continued attacks of the Koreish and their allies, he with his followers would, in all probability, have been exterminated. They fought in defence of their lives as well as their moral and relig-ious liberties. In this sense the contest mio;ht be called a reli2:ious war, as the hostilities were com- 35. In what sense the wars were religious mcnccd On rcligioUS grOUnds. wars. Because the Koreish persecuted the Moslems, and expelled them for the reason that they had forsaken the religion of their forefathers, i.e., idolatry, and embraced the faith of Islam, the worship of One True God ; but it was never a reli- gious war in the sense of attacking the unbelievers aggressively to impose his own religion forcibly on them. How much is Sir W. Muir in the wrong, who says, that fighting was prescribed on religious grounds ? " Hostilities," he says, " indeed, were justified by the ' expulsion ' of the believers from Mecca. But the main and true issue of the warfare was not disguised to be the victory of Islam. They 44 Verses on Intolerance explained. were to fight ' until the religion became the LordJs 1 11 1 alone 36. The alleged ver- The verses of the Koran referred ses of intolerance ex- plained, to above are as follows : 186. " And fight for the cause of God against those who fight against you : but commit not the injustice of attaching them first : verily God loveth not the unjust." 187. " And kill them wherever ye shall find them, and eject them from whatever place they have ejected you ; for {fitnah) persecution or civil discord is worse than slaughter ; but attack them not at the sacred Mosque, until they attack you therein, but if they attack you, then slay them — Such is the recom- pense of the infidel !" 188. " But if they desist, then verily God is Gracious, Merciful." 189. " And do battle against them until there be no more {fitnah) persecution or civil discord and the only worship be that of God : but if they desist, then let there be no hostility, save against wrong-doers.": — Sura, ii. These verses generally, and the last one especially, show that the warfare was prescribed on the ground of self-preservation, and to secure peace, safety and religious liberty, to prevent (fitnah) persecution. ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, p. 79. Verses on Intolerance explained. 45 By preventing or removing the persecution (Jitnah), the religion of the Moslems was to be free and pure from intolerance and compulsion to revert to idolatry, or in other words, to be the only or wholly of God. That is, when you are free and unpersecuted in your religion, and not forced to worship idols and renounce Islam, then your religion will be pure and free. You shall have no fear of being forced to join other gods with God. The same verse is repeated in Chapter VIII. 39. " Say to the unbelievers : If they desist,^ what is now past shall beforgiv^en them, but if they return to it,^ they have already before them the doom of the former." ^ 40. "Fight then against them till Jitnah (civil strife or persecution) be at an end, and the religion be all of it God's, and if they desist, verily God beholdeth what they do." This shows that the fighting prescribed here against the Koreish was only in the case of their not desist- ing, and it was only to prevent and suppress their Jitnah, and when their intolerance and persecution was suppressed, or was no more, then the Moslem religion was to become all of it God's. They were not forced to join any god with the true God. ' From attacking uud persecuting you and preventing you from entering your homes and visiting the sacred mosque. - That is, if again attack you and commit aggressions. '■' Meaning those who were defeated at Badr. 46 Sir W. Muir quoted. Sir W. Muir, in his last chapter on the person 37 Sir w Muir ^^^ character of Mohammad, ^^^^^^- observes in reviewing the Medina period: " Intolerance quickly took the place of free- dom ; force, of persuasion." .... " Slay the unbelievers wheresoever ye find them" was now the watchword of Islam : — " Fight in the ways of God until opposition be crushed, and the Religion be- cometh the Lord's alone !" ^ Here, Sir W. Muir plainly contradicts himself. He has already admit- ted at the 136th page of the fourth Volume of his work that the course pursued by Mohammad at Medina was to leave the conversion of the people to be gradually accomplished without compulsion, and the same measure he intended to adopt at his triumphal entry into Mecca. His words are : " This movement obliged Mahomet to cut short of his stay at Mecca. Although the city had cheerfully accepted his supremacy, all its inhabitants had not yet embraced the new religion, or formally acknow- ledged his prophetic claim. Perhaps, he intended to follow the course he had pursued at Medina, and leave the conversion of the people to be gradually accom[)lished without compulsion." This was at the end of the eighth year after the Hegira. Mohammad died at the beginning of the eleventh year, then the question naturally comes up, when was ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 319. Comment on the Quotation. 47 that alleo-ed chnno-e to intolerance, and liow Sir W. Muir says, this change is traced from the period of Mohammad's arrival at Medina ? In the action taken in the fifth year of the Hegira against the Jewish tribe of Koreiza, who had treasoned against the city, Sir W. Muir admits that up to that period Moham- mad did not profess to force men to join Islam, or to punish them for not embracing it. His words are : " The ostensible grounds upon which Mahomet proceeded were purely political, for as yet he did not })rofess to force men to join Islam, or to punish them for not embracing it."^ In a foot-note he remarks : " He still continued to reiterate in his Revelations the axiom used at Mecca, ' I am only a public preacher,' as will be shown in the next chapter." Further, Sir W. Muir, in his account of the first two years after Mohammad's arrival at Medina, admits in a foot-note (p. 32, Vol. Ill), that "as yet w^e have no distinct development of the intention of Mahomet to impose his religion on others by force : it would have been dangerous in the present state of parties to advance this principle." It will appear from the foregoing statements 38. Comment on the ^hat in cach of the three distinct above quotation. periods of Mohammad's sojourn in Medina, i. e., the first two years, the fifth year, and the eighth year. Sir W. Muir has himself admit- » The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, p. 282. 48 Comment on the Quolation. ted that Mohammad liad no intention to impose his religion by force, and did not profess to force people to join Islam, or punish them for not embracing it, and that the conversion of the people at Medina was gradu- ally accomplished without compulsion, and the same course he followed at his taking of Mecca. Then there is no room left for the uncalled for and self- contradictory remark of Sir W. Muir, that at Medina " Intolerance quickly took place of freedom ; force, of persuasion." Up to the end of the eighth year when Mecca was captured, there was admxittedly no ])ersecution or constraint put in requisition to enforce religion. Mohammad breathed his last early in the eleventh year. During the two years that intervened, the din of war had ceased to sound, deputations conti- nued to reach the Prophet from all quarters of Arabia, and not a single instance of intolerance or compul- sory adoption of faith is found on record.^ ' There is only one instance of intolerance, i. c, making converts at the point of sword, which Sir W. Muir. so zealous in accusing Bloham- mad of religious persecution during the Medina period, has succeeded in finding out during the ten eventful years of Mohammad's sojourn in Medina. I refer to the story of Khalid's mission in the beginning of the tenth year A. H., to Bani Haris, a Christian tribe at Najran, whose people had entered into a covenant of peace with Mohammad, and to whom an ample pledge had been guaranteed to follow their own faith. According to Sir W Muir, Khalid was instructed to call on the people to embrace Islam, and if they declined, he was, after three days, to attack and force them to submit (Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 22i). The ver.25), revealed for the first time, were before the conquest of Mecca, when tlie idolators thereof had broken the truce of Hodeibia. Their violation of the treaty is expressly mentioned in verses 4, 8, 10 and 13, and the same verses also enjoin to respect and fulfil the treaties ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 211 - "Islam and its Founder," by J. W. H. Stobart, B.A., p. 179. London, 1878. Sura Barat. 53 of tliose iclolators who had not broken theu'S, There- fore only those aggressors who had been guilty of a breach of faith, and instigated others to take up arms against the Moslems in the attack of Bani Bakr, on Khozaa, were to be waged war against, besieged, and taken captives after the expiration of four months from the date of the publication of the verses in question. But fortunately Abu Sofian compromised before the commencement of the sacred months, and before the period of the four months had elapsed. The people of Mecca submitted with- out bloodshed, and hence it is obvious that the in- junctions contained in the commencement of the ninth chapter of the Koran were never carried out. They remained as dead letter, and will, I think, so remain perpetually. Almost all European writers, as far as I know, labour under the delusion that at the end of the ninth year Mohammad published the opening verses of the ninth Sura, commonly designat- ed Silra Bank. But the flict is that it was published in the eighth year of the Hegira before the com- mencement of the sacred months, probably in the month of Shaban, while Mohammad marched in Ramzan against Mecca, not with the intention of prosecuting war, for it was to take place after the lapse of Zikad, Zelhaj and Moharram, but of taking Mecca by compromise and preconcerted understand- ing between himself and Abu Sofian. If it be ad- 54 S/'/ra Bar at. mitted that the preliminary verses of Sura IX of the Koran were revealed or published for the first time in the last month of the ninth year of the Hegira, then they — the verses — become aimless, without being- pregnant of any object in view. They contain in- junctions for carrying hostile operations against those who had broken certain treaties, had helped others ao-ainst the Moslems, and themselves had also attacked them. They proclaimed war against certain tribes, whose people did not regard ties of blood and good faith, and had been the first aggressors against the Moslems. Not many such persons were in the whole of Arabia at and after the time alleged for the promulgation of these verses, i.e., at the last month of the ninth and the whole tenth year. By this time, almost all Arabia had tendered voluntary sub- mission to the authority of Mohammad. Deputations from each tribe of the Arabs continued to reach ]\Iedina during the whole of this period, and were pledged protection and friendship by the founder of the Islamic faith. From IMedina the sound . of drums and the bray of clarions had now died away. Hereupon we are able to speak with certainty that these verses could not be, and were not, revealed at the end of the ninth year as it has been asserted by several writers, both Mohammadan and European. And for the above reasons the most suitable occasion for the revelation of these verses is the breach of the Interceptions of Korelsh Caravans. 55 truce of Hodeibia by the Koreish and their allies durhio' the ei2:hth year of the Heoira which caused the reduction of Mecca by compromise. Several Mohammadan commentators are unanimous in their opinion as to this point. Consequently the verses, ordaining the manifestation of arms against the treaty- breakers and aggressors, as well as putting them to the sword wherever they were to be found, i.e., within or without the harem, or the precincts of the Sacred Mosque, were not complied with owing to the com- promise by the Koreish. Tlie alleged Interception of the Koreishite Caravans. It has been asserted by European biographers of Mohammad that several cara- 41. The nine alleged interceptious of the vaus of the Korcish going to and Koreish caravans. from Syria were intercepted and waylaid by the Moslems soon after the Hegira. The alleo^ed incursions are as follow : a (1.) Seven months after Mohammad's arrival at Medina, an expedition headed by Hamza surprised a caravan under the conduct of Abu Jahl. (2.) A month later a party led by Obeida was dispatched in the pursuit of another caravan guided by Abu Sofian. (3.) After the expiration of another month, a third inroad headed by Sad proceeded to lie in am- bush for the Koreish caravan on the way it was expected to pass. 56 Interceptions of Koreish Caravans. (4.) Nearly twelve montlis after the Hegira, a fourth attempt was undertaken to plunder a caravan of the Koreishites by Mohammad himself at Abwa. (5.) In the succeedmg month Mohammad again marched to Bowat with the sole aim of despoiling a caravan composed of precious freight under the immediate escort of Omeya-bin Khalf. (6.) After the lapse of two or three months Mohammad set out to Osheira to make aggression on another rich caravan proceeding to Syria led by Abu Soiian. All these expeditions are said to have been not attended by any success on the part of the Moslems, the vio'ilance of the caravans in all cases eludincr the pursuit made after tliem/ (7.) In Rajab A. H. 2, a small band composed of some six persons was ordered to march to Nakhla to lie in wait there for the caravan of the Koreish. The party had a scuffle at Nakhla, in which a man of the convoy was killed ; while two prisoners and the pilfered goods were taken to Medina. Hereupon Mohammad was much displeased, and told Abdallah- bin Jahsh, " I never commanded thee to fight in the sacred month." (8.) The caravan of the Koreish. which on its passage had safely escaped the chase of the Moslems, ' I have closely followed Sir W. Muir in these expeditions ; vide The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, pp. Ci— 69. Interceptions were impossible. 57 us already described in No. G, was on its way back to Mecca. ]\Ioliammad anticipated their return, and prepared an attack, which terminated in the famous battle of Badr. (9.) All these predatory inroads to intercept the caravans of JMecca are said to have happened during the first and the second year of the Hegira, or before the battle of Badr. It remains for me now to men- tion the only remaining instance of Moslem's foray upon the Koreishite caravan, which took place in the sixth year A. H. at Al-ls, The attack was com- pletely successful. I have already explained (from paras. 21 — 24) 42. The interceptions that tlicsc early expeditions, num- were impossible under the circumstances in bcrcd 1 to 8, are not corroborat- wliich Mohammad was placed. ed by authentic and trustworthy traditions, and I have also given the probable nature of those marked 4, 5 and 6. It was impossible for Mohammad and his adherents, situated as they were, to make any hostile demon- strations or undertake a pillaging enterprise. The inhabitants of Medina, where the Prophet with his followers had sought a safe asylum, and at whose invitation he had entered their city, had solemnly bound themselves on sacred oaths to defend Moham- mad, so lomr as he was not himself the ao-o-ressor, from his enemies as they would their wives and 58 Interceptions mere impossible. their cliildren.^ Moliammad, on Lis own part, had entered into a holy compact with them not to plunder or commit depredations.^ Upon these considerations it was impossible that the people of Medina would have permitted or over- looked the irruptions so often committed by Moham- mad upon the caravans of the Koreish : much less would they have joined with their Prophet, had he or any of his colleagues ventured to do so. But granting that the Medinites allowed Mohammad to manifest enmity towards the Koreish by a display of arms, or that no restraint was put by them upon him when he encroached upon the territories of the neighbouring tribes, and that the caravans were molested without any grounds of justice, was it pos- sible, I ask, for the people of Medina to avoid the troubles they would be necessarily involved in by the refuge they had given to their Prophet ? They had long suffered from internal feuds, and the san- giunary conflict of Boas, a few years ago, which had ' " The people of Medina were pledged only to defend the Prophet from attack, not to join him in any aggressive steps against the Coreish." Miiir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, p. Gi. - Bokharee relates from Obada-bin Samat with the usual chain of narrators, that " I am one of the Xtiliccbs who pledged to the Prophet. We pledged that we will not join any other god with the God, and will not commit theft, and will not commit fornication, and will not commit murder, and will not plunder." Saheeh of Bokharee, Book of Campaigns, chapter on Deputations from Ansars. Interceptions justified. 59 paralyzed tlieir coimtr}^, and humiliated its citizens, was but too fresli in tlieir memory 3"et. Let us suppose that these alleg'ed interceptions of 43. The inteicep- ^^^^ Mcccan caravans by the ju""ified "'''by-way' ""of Moslcuis did actually take place, ^^^-^^""^ "• as related by the biographers of JMohammad, were they not all justified by the Inter- national Code of the Arabs, or the ancient usao-e and military law of nations. It has been proved beyond all dispute that the Meccans were the first aggressors in persecuting the Moslems, and expelling them from their dear homes at Mecca with the unbearable annoy- ance, they caused the converts of the new faith in the peaceful prosecution of their religion ; taking all these causes of offence into consideration, as well as the International law and the law of Nature, the Moslems might be said to have law and justice both on their sides in waging war with their harassers for the restoration of their property and homes, and even in retaliating and making reprisals until they attained the object long sought by them. When the Meccans, on their own part, had first trumpeted hostility against the Moslems, the right of self- defence, as well as military necessity, compelled the latter to destroy their property, and obstruct the ways and channels of communication by which their traffic was prospering; for, " from the moment one State is at war with another, it has, on general prin- 60 Instances of alleged Assassmations. ciples, a right to seize on all the enemy's property of whatsoever kind and wheresoever found, and to appropriate the property thus taken to its own use, or to that of the captors." ^ The alleged Assassinations. There were certain executions of culprits who had 44. Instances of perpetrated the crime of high alleged assassinations . i tit i r^ cited. treason against the Moslem Com- monwealth. These executions, and certain other cases of murders not grounded on any credible evidences, are narrated by European biographers of Mohammad as assassinations committed through the countenance and connivance which he lent them. They were about five or six in number, and they are styled assassinations from there being no trials of the prisoners by a judge and a jury, nor l^y any systematic court-martial. The punishment of death was inflicted upon the persons condemned, either from private enmity or for the unpardonable offence of hio-h treason ao-ainst the State, but it cannot be said, as I will hereafter show, that these so-called cases of assassinations had received the hio'h sanction o of Mohammad, or they were brought about at his direct instisration and assent for tlieir commission. o ' Wheaton's Elements of International Law, p. 419, Boston, 1855 ; Lieber's Miscellaneous Writings ; Political Science. Vol. II, p. 250, Phi- ladelphia, 1881. Mr. Poole quoted. 61 The alles:ed instances are as follows : — 1. Asma-bint Marwun. 2. Abu Afak. 3. Kab-ibn Asliraf. 4. Sofian-ibn Khalicl. 5. Abu Rafi. 6. Oseir-ibu Zarim. 7. The attempted assassination of Abii Sofian. Before reviewing- the truth and falsity of evi- dence in each of these cases, and 45. Mr. Poole quoted. showing how for the Prophet was privy to them, I will avail myself of a quotation from Mr. Stanley Lane Poole, who has remarked with his usual deep discernment and accurate judgment, in his Introduction to Mr. E. W. Lane's Selections from the Koran : " The execution of the half-dozen marked Jews is generally called assassination, because a Muslim was sent secretly to kill each of the criminals. The reason is almost too obvious to need explanation. There were no police or law-courts, or even courts- martial, at Medina ; some one of the followers of Mohammad must therefore be the executer of the sentence of death, and it was better it should be done quietly, as the executing of a man openly before his clan would have caused a brawl and more bloodshed and retaliation, till the whole city had become mixed up in the quarrel. If secret assassination is the 62 Assassination of Asma-hint Marwdn. word for such deeds, secret assassination was a neces- sary part of the internal government of Medina. The men must be killed, and best in that way. In saying this I assume that Mohammad was cognisant of the deed, and that it was not merely a case of private vengeance ; but in several instances the evi- dence that traces these executions to Mohammad's order is either entirely wanting or is too doubtful to claim our credence."^ 1 . — Asma-hint Marwan. " The first victim was a woman," writes Major 46. Asma-bint Mar- Osborn, " Asma, daughter of ^^^' Marwan ; she had composed some satirical verses on the Prophet and his followers ; and Muhammad, moved to anger, said publicly : ' Who will rid me of this woman ? ' Omeir, a blind man, but an ardent Moslem, heard the speech, and at dead of night crept into the apartment where Asma lay asleep surrounded by her little ones ; he felt about in the darkness till his hand rested on the sleeping woman, and then, the next instance his sword was plunged into her breast."^ The story of Asma's murder has been variously related by the Arabian writers, and the testimonies on which it rests are contradictory and conflicting in ' Selections from the Kur-aa by Edward William Lane, with an Intro- duction by Stanley Lane Poole. Intro., p. xliv : Triibner & Co., London, 1879. * Islam under the Arabs, by R D. Osborn, p. 60, London, 1876. Assassination of Asma-hint Ma7'wdn. 63 tliemselvcs. AVj'ikidi, Il)n Sj'uI, and Ibn Hislidm. relate a very strange thing about it, that she was killed by Omeir the blind at the dead of night. A blind person commits murder in a stranger's house durmg nocturnal quietness, and is not arrested by any one ! Doctor Weil writes, that Omeir was a former husband of Asma, and the origin of the nuirder may be traced to a long-brooding and private malice. Ibn Asakar in his history (vide Seerat Shdmee) relates that Asma was a fruit-seller; some person of her tribe asked her if she had better fruits. She said 'yes,' and entered her house followed by that man. She stooped down to take something up, the person turned right and left, and seeing that nobody was near, gave a violent blow on her head, and thus dispatched her. The historians even relate that Omeir, being 47. The story de- offeudcd at tlic vcrscs composcd by Asma, had volunteered himself of his own free-will to kill her.^ She mio-ht have been a sacrifice to envy or hatred by the sword of her assassin, but Mohammad really had no hand in her death. She had made herself an outlaw by deluding the people of Medina to a breach of treaty with the Moslems, whereby the rights and jurisdic- tions of Jews and Moslems were definitively settled. ' Wakidi's Carapaigus of Mohammad, ijp. 172 & 173 : Calcutta Baptist Mission Press ; edited by A. Von Kremer. 64 Assassination of Aha AfaJc. Ibn Ishak quietly leaves unnarratecl any transac- tion with reo-ard to Asma. Wakidi and Ibn Sad do not affirm that Mohammad, being annoyed at her lampoons, said dejectedly, " Who would rid me of that woman ?" On the contrary, Wakidi writes, that Omeir had voluntarily swore to take her life. It is only Ibn Hisham who relates without citing his authority, that Mohammad, hearing Asma's verses, declared : "Is there nobody for me (i. e., to rid me) from Bint Mar wan ? " This version of the story has no corroborative proofs from the earliest biographers, and we are not inclined to put any faith in it.^ 2.—Ahii AfaL It has been related that Abii Afak of Bani Amr had enraged the Moslems by foment- 48. Abu Afak. , . , ,. . mg enmity and sedition against their Government, when one Haris w^as executed for his murdering treacherously his fellow-comrade in the battle of Ohad during the time thc}^ were fight- ino" too-ether side by side. A convert from amono-st the Bani Amr vowed to slay Abii Afak, and foiling unawares upon him killed him with a cruel blow of his sword. From Ibn Ishak we learn that Mohammad had said with reference to Abii. Aflik, ' Sir W. Muir writes that '• Hisliami says, that Blahomet. being vexed by Asma's verses, said 7;«?'^/f7//, 'Who will rid me of this woman ?' " But there is no such word iu Ibu Hisham which may be rendered 'publicly.' Assassination of Ahu Afah. 65 " Who would rid me of this pestilent fellow ? "^ The biographers do not give their authorities whence they derived their information of the words attributed to Mohammad which he is said to have uttered with relation to Abii Afak before his followers ; while at the same time it is no fair justice to form a hasty opinion of the fact without a critical examination and well-balancing of evidences of men like Ibn Ishak and others who have forgotten to tell us the original sources of their own assertion. Besides, the words quoted above are not equivalent to a peremp- tory order, and even granting this last condition, we are not justified in construing them to mean assassi- nation. Sir W. Muir writes that, "the Secretary of Wackidi says distinctly — ' Now this was by com- mand of the Prophet; " (Vol. Ill, p. 133, /. n.) But it is a very easy thing for the secretary or other biographers to give an ample play to their fancies, or to fabricate commands, which the Prophet had never given out, on a very slender basis, or on no reasonable basis at all. The tendency of the biogra- phers is always to exonerate the companions of the Prophet at the expense of truth, and to justify their deeds by casting the whole blame upon him. ' Ibn Hisham, p. 994. Wakidi does not give this sentence. On the contrary, he says, Salim had taken a vow to kill Abu Afak or die himself, X 66 Assassination of Kdh. 3. — Kdh^ son of Ashraf K^b-ibn Ashraf was an influential Jew connected ,„ T^,, f with the tribe of Bani Nazeer. 49. Kab, son oi '^®^^*^- Being very much mortified by the defeat of the Meccans at the battle of Badr, he soon after proceeded to Mecca, where he stirred up the Koreish to avenge themselves on the Moslems of Medina. On his return to the latter place he mani- fested avowed hostility towards the Moslem Common- wealth. He was a traitor and a turncoat, for he not only violated his allegiance to the Moslems, but preached rebellion among their enemies. Under such circumstances, he deserved execution by the military and international law, and was decapitated at Medina accordingly. The mode of execution was a sudden violence or deception, but Mohammad never fulmi- nated any harsh commands against him either for his assassination or for his murder. He deserved capital punishment for his treachery, which was duly measured out to him in the absence of any legal tribunals for trials of criminals by jury, for in that case any man was authorized to execute the sentence of the law. Even if it be taken for granted that the Prophet had prayed " Lord, deliver me from the son of Ashraf, in whatsoever manner seemeth good unto thee, because of his open sedition and verses ;" or said, "Who can ease me of the son of Assassination of Kdh. 67 Ashraf ? " ^ This does not amount to a fiat for murder or execution, much less for assassination. The biographers and narrators of the campaigns 50. Mohammad could of Mohammad generally relate not have any share in n r» i i his murder. uutrustworthy and fabulous de- tails of such events, and are by no means to be relied upon. Mohammad Ibn Ishak, the earliest biogra- pher, whose work exists, does not relate that Moham- mad the Prophet ever prayed for, or said to his followers, to be got rid of Kab ; whereas the latest biographers and traditionalists give us to understand that the Prophet sanctioned the murder: -of_jKab. by his own express orders. "I am ^ji^'^^^ua^seHing," says Sir W. Muir, " that ever going narrative, either of ii or of deception by the assassms, ts v^yond sHi^^^n. The actors in such scenes werX^faJ'7^\^^^*J*ra!gnify and embellish their own services*Ut tKe expense of truth. There may also have been the desire to justify an act of perfidy, at which even the loose morality of the day was startled, by casting the burden of it on the infallible Prophet. But, after allowing all due weight to both of these considerations, enough re- mains to prove, in this case, the worst features of assassination, and the fact that they were directly countenanced, or rather prompted, by Mahomet him- ' Ibn Sad Katib Wakidi, pp. 186, 187. 68 Assassination of Kdh. self."^ There is no substantial proof in this case which tends to establish the instigation Mohammad offered for the murder of Kab. The best traditions for the story of Kab's assassination rest with Jabir- bin Abdullah,^ and Ibn Abbas through Ikrama.^ None of them can be an authority, for they were neither eye-witnesses, nor they heard the Prophet countenancing or prompting the assassination, nor they allude to their own authorities. J4bir-bin Abdul- lah was a mere boy at that time. He was not allow- ed to appear even at the battle of Ohad, which took place after the alleged execution of Kab, on account of his tender age.* Ibn Abbas was even younger than Jabir, and besides, was putting up at Mecca at the period in question.' Ikrama was a slave of Ibn Abbas, and was notoriously given to the forging of fictitious traditions.^ ' The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, Vol. Ill, pp. 147-148. ^ In the collections of Bokhari in the Book of Campaigns ; and in the Book of Jihad by Moslim. ' Mohammad-bin Sad Katib Wakidi and Mohammad-bin Ishak. The latter in Ibn Hisham, p. 551. * Vide Osaia-fi Tamiz Issahdba; or, Biographical Dictionary of Persons who knew Mohammad, by Ibn Hajr-al-Askalani. Part I, No. 1021, p. 431. * Ibn Abbas was only five years old at that time, and was at Mecca. His evidence is consequently inadmissible. * Yahya-bin Saeed al Ansaree, Ali-bin Abdullah-bin Abbas, Ibnal Mosayyab, Ata, Ibrahim-bin Maisura, Mohammad-bin Sireen, Kasim, and Abdullah-bin Omar say that Ikrama was a liar. Vide Mizdnul Eteclal of Zahabi, Koukabi Dnrrdri Sharah, Saheeh Bokhari, by Shamsuddin Kirmani ; and Mdrafat Anwad-ilin Hadees, by Abu Omar-ad-Damishki. Assasdnation of Sofian-hin Khalid. 69 4. — SoJia7i-hin Khalid. After the reverse at Medina, in the battle of Ohad, hirge gatherings were organized 51. Sofian-bin Khalid. . . f» a i • ni various quarters of Arabia against the Moslems. The Bani Lahyan, and other neighbouring tribes, rallied round the standard of their chief Sofian, the son of Khalid, at Orna with the avowed purpose of taking this occasion by the forelock when the tables were turned at Ohad. " Mahomet, knowing that their movements depended solely upon Sofian, despatched Abdallah ibn Oneis with instructions to assassinate him."^ The accre- dited envoy volunteered himself for the service, which he accomplished by destroying Sofian by sur- prise. Neither Ibn Ishak, nor Ibn Hisham, nor Ibn Sad have anything to say about ' instructions ' for assassination. Abdullah-bin Oneis may have been sent as a spy to reconnoitre the movements of Sofian and his army, or to bring advices concerning him, but it cannot be affirmed that he was tutored by Mohammad to assassinate Sofian, even on the supposition that his mission was to kill the latter. Among the Arabs the international law of estates 52. Justifications of '^"^ ^hcir hostilc relations, and the Sofian's alleged murder. ^'^'^. i i r n military law and usage of former times, not forgetting to mention the European inter- national law as late as the last century, maintained ' The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, Vol. Ill, p. 200. 70 Assassination of Sojian-bin Khalid. the broad principle that " in war everything done against an enemy is lawful ; that he ma}?- be destroy- ed, though unarmed and defenceless ; that fraud or even poison may be employed against him ; that a most unlimited right is acquired to his person and property."^ Every sort of fraud except perfidy was allowed to be practised towards an enemy in war. " I allow of any kind of deceit," writes Byn- kershoek, a writer on international law, the successor of PufFendorf and the predecessor of Wolff and Vattel, "perfidy alone excepted, not because any- thing is unlawful against an enemy, but because when our faith had been pledged to him, so far as the promise extends, he ceases to be an enemy." ^ In the case of Sofian there was no perfidy, trea- chery, or violation of flxith, nor was there any permis- sion granted by Mohammad for his assassination. He sent, if it be proved he did (but it is never proved), Abdullah against Sofian who had made every pre- paration of arms, and who had mustered together several Bedouin tribes to attack Mohammad, to fight and kill him ; it was a straightforward course allowed by the usages of the military law. Mohammad had distinctly and expressly interdicted perfidy, deceit, ' Elements of International Law, by Henry Wheaton, LL.D. Sixth edition, by William Beach Lawrence, Boston, 1855 ; Part IV, Chapter I, p. 374, quoting- Bynkershoek ; in p. il6, quoting Bynkershoek and Wolff. 2 Ibid, Chapter II, p. 470. Assassination of Ahu Rafe. 71 and assassination. " Do not," said lie, charging his commanders and soldiers on the point of marching for a military expedition, " commit perfidy, and do not mutilate, and do not kill a child." ^ He also laid down the golden maxim, " Belief is the restraint to assassination. No believer should commit assassi- nation.^^ ^ 5. — Ahu Bafe. Abii Rafe, called also SalLam Ibn Abul Hokeik, was the chief of Bani Nazeer, 53. Abu Rafe. n . i i nr who had warred with the Moslems at Medina, and had been banished to Khyber. He had taken a prominent part in the assembling of most of the Bedouin tribes at the war of the confe- derates when they besieged Medina. Subsequently, he had excited Bani Fezara and other Bedouin tribes to carry on their depredations among the Moslems. A band of the latter was dispatched to inflict con- dign punishment upon him, and he met with his death at their hands. But the account of his execu- tion are full of contradictions and discrepancies. But none of these diverse stories has, that Moham- mad commanded the assassination of Abii Rafe, while Ibn Ishak gives no account of him at all. Ibn Hisham has — " That Abii Rafe had brought the confe- derate army against Mohammad, and some of Khaz- > The collections of Moslem Ajind Boreida, vide Mishkat, p. 33.3, » The collections of Abu Daiid in the Book of Jihad, Vol. II, p. 26. 72 Assassination of Oseir-hin Zdrim. ■ raj had asked permission to kill him, and Mohammad permitted them."^ Sir W. Mnir narrates that Mohammad " gave them command to make away with Abiil Hiickeick,"^ whilst the Secretary of Wakidi, whom he follows, simply says, " He gave command to kill him." '''■ Making away with a person^^ creates an idea of secret mnrder tantamount to ' assassina- tion,' hut such is not the wording of the original. Sending a party to hill, or fight with an enemy are synonymous, and permissible by the international or military law, the Arab mode of fighting mostly consisting of single combats. 6. — Oseir-hin Zdrim.^ Oseir-ibn Zarim, the chief of Bani Nazeer, had maintained a hostile animosity asfainst the Moslems of Medina, to war with whom he had enrolled himself in the adverse tribe of Ghatafan. Preparations were briskly made by this tribe to make a havoc of Medina, and Oseir had been made the hero of the enterprise. Hereupon Mohammad delegated the mission of bring- ino" the insurgent to Medina to Abdullah-bin Rawdha and some others, with a promise of making him * The Life of Mohammad based on Mobammad-ibu Ishak, by Abdel Malik-ibu Hisham, p. 71 i 2 The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, VoL IV, p. 14. 3 Or Yoseir-bin Razim. Asfiassination of Oseir-hin Zarim. 73 Governor of Khyber/ and treating him with marked distinction, if he yielded to the wishes of the Prophet. Oseir comphed, and set out with his followers to Medina. On a camel were mounted Abdullah-bil, Oneis, and Oseir. Hardly they had travelled six miles when Oseir repented of his determination to go to Medina, and stretched forth his hand towards the sword of Abdullah, who leaped from the camel and cut off his leg, Oseir in the meantime wound- ing Abdullah's head with his camel stafF.^ Now, whether Oseir was assassinated or murdered perfidiously; whether he meditated treachery, and Abdullah struck him in his self-defence, — whatever might bethe case, certainly there is nothing in the narrative of Oseir's death to show that Mohammad had sent him "on a secret errand with a view of getting rid of the Jewish chief" as Sir "W. Muir explains.^ The story is not imparted by earliest writers like Ibn Ishak, and the traditions of a later date are incoherent, one-sided, and imperfect. Notwithstanding these inaccuracies, no account tells us that mandates were issued for fio-htino; with or killino; Oseir, much less for his assassination. ' As Khyber was not yet conquered, neither Mohammad could make such a promise, nor the Jews could have boen induced to believe it ; there- fore the story is a false one. 2 The Life of Mohammad, by Abdel Malik-bin Hisham, pp. 980-981.. » Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, pp. lG-17. ^>v^ 74 Assassination of. Abu Sofian. 7. — Tlie alleged intended Assassination of Abu Sofian. A Bedouin Arab was sent by Abii Sofian to 55. The intended Medina to assassinate Mohammad. assassination of Abu i i • i • Sofian. The emissary was tracked ni his evil attempt, and confessed the purpose with which he had come. This is rehated by Ibn Sad Katib Wakidi as the cause of Mohammad's sending Amr Ibn Omeya to assassinate Abii Sofian.^ According to Hishamee, Amr was commissioned by the Prophet to fight with Abu Sofian, and to kill him in imme- diate reveno-e for the murder of Khobeib and his companions captured at Raji.^ Now, Ibn Ishak and Wakidi preserve absolute silence on this head. Ibn Hisham relates nothino; about assassination. It is only Ibn Sad Katib Wakidi who hands down to posterity the orders of Mohammad for the assassina- tion of Abii Sofian. This tradition is neither streno'th- ened by any sterling witness, nor is it a genuine one ; and for this very reason it was not accepted by Ibn Ishak or even by Wakidi, so prone to the recital of apocryphal traditions. Referring to the above attempted assassination 56. Irving and Muir Mr. Washington Irvino; says : quoted : concluding- re- n j iiiarks. " During this period of his career ' Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV. p. 20. 2 The Life of Mohammad, by Abdel Malik-bin Hisham, pp. 992-993. The fighting was, according to Arab custom, in single combats. Irving and Miiir quoted. 75 Mahomet in more than one instance narrowly escaped faUing by the hand of an assassin. He himself is charged with the use of insidious means to rid himself of an enemy, for it is said that he sent Amru Ion Omeya on a secret errand to Mecca, to assassinate Abu Sofian, but the plot was discovered, and the assassin only escaped by rapid flight. The charge, however, is not well substantiated, and is contrary to his general character and conduct."^ Sir W. Muir writes: " There is just a shadow of possibility that the tradition may have been fabri- cated by the anti-Omeyad party to throw odium on the memory of Abu Sofian, as having been deemed by Mahomet worthy of death. But this is not to be put against the evidence of unanimous and apparently independent traditions."^ But, in fact, there are no unanimous and apparently independent traditions of the command of Mohammad to assas- sinate Abii Sofian ; there is only one and but one, by Ibn Sad, which is wholly unreliable, and that too from the lips of the would-be assassin himself who before the introduction of Islam was a professional cutthroat, whose narration, therefore, deserves not our belief Even if it be taken for granted that Mohammad did send some one to assassinate Abii Sofian, who had ' Mahomet and his Successors, by Washington Irving, p. 118, London, 1869. 2 Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 20, foot-note. 76 Treatment of the Prisoners of War. already sent some one to assassinate Mohammad as related by Ibn Sad, it was justified in self-defence. It was a measure for retaliation, not one of mere revenge, but only a means of protective retribution, whicli is lawful under the military law.^ The alleged Cruelties in executing the Prisoners of War and others. Some of the war prisoners had received the condign 57. Treatmentofthe punishmcnt of cxecution for their prisoners of war. ^^- ^^^^ • ^^ conformity with the laws of war. It has been alleged by some European biographers of Mohammad that their (the war prisoners') execution was cruel, and that they were accused of no crime except their scepticism and political antagonism." The persons executed were as follows : — 1 . Nadhr-bin-Harith. 2. Okba. 3. Abul Ozza. 4. Moavia-bin-Mughira. Before reviewing the case of each prisoner, I must 58. The law of na- notc, by Way of introductory re- tions regarding the pri- •' sonars of war. marks, that, under the international or military law, a prisoner of war is a public enemy armed or attached to the hostile army for active aid » Compare " Contributions to Political Science," by Francis Lieber LL.D., Vol. II, p. 2.50. ' * Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 307. Execution of Nadhr-Thn-TIarWi. 77 and wlio has fallen into the hands of the captor, either fighting or wounded, on the fields or in the hospitals, by individual surrender or capitulation. All soldiers, of whatever species of arms ; all men who belong to the rising en masse of the hostile country ; all those who are attached to the army for its efiiciency and promote directly the object of the war, except religious persons, ofi&cers of medical staff, hospital nurses and servants, all disabled men or officers on the field, or elsewhere, if captured, all enemies who have thrown away their arms and asked for quarters, are prisoners of war, and as such exposed to the inconveniences as well as entitled to the privileges of a prisoner of war. He is subject to no punishment for being a public enemy, nor is any revenge wreaked upon him by the international infliction of any suffering or disgrace, by cruel imprisonment, want of food, by mutilation, death, or any other barbarity. But a prisoner of war remains answerable for his crimes committed against the captor's army or people before he was captured, and for which he has not been punished by his own authorities. All prisoners of war are liable to the infliction of retaliatory measures. 1 . — Nadhr-bin-Harith. Nadhr (Nazr), one of the prisoners of war, was 50. The execution of Gxccuted after the battle of Badr Nadhr Ibo Harith. r ^ • ' c i ^ tor his crime oi severely torment- 78 Execution of Nadhr-lbn-Haritii. ing the Moslems at Mecca. Musab had distinctly reminded him of his torturing the companions of Mohammad/ so there was nothing of a cruel and vindictive spirit of the Prophet displayed towards his enemies in the execution of Nazr as it is made out by Sir W. Muir.^ On the other hand, his execution is denied by some critics, like Ibn Manda and Abii Naeem, who say, that Nazr-bin-Haris was present at the battle of Honain, A. H. 8, six years after that of Badr, and was presented with one hundred camels by Mohammad. Sir W. Muir himself puts down very quietly Nadhir Ibn al Harith's name in a foot-note (Vol. IV, page 151 ) as a recipient of one hundred camels at Honain. The same Nadhr-bin-Harith is shown among the earliest Moslem refugees who had fled to Abyssinia. These discrepancies leave no doubt that the story of Nadhr's execution is not a fact. It is also related by the narrators, who assert Nazr's execution at Badr, that his daughter or sister came to Mohammad and addressed him several verses, the hearing of which produced such a tender emotion in him, that his eyes shed tears and said, he would not have issued orders for his execution had he heard * Wackidi Campaigns of Mohammad, p. 101, Calcutta, 1855. ^ " It was at Otheil that the cruel and vindictive spirit of Mahomet towards his enemies first began to display itself."' — Muir's Life of Moha- met, Vol. Ill, p. 115. After this, the author narrates the execution of Nazr. Ibn Is-hak. Vide Ibn Hisham, p. 458 ; Wackidi, p. 108 ; Abu Daood, Vol. II, p. 10. This story is not given by Ibn Hisham and Ibu Sad. Execution of Okha. 79 these verses before. The followmg are two of the verses which Mohammad heard : " Md kun Zarraka lao mananta va ruhha md- munnaljuta va Jio-al mnghiznl mohnikoo.'"' Tliou wouldst no barm Lave seen to set him free, Ano-er how high for jiardon has no plea. But Zobier-bhi-Bakar says, he heard some learned men who objected to these verses on the ground that they were all concocted ; and I think that the whole story of Nazr's execution is a spurious one. 2 . — Ohha-hin-Mueit. Another prisoner, named Okba, was executed after 60. The execution of ^^^ battle of Badr for a crime ^^'"^- similar to that of Nazr. It is related that while he was going to be executed, he asked who would take care of his little girl. Moham- mad replied, "Hell-fire!" This is altogether an a[)0cryphal story, and owes its origin to the relation of Okba to the tribe of Banunnar, or the " children of fire." AYackidi does not give his authorities for the story, and Ibn Is-hak gives only one immediately before him, which is cut short of another intervening linlv of authorities up to the scene of occurrence. Abu Daood narrates it from Masrook, who gave it on the authority of Abdullah-bin-Mas-ood, who does not say he was present at the scene or he heard it directly or indirectly from Mohammad. Besides the circum- stances under which Masrook gave out this story are very suspicious, and show that calumny was at work. 80 Liberty to Ozzn. Masrook was proposed by Zoliak to be entrusted with the administration of a certain district. Om- mara, the son of Okba, objected to this, as Masrook was one of the murderers of Osman, the third Khahf. Masrook in reply said to Ommara, on the authority of Ibn Masood, that " when thy father was being executed, he had asked the Prophet, who will take care of his little girl." The Prophet replied, " Hell- fire." Therefore, I am satisfied for thee with what the Prophet had chosen for thy father.^ There is a discrepancy in the mode of Okba's execu- tion as well as about the person who executed him. Ibn Is-hak says, that it was Asim who killed him, and Ibn Hisham, that it was Ali. Ibrahim is of opinion, that Okba was executed at Taimee,^ and Mohammad- bin-Khobeib Hashimi,^ that he was crucified, from which others differ and say that he was beheaded. I have no belief in Okba's execution at all. Abul Ozza, one of the prisoners of Badr, and who 61. Free liberty was onc of the pci'secutors of the granted to Ozza, a pri- soner of war. Moslems at Mecca, had besought Mohammad to release him by way of compassion for his five dau2;liters. Mohammad o'ranted him his life and his liberty.* This directly points to the universal generosity of the Prophet, and from this it will ' Abu Daood as before. - Zorkance. Yol. II. p. .511. s Sirafc Halabi. Vol. II, p. 371. ^ Wackidi. 10.5. In?an-ul Oyoon or Sirat Halabi, Vol. II, p. 461. Execution of Ahul Ozza. 81 appear that the story of Okba's execution runs contrary to his general character and conduct. On these grounds the execution of Okba might be rejected as a fiction. 3. — Ahul Ozza. Abul Ozza, one of the prisoners of Badr, was allowed 62. Abul Ozza proved his freedom without any ransom, a traitor and was exe- cuted, on the condition that he would never again bear up arms in any war against the Prophet ; but he proved a traitor. He exhorted the Arabs to make war on Mohammad, and joined himself the invading army of Mecca. He was doomed to misfortune, he was caught at Hamra, and duly executed.^ This was in full accordance with the laws and usages of war {^vide ante, para. 58). 4. — Moavia Ibn Mughira. Moavia Ibn Mughira, also a prisoner of war, was 68. The execution of g^utcd three days' truce, on the Moavia Ibn Mughira. condition that if he wcrc found in Medina after the appointed time, he was to be exe- cuted. The period had passed, and he was still lurk- ing at Medina. At length he was found out and killed by Zeid and Ammar on their return from Ilamra-al- Assad, after five or six days. It is appar- ent that Moavia violated his truce, and his lurkingc ' Wackidi, p. 105 ; Hishami, p. 591 ; Insan-ul-Oyoon or Sirat Halabi, Vol. II, p. 464. L 82 Execution of Mugliira justified. in Medina might be either as a spy ^ or scout secretly seekins^ information. Sir W. Muir, who calls him Othman Ibn Mughira, 64. Justification of i^'^ihcs out a favourable case in his Mughira's execution. ^^^^^^^ Hewritcs: He "incautious- ly lingered at Medina till the last day of his term of grace, when he set out for Mecca. "^ But Ibn Hisham distinctly writes that he " stayed at Medina after the three days had passed and was found lurking there." Even according to Wackidi he was caught on the fourth day. But this is far from truth, for, according to his own account, Mohammad was absent after the battle of Ohad for five days at Hamra-al-Assad ; then how he (Ibn Mughira) could have endeavoured to avoid the returning Moslem force from Hamra-al-Assad, and lose his way, as Sir W. Muir gives it out, only on the fourth day ? One of the enemies, who had invaded Medina and attacked Mohammad, was, after being captured, allow- ed three days' truce on explicit conditions that he was to be killed there if found after three days, and was also provided with a camel and provisions for the way, was discovered lurking thereabout on the fifth or sixth day, in consequence of which he lost his life. This is called by Sir W. Muir as being " perished by a > Ibn Hisham, p. 591 ; Wackidi, pp. 324 and 325. « The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, Vol. Ill, p. 185. Intended Execution of tlie Prisoners of Badr. 83 too great contideiice in the generosity of his enemy,"^ — i.e., Mohammad. The intended Execution of the Prisoners of Badr. Sir W. Muir writes : " It would even seem to have 60. The wronf? ver- ^^^^ Contemplated at the close of siou of Sir w. Muir. ^^^ ^^^^^^ ^^ j.-^^ ^^^ ^^^ prisoners. Mahomet is represented by tradition as himself direct- ing tliis com'se." In a foot-note he says, " Thus Mahomet said : ' Tell not Said of his brother's death' " ( Mabad, a prisoner, see above, page 110 note); "but kill ye every man his prisoner." — (Wackidi, 100.) Again : " Take not any man his brother prisoner, but rather kill him " (page 101). " I would not, however, lay too much stress on these traditions. I am inclined rather to view them as called into existence by the passages quoted below from the Coran." ^ The con- templated execution of the prisoners is not borne out by the traditions which Sir W. Muir himself looks upon as fabricated ones. The true translation of the passages in AVackidi referred to above is as follows : — First jyassage. — " Tell not Said of his brother's killing {i.e., being killed), so he will kill every pri- soner in your hands." — (Wackidi, page 100.) This obviously means, that do not let Saeed know that his brother Wahid, who was made prisoner and killed by Omar or Abu Barda, was killed. If you do so, he will, ' Muirs Life of Maliomet, Vol. Ill, p. 185. - Ibid, ^.117. 84 Mohammad relieved Prisoners. being enraged, kill every prisoner now in your hands. It is very strange that Sir W. Miiir translates the sentence to mean " kill ye every man his prisoner ! " Second passage. — " No body must take his brother's prisoner, so that he may be killed," meaning none of you should seize other person's prisoner. If you do so, perhaps, the other person may kill the prisoner in the contest. Sir W. Muir has quite misunderstood the sentence. There are some fictitious traditions on the subject &Q. Mohammad ne- that Mohammad was reprimanded ver blamed in the Koraa for relieving- prisoners, in the Korau (Sura, viii, 68, 69) for releasing the prisoners of Badr, meaning that he ought to have executed them. The verse is trans- lated thus : — "It is not for a Prophet to take prisoners until {hatta) he hath slaughtered in the land. Ye wish to have the goods of this world, but God wishes for the next, for God is Mighty, Wise ! Were it not for a book from God that had gone before, there would have touched you, for which ye took, a mighty punishment." The verse 68, if it is rightly translated, will mean that prisoners should not be executed. The word ^hatta^ means ''until,^ and is also used as a causative word. I prefer the latter, and translate — " It is not for any Prophet that prisoners may be brought to him in order that he may make slaughter Kind Treatment of Prisoners of War. 85 ill tliG land," wliicli means, tliat it is not proper for a Prophet to take prisoners of war in order to slaughter them. This meanino; is in consonance with the other passage in the Koran (xlvii, 4), which restricts the treatment of the prisoners of war to either free dismissal or ransom. In the first place, the verse rather reprimanded those who wished to kill the prisoners; and in the second, those who desired to exact ransom for their liberty. They ought to have set them at liberty without any pecuniary advaaitage, if they knew any good in their deserving free liberty. Kind Treatment of the Prisoners of War by Mohammad. The prisoners of war were always treated kindly 67. The Koran enjoins, ^Y Mohammad, and the ancient the prisoners of war to ,^,.„^4-' ^ ^c 1 'IT „ i ^ be either freely liberat- pi'actlCe ot kllluig and eUsLlV- ed or ransomed, but nei- • ,^ it i ther executed nor en- ^g them was much discouragcd and abolished by the Koran. " And when ye meet those who misbelieve, then strike off heads until ye have massacred them, and bind fast the bonds !" " Then either a free grant (of liberty) or a ransom until the war shall have laid down its burdens." — Sura, xlvii, 4 and 5. Regarding the prisoners of Badr Sir W. Muir writes: "In pursuance of Mahomet's commands, the citizens of Medina, and such of the refugees as pos- 86 Kind Treatment of Prisoners of War. sessed houses, received the prisoners and treated them with much consideration." " Blessing be on the men of Medina ! " said these prisoners in latter days. " They made us ride, while they themselves walked; they gave us wheatened bread to eat, when there was little of it, contenting themselves with dates." It is not surprising that when, some time after, their friends came to ransom them, several of the prisoners who had been thus received declared themselves adherents of Islam : and to such the Prophet granted a liberty without the usual payment.^ The prisoners of the Bani Mustalik were released without paying any ransom.^ The Bani Hawazin were made prisoners of war at Honain, fought in tlie eighth year of the Hegira, but were all set free without any exaction of ransom from them. Mohammad first released his prisoners, and the men of Mecca and ]\Iedina cheerfully followed his ex- ample.^ The prisoners were six thousand in number.^ A party of eighty, as related by Moslim in his Saheeh, or of forty or fifty Koreish, as narrated by Ibn Hisham (p. 745), went round about Mohammad's camp while stationed at Hodeibia in A. H. 6, seeking to cut off* any stray followers, and having attacked the camp itself with stones and arrows, they were > Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. II, pp. 122 and 123. 2 Ibid, Vol. Ill, p. 243. =• Ihid, Vol. IV, pp. 148 and 149. * Ibn HisLam, p. 877. Execution of Bani Koreiza. 87 caught and taken prisoners to Mohammad, who, with his usual generosity, pardoned and released them. Khalid-Ibn-Waleed, in the year of his victory, A. H. 11, when he was sent to call the Bani Jazimato embrace Islam, had made them prisoners and ordered tlieir execution. Some of the better-informed of the Moslems of the injunctions of the Koran, of releasing prisoners either freely or by exacting ransom, inter- posed and accused him of committing an act of the Time of Ignorance. Mohammad, much displeased, grieved at the intelligence, and said twice, ' God ! I am innocent of what Khalid hath done.'^ Tlie Execution of the Bani Koreiza. The Bani Koreiza, a Jewish tribe living in the 68. Hig-h treason of vicinity of Mccca, had entered into against^'^'Medinar aud ^^'^ alliance with the Moslem Com- their execution. mon wealth to defend the city of Medina from the attack of the aggressors. While Medina was besieged by the ten thousand Koreish and other Bedouin tribes in A. H. 6, they (the Koreiza), instead of co-operating with the Moslems, defected from their allegiance and entered into nego- tiations with the besieging foe. After the cessation of the siege, 'they were besieged in their turn, and a fearful example was made of them, not by Moham- mad, but by an arbiter chosen and appointed by ' Ibu Hisham. pp. S:!3 and Slio. 88 Execution of Bani Koreiza. themselves. Tlie execution of some of tliem was not on account of their being prisoners of war; they were war-traitors and rebels, and deserved death accordino; to the international law. Their crime was high treason against Medina while it was blockaded. There had no actual fighting taken place between the Bani Koreiza and the Moslems, after the former had thrown oif their alleoiance to the latter and had aided and abetted the enemies of the realm. They were besieged by the Moslems to punish them for their high treason, and consequently they were not prisoners of war. Even such prisoners of war suffer for high treason. " Treating, in the field, the rebellious enemy according to the law and usages of war, has never pre- vented the legitimat'i Government from trying the leaders of the rebellion, or chief rebels for high trea- son, and from treating them accordingly, unless they are included in a general amnesty." ^ The whole tribe of the Bani Koreiza was not exe- G9. The whole of the cutcd, uor all the male prisoners Bani Koreiza was never executed. wcrc put to the sword.^ The number slain was comparatively very small. That they were not executed at the commands of Moham- mad, nor all of them were killed, nor a divine sanc- ' Miscellaneous Writing's of Francis Lieber, Vol. II. Contributions to Political Science, p. 27o. Philadelphia, 1881. ^ Some of the Koreizites were releas'^d, among whom we hear of Zobeir Ibn Batii and Rifiia. They were pardoned by Mohammad. Womm and Children not .wld. 89 tion was allc_iT;erl for it, is shown by the following verse of the Koran : " And he caused those of the people of the Book (the Jews) who had aided the confederates to come down of their fortresses, and cast dismay into their hearts : some ye slew ; others ye took prisoners." — Sura, xxxiii, 20. The slaying and taking of prisoners is attributed to them to whom the verse is addressed as their own act. The rest of the Bani Koreiza, — male adults, women, 70. The women and and children, — were either liber- children of the Bani Koreiza were not sold. atcd or o'ot thcmselves rausomed. We read in Oyoon-al-Asar by Ibn Sayyad-al-Nas some account of the ransom. Osman-bin-AfFan gathered much money by the transaction. But Sir W. Muir quotes from Hishamee, that the restof the women and children were sent to be sold among the Bedouin tribes of Najd, in exchange of horse and arms.^ But there is no authority for this story. Abul Mo'tamar Soleiman, in his Campaigns of Mohammad, gives an- other account w^hich is more probable. He writes: — " Out of what w^as captured from Bani Koreiza Mohammad took seventeen horses and distributed them among his people. The rest he divided into two halves. One-half he sent with Sad bin Obadd to Syria, and the other half with Ans bin Quizi to the land of Ghatafan, and ordered that they may be ' Muir'.s Life of Mahomet, Vol. III. p. 279. M 90 Number of Perf. 689. Others say the males were kept in the house of Osman-bin-Zaed, and the females and children in the house of Biut- al-Haris. ViiU lusan-al-Oyoon. by Halabi. Vol. Ill, p. U3. =< Muir"s Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 13. 92 Mutilation of Uniee Rohhers. tions are, as a rule, always incomplete; in one place they are given shorter, and in another longer, accord- incr to the circumstances of the occasion on which they are originally recited. Ibn Hisham relates, that " Zaid-bin-Harisa ordered Kays-bin-Mosahhar to exe- cute 0mm Kirfa, so he executed her with a violent execution." {' Katlan Aneefan,'' ]). ^^0.) He does not relate that Mohammad was even informed of the execution after the party had returned from this terrible mission. I think the word ' a^zg^/' {violent or severe), as used originally by the narrator, might have been the cause of the growth of the story of executing by tying up to two camels, by way of a gratuitous explanation or glossary, as another tradi-. tion relates that she was tied to the tails of two horses {vide Koostalanee in his Commentary on Bokharee, Vol. Ill, p. 307). 2. — Urnee Bobbers. Some Uniee robbers, lately converted, had plim- 73. The alleged mu- dercd the cauiels of Medina and tilatiou of the Uruee robbers. barbarously handled their herds- man, for they cut off his hands and legs, and struck thorny spikes into his tongue and eyes, till he died. The bandits were pursued, captured, and executed by Kurz-bin-Jabir. " They had merited death," says Sir W. Muir, " but the mode in which he inflicted it was barbarous and inhuman. The arms and leirs of Amputation or Banisliment for icant of Jails. 93 eii;ht men were cut off, and their e3^es were put out. The shapeless, sightless trunks of these wretched Bedomns were then hnpaled upon the plain of Al Ghaba, until life was extinct." ^ As the robbers had mutilated tlie herdsman, this gave currency to their having been mutilated in retaliation. But in fact Mohammad never ordered mutilation in any case, lie was so averse to this practice, that several tradi- tions from various sources emanating from him to the effect, prove that he prohibited mutilation lest he himself be mutilated by divine judgment.^ Sir W. Muir continues : — " On reflection, Maho- , . , ,. met appears to have felt that this 74. Amputation or ^ ^ baiiisiameut substituted punishment cxcceded the bounds temporarily m place or i imprisomnent for waut f humauitv. He accordindy of a well-orgauized sys- J o J tern of jails. promulgated a Revelation, in which capital punishment is limited to simple death or cruci- iixion. Amputation of the hands and feet is, however, sanctioned as a penal measure ; and amputation of ' Muir's Life of Mahomet. Vol. IV, p. 19. In the collections of Bokharee the story is traced to Ans. But Ans could not be a witness to Mohammad's command for mutilation, as Ans did not come until the exi^edition to Khyber ; and the execution of those robbers took place before that. The story from Jabir in Ibn Mardaveih's collections to the same effect is not authentic, as Jabir, who says he was sent by Mohammad in jjursuit of the robbers, and committed the act, was not a convert at that time. Koostalanee, the author of Mooahib, has declared the tradition of Ibn Jarir Tabari on the subject as an apocryphal, i.e., "Zaeef." Vide Zoorkanee on Movahib, Vol. II, p. 211. - Ibn Hisham (p. 4G3) relates from Ibn Is-hak that Omar asked per- mission to mutilate Sobail, but Mohammad replied, " I would not muti- late him : if I do, God will mutiltite me^ though I be a Prophet." 91 Ainputatiun or Banishment for want of Jails. tlie hands- is even enjoined as the proper penalty for theft, whether the criminal be male or female. This barbarous custom has accordingly been perpetuated throughout the Mahometan world. But the putting out of the eyes is not recognized among the legal punishments." ^ These alternative punishments were prescribed for the heinous crimes of highway robbery, dacoity, and theft by house-breaking. They were (i) capital punish- ment, (ii) amputation, and (iii) banishment (Sura, V, 37, 42), according to the circumstances of the case. The last two were of a temporary nature substituted for imprisonment for want of an organized system of jails and prisons. . When the Commonwealth was in its infancy, the troubles of the invasions and wars of the agco-ressive Koreish and their allies had left neither peace nor security at Medina to take such administrative measures as to organize a system of building, guarding, and maintaining jails, their inmates and their establishments. As soon as jails were established in the Mohammadan Common- wealth, amputation and banishment gave way to imprisonment. The prisoners of war, not being cri- minals, used to be made over by Mohammad to some citizens of Medina, as in the case of the prisoners of the battle of Badr, to keep them in their houses as guests, on account of the want of prisons ; but as for > Muir's Life of Muliomet, Vol. IV, p. 19. Torture of Kinana. 95 tlio other criminals — the highway robbers, dacoits, and house-breakers — they could not be treated and entertained so hospitably. Thus there was left no alternative for them except either to banish such criminals, or to award them corporal punishment in the shape of amputation/ 3. — Torture of Kinana. It is related by the biographers " that Kinana, ^_ ^ ^ , ,.. chief of the Jews of Khyber, and lo. lorture or \\i- •' ' ^^"^- his cousin had kept back, in con- travention of their compact, a portion of their riches. On the discovery of this attempt at imposition, Kinana was subjected to cruel torture — ' fire being placed upon his breast till his breath had almost departed ' — in the hope that he would confess where the rest of his treasures were concealed. Mahomet then gave command, and the heads of the chief and his cousin were severed from their bodies."^ The story of Kinana's being subjected to extortion and put to death for hiding some treasure, for which he had contravened his contract, is altogether a spurious one. Kinana was executed in retaliation for treacherously killing ]\Iahmud, the brother of Mohammad-bin-Moslama, to whom he was made over ' This subject has been fully and judiciously discussed by the Honor- able Syed Ahmed Khan Bahadur, C. S. I., in his " Commentary of the Koran ;" Sura. iv. pp. 198—204. - Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. G8. 96 Execution of a Singing- Girl. for execution. There is one tradition, without any authority, to the effect, that Zobeir was producing fire on Kinana's breast by the friction of flint and steel. This, if it be a fact, does not show that it was done by Mohammad's direction and approval. On the contrary, there are several traditions from the Prophet himself in which he has forbidden to punish any one with fire. It is related by Bokhareefrom Ibn Abbas, that Mohammad said, " God only can punish with fire." It is also related by Abu Daood from Abdullah, that the Prophet said, " No body ought to punish any one with fire except the Lord of the fire."^ 4. — A Singing-Girl executed. " From general amnesty extended to the citizens' of Mecca, Mahomet excluded ten 76. The alleged exe- /a r* i cution of a singing- or twclvC pcrSOllS. Of thcSC, girl. however, only four were actually put to death The two next were rene- gade Moslems, who having shed blood at Medina had fled to Mecca, and abjured Islam. They were both slain, and also a sini!ino;-o;irl belonjxino: to one of them, who had been in the habit of annoying the Prophet by abusive verses." "Their names are Abdallah ibn Khalal and Mikyas ibn Subaba. The murder committed by the former is said to have been wilful, that of the latter uninten- ' Vide Mishkat Book of Retaliation, pp. 243— 24i. Charitable Spirit of Mohammad. 97 tional. Abdallah had two singing-girls. Both were sentenced to death, but one escaped and afterwards obtained quarter ; the execution of the other appears to have been the worst act committed by Mahomet on the present occasion."^ Abdullah had committed cold-blooded murder, and most probably the singing-girl belonging to him had taken a share in his crime. Her execution was owing to her being an accomplice or abettor in the foul act which was justified by law. Then why should the execution be considered a worst act ? Mohammad felt the deepest respect for the weaker sex, and had enjoined during the warfares " not to kill women ; " but the law makes no difference amongst the sexes, both sexes being liable to punishment according to their deserts. The magnanimity, clemency, forbearance, and for- a^iveness of Mohammad at the 77. The charitable spirit of Mohammad time of his victory at Mecca were towards his enemies. very remarkable. Mr, Stanley Lane Poole with his usual acumen writes : — " But the final keystone was set in the eighth year of the fiight (A. D. 630), when a body of the Kureysh broke the truce by attacking an ally of the Muslims ; and Mohammad forthwith marched upon Mekka with ten thousand men, and the city, defence being hope- less, surrendered. Now was the time for the Prophet ' Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV. p. 131, foot-note. N 98 Abu Basir. to show his bloodthirsty nature. His old persecutors are at his feet. Will he not trample on them, torture them, reveno-e himself after his own cruel manner ? Now the man will come forward in his true colours : we may prepare our horror, and cry shame beforehand. " But what is this ? Is there no blood in the streets ? Where are the bodies of the thousands that have been butchered ? Facts are hard things ; and it is a fact that the day of Mohammad's greatest triumph over his enemies was also the day of his grandest victory over himself. He freely forgave the Kureysh all the years of sorrow and cruel scorn they had inflicted on him : he gave an amnesty to the whole popida- tion of Mekka. Four criminals, whom justice con- demned, made up Mohammad's proscription list when he entered as a conqueror the city of his bitterest enemies. The army followed the example, and entered quietly and peaceably ; no house was robbed, no woman insulted."^ 5. — Abu Basir. Sir W. Muir says that "Abu Basir, the free-booter, was countenanced by the Prophet 78. Abu Basir not countenauced by the in a manner scarcely consistent Prophet in contraven- tion of the spirit of the with tlic letter, and certainly treaty of Hodeibia. "^ opposed to the spirit, of the truce ' Introduction to Lane's Selections from the Kur-an, by Stanley Lane Poole, p. Ixvii. London ; Trubnor and Co., 187',). Ahii Bash\ 99 of Hodeibia."^ It was one of the articles of the treaty of Hodeibia between the Koreish and Mohammad, that if any one goeth over to Mohammad without the permission of his guardian, he shall be sent back to him.^ A short time after, Abu Basir, a Moslem imprisoned at Mecca, effected his escape and appeared at Medina. His guardians, Azhar and Akhnas, sent two servants to Mohammad with a letter and instructions to bring the deserter back to his house. The obligation of surrender was at once admitted by Mohammad, though Abu Basir pleaded the persecution which he used to suffer at Mecca as the cause of refusing to return, but Moham- mad argued that it was not proper for him to break the terms of the peace, and Abu Basir was compel- led to set out for Mecca. But he had travelled only a few miles when he treacherously seized the sword of one of his escorts and slew him. The other ser- vant fled back to Medina, whither Abu Basir also followed him. On the return of the latter, he con- tended that the Prophet had already fulfilled the treaty to its very letter in delivering him up, but the Prophet replied, " Alas for his mother ! What a kindler of war, if he had with him any one ! " When he heard this " he knew that the Prophet was ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol, IV, p. 308. = Ibid, p. 35. 100 Abu Basir. ao-ain going to send him back to his guardians/ the Koreish, so he went away to the seashore, where he, with others who had joined him after their flight from captivity at Mecca, used to waylay the caravans from Mecca. " This story, which is also briefly narrated by Ibn Is-hak, and more fully by Shamee, Zoorkanee and Ibn-al-Kyyim, does not show that Mohammad acted against the spirit and letter of the truce of Hodeibia. He himself never countenanced Abu Basir ; on the contrary, he delivered him up in conformity with the terms of the treaty of Hodeibia, and when he had returned, Abu Basir had every reason to believe that Mohammad would again despatch him to the quarters whence he had come. But it appears Abu Basir went away to the seashore, out of Mohammad's jurisdiction, and it was not the duty of the Prophet to eff'ect his arrest and send him back to Mecca whilst he was not with him, or rather out of his jurisdiction. Had he even kept him with himself at Medina after he had once made him over to the party sent forth to take charge of him, and were no other demands made for his delivery, I do not think > Vide Zoorkanee on 31ovahib, Vol. II, page 244 ; also Zdd-td-Madd, by Ibn-al-Kyyim, Vol. I, page 376, Cawnpore, 1298 A. H. ; and Seerat-nl- Mokammadiya, by Mobammad Karamat-ul-Ali of Delhi, in loco. The Life is compiled fom Seerat Halahi and Seerat Shamee and was litbograpbed in Bombay. Niieim. 101 Mohammad could be fairly blamed lor it according to the international law of the Arabs, or even ac- cording to the terms of the treaty of Hodeibia itself. 6. — Enqyloyment of Nueim to break up the confederates ivho had besieged Medina. When Medina was besieged for several days by 79 Nueim not em- ^^^ Korcish and their confederates, ^^"tSrt^X th^ army of Medina was harassed in the enemy's camp. ^^^ wearied with increasing watch and duty. Nueim, an Arab of a neutral tribe, re- presented himself as a secret believer, and offered his services to the Prophet, who accepted them, and em- ployed him to hold back the confederates from the siege, if he could, saying " war verily was a game of decep- tion." Nueim excited mutual distrust between the Jews and the Koreish. He told the Jews not to fio-ht against Mohammad until they got hostages from the Koreish as a guarantee against their being deserted. And to the Koreish he said that the Jews intended to ask hostages from them. " Do not give them," he said, " they have promised Mahomet to give up the hostages to be slain. "^ This is one tradition, and there is another to the effect that the Jews had themselves asked for the hostages, but the Koreish had not replied yet, when Nueim came to the Jews and said, he was there with ' HiBhamee, page 681 ; Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, page2GG. 102 Deception in War tolerated. Abu Sofiaii when their messenger had come for the demand of hostages, and that xVbu Sofian is not go- ing to send them any.^ A third tradition in Motamid Ibn Solyman's sup- plement to Wackidi's Campaigns of Mohammad gives no such story at all. It has altogether a different narration to the effect, that there was a spy of the Koreish in the Moslem camp who had overheard Abdullah-bin-Rawaha saying, that the Jew's had asked the Koreish to send them seventy persons, who, on their arrival, would be killed by them. Nueim went to the Koreish, who were waiting for his message, and told what he had heard as already related.^ This contradicts the story given by Ibn Hisham and Mr. Muir. But anyhow the story does not prove that Mohammad bad given permission to Nueim to speak falsehood or spread treacherous reports. Sir W. Muir is not justified in his remarks when 80. Deception in war he writcs, — -"We cauuot, indeed, allowed by the inter- national law. approvc the employment of JNueim to break up the confederacy by falsehood and decep- tion, but this perhaps would hardly affect his charac- ter in Arab estimation ;"^ and further on he writes, — *' When Medina was beleagured by the confederate • Seerat HalaM, or Insan-al-Oyoon, Vol. II, page 79. ^ History of Mohammad'' s Campaigns, by Wackidi, pp. 368-369 : Edited by Von Kremer, Calcutta, 1856. » The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, page 282. Deception in War tolerated. 103 army, Mahomet sought the services of Nueim, a traitor and employed him to sow distrust among the enemy by false and treacherous reports : for," said he, " what else is war but a game at deception, " ^ The utmost that can be made out from the former tradi- tion quoted by Mr. Muir, and contradicted by another tradition of equal force, is that Mohammad allowed deception in war by quoting the proverbial saying, that " war is a game at deception." In this he had the sanction of the military law or the international law, as deception in war is a " miUtary necessity," and allowed by the law and usages of war. A modern author on the international law says : — " Military necessity admits of all direct destruc- tion of life or limb of armed enemies, and of other persons whose destruction is incidentally unavoidable in the armed contests of the war ; it allows of the capturing of every armed enemy, and every enemy of importance to the hostile government, or of peculiar danger to the captor ; it allows of all destruction of property, and obstraction of the ways and channels of traffic, travel, or communication, and of all withholding of sustenance or means of life from the enemy ; of the appropriation of what- ever an enemy's country affords necessary for the subsistence and safety of the army, and of such ' Tlif Life of Mahomot, Vol. IV. p.agcs ;!()S-:50y. 104 Leckys Standard of Morality. deception as does not involve the breaking of good faith either positively pledged, regarding agreements entered into during the war, or supposed by the modern law of war to exist." ^ But supposing the modern morality does not 81. Lecky's Stand- apprOVe of Mohammad what hard- aid of Morality, ly "affected his character in Arab estimation," are there no diversities in moral judgments ? The moral unity to be expected in different ages is not a unity of standard or of facts, but a unity of tendency. " That some savage kill their old parents, that infanticide has been practised without compunction by even civilized nations, that the best Romans saw nothing wrong in the gladiatorial shows, that political or revengeful assassinations have been for centuries admitted, that slavery has been sometimes honoured and sometimes condemned, are unquestion- able proofs, that the same act may be regarded in one ao;e as innocent, and in another as criminal. Now it is undoubtedly true, that in many cases an historical examination will reveal special circum- stances explaining or palliating the apparent anomaly. It has been often shown that the gladiatorial shows were originally a form of human sacrifice adopted throuo'h relio;ious motives ; that the rude nomadic life of savages rendering impossible the preservation » Lieber's Miscellaneous Writings. Vol. II. page 2i50. Leckys Standard of Moralitij. 105 of aged and helpless members of the tribe, the murder of parents was regarded as an act of mercy both by the murderer and the victim ; that before an effective administration of justice was organized, private vengeance was the sole preservation against crime, and political assassination against usurpation ; that the insensibility of some savages to the crimi- nality of theft arises from the fact that they were accustomed to have all things in common ; that the Spartan law legalizing theft arose partly from a desire to foster military dexterity among the people, but chiefly from a desire to discourage wealth ; that slavery was introduced through motives of mercy to prevent conquerors from killing their prisoners. All this is true, but there is another and a more general answer. It is not to be expected, and it is not maintained, that men in all ages should have agreed about the application of their moral principles. All that is contended for is, that these principles are themselves the same. Some of what appear to us monstrous acts of cruelty were dictated by that very feeling of humanity, the universal per- ception of the merit of which they are cited- to disprove ; and even when this is not the case, all that can be inferred is, that the standard of humanity was very low. But still humanity was recognized as a virtue, and cruelty as a vice."^ ' History of Eufopean Morals, from Augustas to Charlemag-ue. By William Edward Hartpole Lecky, M.A., Vol. I, pp. 101-102. O 106 Murder of Ihn Smiina. The alleged permission to kill the Jews. It is related by some of the biographers of Moham- 82. Murder of iba ^^^^ eagerly recited by others of ^^^^^^' Europe, that, " on the raorning after the murder of Kdb, Mahomet gave a general permission to his followers to slay any Jews whom they might chance to meet,"^ and that the murder of Ibn Sanina, a Jewish merchant, by Muheiasa, a Moslem, was the direct consequence of this order. " When Huweisa upbraided Muheiasa for killing his confederate the Jew, and appropriating his wealth, — " By the Lord ! " replied Muheiasa, "if he that commanded me to kill him commanded to kill thee also, I would have done it." " What ! " Huweisa cried, " wouldst thou have slain thine own brother at Mahomet's bidding? " — " Even so," answered the fanatic. "Strange indeed!" Huweisa responded. " Hath the new religion reached to this pitch ! Verily it is a wonderful Eaith." And Huweisa was converted from that very hour."^ Ibn Is-hak says this story was related to him" by a freedman of the Bani Harisa tribe from the daughter of Muheiasa, who had heard it from her father.^ (1) Now there is nothing known of this mysterious person, the freedman of the tribe of Haris, therefore no reliance can be put on his story. (2) We have ' Muir's Life of Mnbomet, Vol. Ill, page 148. - Ibid, p. 149. ^ Ibn Hisham, p. 554. Murder of Ibn Sanina. 107 no knowledge of tlie daughter of the murderer Muheiasa, or Moheisa, as he is called by the biogra- pher, Ibn Hisham. (3) Muheiasa himself has not that respectable character which can lend even a shadow of veracity to his narration. (4) And lastly, the story that Mohammad had given general permis- sion to his followers to slay any Jew whom they might chance to meet, and consequently Muheiasa killed Ibn Sanina, and Huweisa became a convert to Islam, is contradicted by another counter-tradition in Ibn Hisham (pp. 554-555), who has related from Abu Obeida, who relates from Abii Omar-al-Madani, that, "during the execution of the Bani Koreiza {vide para. 68), one Kab-bin-Yahooza was made over to Muheiasa for execution. When the latter executed his victim, Huweisa, his brother, who was still unbe- lieving, upbraided Muheiasa. "If he," responded Muheiasa, "that commanded me to kill him had com- manded me to kill thee also, I would have killed thee." Huweisa was quite surprised at his brother's reply, and went away astonished. Daring the night he used to wake up repeatedly, and wonder at his brother's staunch devotion to his faith. In the morning, he said, " By the Lord ! This is a wonderful faith," and came to the Prophet to embrace Islam. These remarks show that the alleged permission to kill the Jews, and Ibn Sanina's murder, and Huweisa's conversion in consequence thereof, is all a mere concoction. 108 Bani Nazeer. Even Sir W. Muir, tliongli very fond of collecting 83. Sir w. Muir ^^^ ^^^^^ apocryplial traditions quoted. reflecting on the character of the Prophet, doubts the veracity of this one, and declares its improbability and inexpediency. He writes : — " But the order itself is a strange one, and must, one would suppose, have been accompanied by some conditions or reservations not here apparent. It was surely not expedient for the Prophet's cause at this time that the streets of Medina should have flowed with blood by the strict execution of this command. Yet such is the distinct tenor of the best traditions. " The order was not an unhkely one to have issued at a time when Mahomet was irritated against the Jews by their treachery ; and Hishami has a tradition that it was promulgated when Mahomet directed the massacre of all the males of the Coreitza, which would have been the more likely version, if the other tradition had not been so strong and positive."^ But the tradition quoted by him is by no means the best or strongest as I have shown above. Hishamee does not say that the order was promulgated at the execution of the Bani Koreiza. He simply narrates the story of Muheiasa and Huweisa to have taken place at that time. The exjmlsio?! of the Bant Nazeer. The expulsion of the Bani Nazeer has been censured by Sir W. Muir, who says : " The 8i. The Bani Nazeer. "^ i • i i t^ . at n * pretext on which the Bam Nadhir ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, pp. 148 & 149, foot-note. Bind Nazeer. 109 were besieged and expatriated (namely, that Gabriel had revealed their design against the Prophet's life), was feeble and unworthy of an honest cause." ^ A whole Sura in the Koran is devoted to the Bani Nazeer, but it does not hint at the alleged crime of their attempt on the life of the Prophet or their expulsion for the same cause. The traditions on the subject are unsupported, ex parte, and legendary. Had such a tradition been current at the time of Mohammad, or what is called Sadr Av-val (the first or Apostolic Age), we should certainly have had scores of narrators on the subject.^ Their crime was treachery,^ and they were a dangerous element to Medina, for a combination, at any period, between the treacherous Jews and the ao-o-ressive Koreish, or other enemies of Islam, would have proved fatal to the safety of Medina. But their banishment was too mild a punishment. It is said that Mohammad cut down the sur- 85. Fruit-treesnotcut founding date trccs and burned °^^' the choicest of them during the ' The Life of Mahomet, by Sir W. Muir, Vol. IV, page 308. * The tradition that Mohammad had gone to Bani Nazeer asking their aid in defraying a certain price of blood, and they attempted upon his life (Muir, III, 208-209) as related by Ibn Is-hak (in Ibn Hisham. page 6.52) is a Mursal (vide Zoorkanee, Part II, page 95), and consequently was not current in the Apostolic Age. " Ibn Ockba, an earliest biographer of Mohammad, died 140, says, — the cause of the expedition against the Bani Nazeer was this : that they had instigated the Koreish to fight against Mohammad, and had reconnoitred the weak points of Medina. Ibn Mardaveih, Abd-bin-Hamecd, and Abdu 110 Females and the Treaty of Hodeihia. siege of the Bani Nazeer, and justified himself by publishing the verses of the LIX Sura of the Koran.^ But the date trees cut down were neither bearing fruit, nor did they supply any staple artiple of food to the Bani Nazeer, or the public in general. The Leena mentioned in the verse referred to above is a tree without fruit. Thus no fruit trees were destroyed. (Zoorkdnee, Vol. II, page 98.) Trees not bearing fruits were only cut, which is also justified under the Law of Moses. (See Deuteronomy XX, 20.) Females and the Treaty of Hodeibia. Females were not included in the truce of Hodeibia. 86. Females and the The stipulation for the Surrender treaty of Hodeibia. ^^ dcscrtcrs referred only to the male sex. All women who were to come over to Medina from Mecca during the period of the peace were, by the dictates of Sura LX, 10, to be tried, and if their profession was found sincere, they were to be retained. They were prohibited from marrying the unbelievers. The guardians of such believing females were to receive from the Moslem commonwealth what they had spent upon their charges. Sir W. Muir understands from Sura LX, verse 10, that the women referred to therein were the Razzak have i-elated traditions to the effect that, after the event of Badr, the Koreish had written to the Jews of Medina to make war upon Mohammad, and the Bani Nazeer had resolved to break the compact. Vide Zoorkanee, Part II, pp. 96-97. ' Compare Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, pp. 213 and 302, foot-note. Stanley defended. Ill wives of the Meccans, and sa3^s : — " The unbelief of their husbands dissolved the j^revious marriage ; they now might legally contract fresh nuptials with believers, provided only that restitution were made of any sums expended by their former husbands as dower upon them."^ But there is nothing either to show that the women had their husbands at Mecca, or to prove, that, on account of their husbands' unbelief, their marriao;es were annulled. As marriao;e with women with husbands is forbidden in Sura IV, verse 28, and the verse LX, 10, under discussion, does not designate them as married women, I fairly conclude that this verse treats only of such as were not married. It is not the Law of the Koran that the unbelief of either party dissolves their previous marriage. It only enjoins neither to marry idola- tresses, nor to wed Moslem daughters with idolaters until they believe. — (Sura II, 220.) Sir William Muir, after quoting Sura LX, 10-12, says, " Stanley on Corinthians 87. Stanley defended. ^ ^^,^ (1 Cor. VII, 1—40) quotes the above passage, and says that the rule it contains " resembles that of the Apostle," Vol. I, page 145. But there is really no analogy between them ; the Gospel rule differs toto ccelo from that of Mahomet : — " If any brother hath a wife that believeth not, and she be pleased to dwell with him, let him not put her away. ' Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 44. 112 Stanley defended. — And similarly the case of a believing wife with an unbelieving husband. (1 Cor. VII, 12 — 16.) Whereas Mahomet declares the marriage bond de facto annulled by the unbelief of either party, which indeed was only to be expected from his loose ideas regarding the marriage contract."^ I think Stanley is quite correct, and the Gospel and the Koranic rule resemble each other in this respect. Because the order, " they (the believing women) are not lawful for them (un- believers), nor are the unbelievers lawful for these (believing women)," does not relate to the women already married ; and the words, " do not retain any right in the infidel woman ... if any of your wives escape from you to the infidels ..." are to the same purport as 1 Cor. VII, 15, " But if the unbelieving depart let them depart. A brother or a sister is not under bondao-e in such cases. "^ ' Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 4G, foot-note. ^ The verses of the Koran are given below : 10. '• O Believers ! when believing women come over to you as refugees, then make trial of them. Goi best knoweth their faith ; but if ye have also ascertained their faith, let them not go back to the infidels ; they are not lawful for them, nor are the unbelievers lawful for these women. But give them back what they have spent. No crime shall it be in you to marry them, provided you give them their dowers. Do not retain a right in the infidel women, and demand back what you have spent, and let them demand back what they have spent. This is the ordinance of God which He ordaineth among you : and God is Knowing. Wise." 11. " And if any of your wives escape from you to the infidels from whom you afterwards take any spoil, then give to those whose wives shall have fled away, the like of what they shall have spent ; and fear God in whom ye believe." — Sura LX. Marriage a strict bond of union. 113 Mohammad had no loose ideas regarding the 88. Marriage a strict inarriage tie. He had made the bond of uuiou. marriai^e contract more firm and irrevocable, except under very exceptional circum- stances, than it was under the Arab society; and called it "a strict bond of union."^ Mohammad's own daughter, Zeinab, was the wife of an unbelieving husband and had fled to her father at Medina under the persecution at Mecca after the Hegira.^ Her marriage with her unbelieving partner w^as not can- celled by Mohammad, and on the conversion of the son-in-law, when he came after a period of six j^ears after his wife had come to Medina, Mohammad rejoined them together under their previous mar- riao-e. Theirs was neither a fresh marrias^e nor a fresh dowry. ( Vide Ibn Abbas' tradition in the collections of Ahmed, Ibn Abi Daood, Ibn Maja and Trimizee.) Safwan-bin-Omayya and Ikrama-bin Abi Jahl had believing wives at the time of the con- quest of Mecca, and their marriages were not dissolved by Mohammad. ( Vide Ibn Shahab's tradition in ' Sura IV, 25. Rodwell's translation. How Mohammad discouraged divorce and took several steps in the Koran to prohibit the facility of divorce prevailing in the Arab society has been fully discussed by me in my book " The Proposed Political, Legal, and Social Eeforms under Moslem Rule," pp. 129 — 143, Bombay Educa- tion Society Press, 1883. - " Some of the baser sort from amongst the Coreish, hearing of her departure, went in pursuit, determined to bring her back. The first that appeared was Habbar, who struck the camel with his spear, and so affrighted Zeinab as to cause her a miscarriage." — IMuir's Life ^)t Mahomet, Vol. IV, page 7. P 114 Koran enjoined only Defensive Wars. Movatta by Malik, and in tlie Tabakat of Ibn Sad Katib Wakidi.) Similarly Ibn Sofian and Hakeem- bin- Hizam had their unbelieving wives retained by them after they had themselves been converted to Islam, and their former connubial connection was not severed by Mohammad. ( Vide the several traditions in Baihakee to the above effect.) It was only the legists and juris-consults of a later age who wrongly construed the passage in Sura LX, 10, to mean that the unbelief of either party dissolved the marriage tie. The Popular Jihad or Crusade; According to the Mohammadan Common Law. Almost all the common Mohammadan and European 89. The Koran en- writers think that a religious war joined only defensive . . wars. of ao-D;ression is one of the tenets of Islam, and prescribed by the Koran for the purpose of proselytizing or exacting tribute. But I do not find any such doctrine enjoined in the Koran, or taught, or preached by Mohammad. His mission was not to wage wars, or to make converts at the point of the sword, or to exact tribute or exterminate those who did not believe his religion. His solef mission was to enlighten the Arabs to the true worship J of the one God, to recommend virtue and denounce! vice, which he truly fulfilled. That he and his^ followers were persecuted, that they were expelled\ from their houses and were invaded upon and warreq Koran enjoined only Defensive Wars. IIT) against ; that to repel incursions and to gain the liberty of conscience and the security of his followers' lives and the freedom of their religion, he and they waged defensive wars, encountered superior numbers, made defensive treaties, securing the main object of tlie war, i. e., the freedom of their living unmolested at Mecca and Medina, and of having a free inter- course to the Sacred Mosque, and a free exercise of their religion : all these are questions quite separate and irrelevant, and have nothing to do with the sub- ject in hand, i. e., the popular Jihad, or the crusade for the purpose of proselytizing, exacting tribute, and exterminating the idolaters, said to be one of the tenets of Islam. All the defensive wars, and the verses of the Koran relating to the same, were strictly temporary and transitory in their nature. They cannot be made an example of, or be construed into a tenet or injunction for aggressive wars, nor were they intended so to be. Even they cannot be an example or instruction for a defensive war to be waged by the Mohammadan community or commonwealth, because all the circumstances under which Mohammad wao-ed his defensive wars were local and temporary. But almost all European writers do not understand that the Koran does not teach a war of aggression, but had only, under the adverse circumstances, to enjoin a war of defence, clearly setting forth the grounds in its justification and strictly prohibiting offensive measures. IIC) Common Law and Jihad. All tlie fighting injunctions in the Koran are, in the 90. The Common Law ^^'^t P^^^e, Only in self-defence, and aud Jihad. noYiQ of them has any reference to make warfare offensively. In the second place, it is to be particularly noted that they were transitory in their nature, and are not to be considered positive injunc- tions for future observance or religious precepts for coming generations.-^ They were only temporary mea- sures to meet the emergency of the aggressive circum- stances. The Mohammadan Common Law is wrong- on this point, where it allows unbelievers to be attacked without provocation. But this it places under the cate- gory of a non-positive injunction. A positive injunc- tion is that which is incumbent on every believer. But attacking unbelievers without any provocation, or offensively, is not incumbent on every believer. The Hedaya has : — " The sacred injunction concerning war is sufficiently observed when it is carried on by any one party or tribe of Mussidmans ; and it is then no longer of any force with respect to the rest." * The Mohammadan Common Law makes the fijrht- 91. Jihad when posi- "^g Only a positivc injunction ^'^^' " where there is a general sum- ' Ata, a learned legist of Mecca, who flourished at the end of the first century of the Hegira, and held a high rank there as a juris-consult, {cide para. 112) held, that Jihad was only incumbent on the Companions' of the Prophet, and was not binding on any one else after them. See para. 112, aud TafVir Majma-nl-Buijaii by Tabrasee under Sura II. 212. i - The Eediuja or Guide ; or. A Commentary on the Mussulman Lawsi translated by Charles Hamilton; Vol.11, Book IX, Ch. I, page HO j London. MDCOXCI. The Hedaya quoted and refuted. ] 1 7 nions, (that is, where the infidels invade a Mussulman territory, and the Imam for the time being issues a general proclamation, requiring all persons to stand forth to fight, ) for in this case war becomes a positive injunction with respect to the whole of the inhabit- ants,"^ — this is sanctioned by the Law of Nations and the Law of Nature. The Hedaya, or a Commentary of the ]\Tohammadan Common Law by Nuraddin Ali of edandre^futed!^^'^''''" Murgliiuan (died in 593, A.H.) has : — "The destruction of the sword^ is incurred by the infidels, although they be not the first aggressors, as appears from the various passages in the sacred writings which are generally received to this eff'ect."^ This assertion is not borne out by the sacred injunction of the Koran, and, on the contrary, is in direct contradiction to the same. There are several passages in the Koran already quoted in pages 16 — 25, which expressly forbid the taking of offensive mea- sures, and enjoi^i only defensive wars. There are some other passa/^es which are not so expressive as the several other/s referred to above, or in other words, are not conditioij al. But the law of interpretation. ' The Hi'dai/a or Guide ; or, A Commentary on the Mussulman Laws, translated by Charles Hamilton ; Vol. II, Book IX, Ch. I, page 141. ^ " Arab Kattal ; meaning war in its oj}c)yttion. such as Jightlng, uluij- iiig,"' &c. ^ The nedaiia,\o\. II. HI. 118 Rule of Interpretation. the general scope and tenor of the Koran, and the context of the verses and parallel passages, all show that those few verses which are not conditional should be construed as conditional in conformity with other passages more clear, expressive, and conditional, and with the general laws of scriptural interpretation. Now, the author of the Hedaya and other writers on the Common Law quote only those few passages from the Koran which are absolute or unconditional, and shut their eyes against those many conditional verses, and general scope and tenor of the Koran. General, or Ahsohite. Sura II, 245, (read together with 247.) Sura IX, 124. Tlie context, parallel passages and their history, show them to be limited and conditional, in conformity with the general scope of the Koran. Limited, or Conditional. Sura XXir, 39-42. Sura II, 186-189. 212 „ „ 214. Sura IV, 76, 77, 78, 86. „ „ 91,9->, 93. Sura VIII, 39—41, 58-66. „ „ 73,74. Sura IX, 1 — 15. „ „ 29,36. Quoted injiagis 16—25, 35. Now, there are only two verses in the Koran 93. Rule of inter- (Sni'a II, V. 245, and Sura IX, P'''*^^^^^- V. 124) containing an absolute or non-conditional injunction for making war against the unbelievers. Perhaps you may be able to detach some more sentences, or dislocate some half verses from amongst those given under the head of condi- tional. But these absohite, as well as those detached Common Laic and its Commentators. 119 and dislocated parts of some other verses will not, by any rule of interpretation, show absolute injunction to wage war against the unbelievers without any provo- cation or limitation. There is a rule in the exegesis of the Koran, as well as in other Scriptural interpret- ations, that when two commandments, one conditional, and the other general or absolute, are found on the same subject, the conditional is to be preferred, and the absolute should be construed as conditional, because the latter is more expressive of the views of the author than the general which is considered as vague in its expression. The rule is : — Where a passage which is ambigu- ous, or which contains any unusual expression, or in which a doctrine is slightly treated, or is in general terms, must be interpreted agreeably to what is revealed more clearly in other parts, or where a sub- ject is more clearly discussed. A single or general passage is not to be explained in contradiction to many others restricted, conditional, and limited con- sistently with them, and with proper reservations. It is not to be wondered that the Mohammadan 94. The Common Law ^^gists or the Compilers of the and its commentators. Qon^Hion Law are wrong in this point. Because, as a rule, or as a matter of fact, they have compiled the Common Law from diiFerent sources irrespective of the Koran, and the commen- tators of the Common Law take the trouble of vin- dicating its views, principles and casuistries, and 120 Kifaya quoted. justifying the Moslem conquests under the Khalifs by the authority of the Koran. Then only they commit the unpardonable blunder of citing isolated parts of solitary verses of the Koran, which are neither ex- pressive enough nor are in general terms. In doing so, they avoid the many other conditional and more explicit verses on the same subject. The author of Kifaya, a commentary on the He- day a, who flourished in the 95. Kifaya quoted. r xi tt • seventh century oi the ilegn'a, remarks on the words of the text, " The destruction of the sword is incurred by the infidels, although they be not the first aggressors," already quoted in the 92nd para., and says : " Fighting against the infidels who do not become converts to Islam, and do not pay the capitation-tax, is incumbent, though they do not attack first." The author of the Heda3^a has mentioned this aggressive measure specially, because apparently the words of God, " if they attack you then slay them,"^ indicate that the fighting against the unbelievers is only incumbent when they fight first, but, however, such is not the case. It is incumbent to fight with them, though they be not the aggressors.^ • Sura II, 187. - The Hedaya, with its commentary called Kifaya, Vol. II, p. 708. Calcutta Medical Press, 1834. As a general rule the Mohammadan authors do not refer to the verses of the Koran by their number. They generally quote the first sentence, or even a portion of it. The No. of verses are mine. I have followed Fluegel and Rodwell's numbers of verses in their edition;? and trausla- tious of the Koran. . / Further quotation. 121 The same author write.s in continuation of the DG. Further quota- ^^hove quotation, and attempts to '^"" reconcile his theory with the numerous precepts of the Koran, which do not permit the war of ao-o-ression : — " Know, that in the beginning the Prophet was enjoined to forgive, and withdraw from those who joined other gods with God. God said, ' wherefore dost thou forgive with kindly forgiveness, and with- draw from those who join other gods with Me.' " " Then He enjoined him to summon the people to the faith by kind warning and kind disputation, say- ing, ' Summon thou to the way of thy Lord with wisdom and kindly warning : dispute with them in the kindest manner.' " " Then He allowed fighting, when they, the un- believers, were the aggressors, and said : — ' A sanc- tion is given to those who have fought because they have suffered outrages ; ' i.e., they are allowed to fight in self-defence. And God said, ' If they attack you, then kill them' (II, 187); and also said, 'If they lean to peace, lean thou also to it.' (VIII. 63)." " Then he enjoined to fight aggressively during a certain period. God said, ' And when the sacred months are passed, kill them who join other gods wfth God, wherever ye find them, and seize them ' (IX. 5)." " After this He enjoined for fighting absolutely, at every time and in every place. God said, ' And Q 122 Kifaya refuted. do battle against them until there be no more {fitnah) persecution' (II. 189 ; Vll. 40)."' Here the author of Kifaya has contrived to make 97. The Kifaya re- ^^^^ by Way of subtcrfugc and "*® ■ sophistry five successive periods of the policy of the Koran regarding warfare against the unbelievers : First Period ... Forgiveness and withdrawal. Sura XV, 85. VI, lOG Second Period ...Summoning ... ... Sura XVI, 126. Third Period ... Fighting in self-defence ...Sura XXII, 40. II, 187. VIII, 63. Fourth Period ... Fighting aggressively during certain times ... ... Sura IX, 5. Fifth Period ... Aggressive fighting absolutely. Sura II, 189. VIII, 40. He is wrong in history, chronology as well as in understanding the general scope of the Koran and the tenor of the Suras. He does not regard even the context of the verses quoted. The verses containing injunctions for turning aside, shunning, forgiving, passing over, and withdrawing are found even in the later period of the Medinite Suras.— ( Fz£/e Sura II, 103; Y, 16, 46 ; Sura lY, QQ, 83; and YII, 198.) They have nothing to do either with war or peace. The summoning of people to the faith of God was the chief duty of the Prophetical office, and was not confined to any special period, and was alike during times of war and j^eace. Even during the actual ' Kifaya as before. Ss. IX and II, vv. 5 and 189, discussed. 123 warflire it was incumbent on the Prophet to give quarters to the enemy, if he desired, to listen to his pi-eachings. — ( Vide Sura IX, 6.) The fifth verse of the ninth Sura is by no means 98. s. IX, V. 6, dis- ^^^ injunction to attack first or cussed. . mi . wage an aggressive war. ihis verse is one of the several published at Medina after the Meccans had violated the treaty of Hodeibia and attacked the Bani Khozaa, who were in alliance with Mohammad. The Meccans were given four months' time to submit, in default of which they were to be attacked for their violation of the treaty and for their attacking the Bani Khozaa. They sub- mitted beforehand, and Mecca was conquered by compromise. The verses referred to above (Sura IX, 1 — 15, &c.) were not acted upon. So there was no injunction to wage an aggressive war. This subject has been discussed at pages 51 — 55 of this work, and the reader is referred to them for fuller information. The 189th verse of the second Sura is not at all 99 s II V 189 dis- ^^ absolutc injunction to wage a ^^^^^^- -^ar of aggression. The verses 186, 187, 188 and 189, if read together, will show that the injunction for fighting is only in defence. The verses are: — 186. And fight for the cause of Grod against those who fight against you : but commit not the injustice of attacking them first; verily God loveth not the unjust. 124 Ss. II, 189, VIII, 40, are defensive. 187. And kill them wherever ye shall find them; and eject them from whatever place they have eject- ed you ; for (Jitnah) persecution is worse than slaughter ; yet attack them not at the sacred Mosque, until they attack you therein, but if they attack you, then slay them : such is the recompense of the infidels ! 188. But if they desist, then verily God is Gra- cious, Merciful — 189. And do battle ao-ainst them until there be no more (Jitnah) persecution and the only worship be that of God : but if they desist, then let there be no hostility, save against wrong-doers. Besides, this verse as well as the fortieth verse of 100. s.ii 189 VIII Sura VIII have indications in 40, are defensive.' ' thcmselvcs of their relating to a defensive war. As the torture, aggression, in short, the persecutions suffered by the Moslems from the Koreish, are very clearly indicated by the word Jitnah in these two verses, the object of fighting or counterfighting by the Moslems is plainly set forth, which is to suppress the persecutions. They have clear reference to the persecution, to stop or remove which they enjoined fighting, and this was fighting in self-defence obviously. They also show that the Meccans had not desisted from persecuting and attacking the Moslems, and therefore a provision was made that if the}^ disconti- nue their incursions, there will be no more hostility. Ainee quoted and refuted. 125 This is quite sufficient to show that these verses relate to the defensive wars of Mohammad. Lastly, supposing the Koran permitted waging aggressive wars against the Mec- 101. All injunctions local and for the time caiis, who Were the first asrsfressors. being. ^ ' o& ' this does not corroborate the theory or principle of the Common Law of making lawful aggressive wars in future on the authority of these verses, as all of them in the Koran on the subject of w^ar relate only to Pagan Arabs, who had long perse- vered in their hostility to the early Moslems or to the Jews, who, being in league with the Moslems, went over to their enemies, and aided them against the Moslems. These verses are not bindino- on other persons, who are not under the same circum- stance as the Moslems were under, at Medina. [See para. 90.] Another commentator of the Hedaya, Ainee^ (who 102. Ainee quoted ^^^sd in 855) foUows Kifaya al- au re uted. ready quoted, and mentions some other verses of the Koran on the war of as^o-ression, which the author of Kifaya has left uncited in his work. They are as follow : — " Then do battle with the ringleaders of in- fidelity, — for no oaths are binding on them — that they may desist." — (Sura IX, 12.) ' Bhiayah, a commeutary of the Hcdinja, by Ainee. Vol. II, Part II, page 789. 126 Ainee quoted and refuted. " War is prescribed to you, but from this ye are averse."— (Sura II, 212. ) " March ye forth, the light and heavy, and contend with your substance and your persons on the Way of God."— (Sura IX, 41.) The first verse when it is complete runs thus : — " But if, after alliance made, they break their oaths and revile your religion, then do battle with the ring- leaders of infidelity, — for no oaths are binding on them — that they may desist ;" and fully shows by its wordins^ that it relates to the war of defence, as the breaking; of alliances, and revilino; of the j\Ioslem relio:ion were the o-rounds of makins: war with the So O object in view that the aggressors may desist. This verse is one of those in the beginning of the ninth Sura, which have already been discussed. — ( Vide pages 51 — 55.) The second verse (II, 212) does not allow a war of aggression, as the next verse (II, 214) expressly mentions the attacks made by the aggressors on the Moslems. It has been quoted at full length in page 18. The third verse (IX, 41) was published on the occasion of the expedition of Tabuk, which was cer- tainly a defensive measure, and has been discussed in pages 51 to 55. Sarakhsee generally entitled Shums-ul-a-imma (the 103. Sarakhsee quot- ^uu of the Leaders), who died in ed and refuted. r"7iAXJ xii n b^l A. M., as quoted by Ibn Saral-h.see quoted and refuted. 127 Abdeen in liis Radd-id-Muhtdi\^ makes several stages in publishing the injunctions for fighting. He writes : — ■ " Know thou, that the command for fighting has descended by degrees. First the Prophet was en- joined to proclaim and withdraw, ' Profess publicly then what thou hast been bidden and withdraw from those who join gods with God ' (XV, 94). Then he was ordered to dispute kindly ; ' Summon thou to the way of thy Lord with wisdom and with kindly warning : dispute with them in the kindest warning ' (XVI, 126). Then they were allowed to fight, 'A sanction is given to those who are fought ' ( XXII, 40). Then they were allowed to fight if they (the unbelievers) attacked them, ' If they attack you, then kill them' (II, 187). After this they were enjoined to fight on the condition of passing over the sacred months, ' And when the sacred months are passed, then kill the polytheists ' (IX, 5). After this they were enjoined to fight absolutely, ' And fightforthe cause of God....' (11,186, 245). And thus the matter was settled." There was no injunction for fighting absolutely or aggressively in the Koran. I have already ex- plained the 5th verse of the ninth Sura as not allow- ing an offensive war. And the same is the case with the 186th verse of the second Sura, which has in itself the condition of fighting against those only who fought against the Moslems. The other verse, 245th, > Part. Ill, page 219. 128 Ihn II ajar quoted and refuted. of the same Sura is restricted by tlie verse 186tli, (and is explained by the verse 245th), which refers to the defensive measures. This verse is quoted in page 19 of this work. 104. ibn Hajar Shahabudecn Ahmed-bm-Hajr quoted and refuted. M^\Cki WritCS : — "Fighting was prohibited before the Hegira, as the Prophet was enjoined only to preach and warn and to be patient in the persecutions of the unbelievers in order to conciliate them. After this, God gave sanction to the Moslems for fighting, (after that had been prohibited in seventy and odd verses), when the unbelievers were the aggressors, and said, ' And fio-ht for the cause of God ao-ainst those who fio-ht against you ' (II, 187). And it is a genuine tra- dition from Zohri that the first revealed verse sanc- tioning it was, ' A sanction is given to those who are fought, because they have suffered outrages ' (XXII, 40) : that is a sanction was given for fighting on the ground of the word ' fought.' Then the war of. aa:oTession was made lawful in other than the sacred months, ' When the sacred months are over ' (IX, 5). After this, in the eighth year of the Hegira, after the victory of Mecca, the fighting was enjoined absolutely by the words of God ; ' March ye forth, the light and the heavy' (IX, 41) ; and ' attack those who join gods with God in all ' (IX, 36). And this is the very verse of the sword, and some say the preceding verse is the verse of the Ihn Ilajar refuted. 129 sword, while others think that both bear on the same subject, i.e., of the sword."^ I have ah'eady explained the several verses quoted 105. ibn Hajar re- % ^^^ author in preceding paras., but have only to pass remarks on the only verse, i.e. (IX, 36), which the authors cited have not dared to mention, because it goes contrary to their assertion. Perhaps it is a slip in the rapidity of Ibn Hajar remarks, for which he may be excused. But I will not hesitate in saying that generally the Mohammadan legists, while quoting the Koran in support of their theories, quote some dislocated por- tion from a verse without any heed to its context, and thus cause a great and irreparable mischief by misleading others, especially the European writers, as it is apparent from the testimony of Mr. Lane quoted in para. 113 of this work. The verse referred to by the author mentioned in the last para., Ibn Hajar Makki, is as follows : " Attack those who join gods with God in all, as they attack you in all." — (IX, 36.) This sj^eaks evidently of the defensive war, and has not the slightest or faintest idea of a war of aggression on the part of the Mos- lems. This verse refers to the ex^^edition of Tabuk. Nooruddeen Ali al Halabi (died 1044 A. H.), the author of Insan-ul-Oyoon, a bio- 106. Halabi quoted. n i t* ^ graphy of the Prophet, writes : — " It is not hidden that the Prophet for ten and odd ' Tuhfatul Mtihtaj fi Sharah-al-Minhaj, Part IV, page 1.37. 130 Halahi quoted. years was warning and summoning people without fighting, and bearing patiently the severe persecutions of the Meccan Arabs and the Medinite Jews on him- self and on his followers, because God had enjoined him to warn and to have patience to bear the injuries by withholding from them, in accordance with His words, 'Withdraw from them' (Y, 46); and 'endure them with patience' (XVI, 128; XYIII, 27 ; XXXI, 16 ; LII, 48 ; and LXXIII, 10). He also used to promise them victory. His companions at Mecca used to come to him beaten and injured, and he used to tell them, ' Endure with patience, I am not commanded to fight,' because they were but a small party at Mecca. After this, when he was settled at Medina after the Heo:ira and his followers became numerous who preferred him to their fathers, children, and wives, and the unbelievers persisted in their idolatry, charging him with falsehoods, then God permitted his followers to fight, but against those only who used to fight against them (the Moslems), and were aggressors, as he said, ' If they fight you, then kill them' (II, 187). This was in the year of Safar A. H. 2.... Then the whole Arab host marched against the Moslems to fight against them from every direction. The Moslems passed whole nights in arms, and during the day they were in the same state, And longed to pass peaceful nights without fear from anybody except from God. Then it was revealed, 'God hath promised to those of Halahi quoted. 131 you who believe and do the things that are right, that he will cause them to succeed others in the land, as he gave succession to those v/ho were before them, and that He will establish for them that relicfion which they delight in, and after their fears He will give them security in exchange' (S. XXIV, 54). After this to attack first was allowed against those who had not fought, but in other than the sacred months, viz., Rajah, Zidkada, Zulhijja, and Mohur- ram, according to the precept, ' And when the sacred months are passed, kill those who join gods with God. . .' (IX, 5). Then the order became incum- bent after the victory of Mecca, in the next year, to fight absolutely without any restriction, without any regard to any condition and time, by the words of Grod, ' Attack those who join gods with God in all ' at any time (IX, 36). So it is known that the fighting was forbidden before the Hegira up to the month of Safar in its second year, as the Prophet was in this period ordered to preach and warn without any fighting, which was forbidden in seventy and odd verses. Then it was permitted to fight against o?ili/ those who fought against them. Then it was allowed to fight against those who fought aggressively in other than the sacred months. After this it was enjoined absolutely to wage war against them whether they did or did not fight, at all times, whether during the sacred months, or others of the year." ^ ' Insan-ul-Oi/oon, Part II, pp. 289, 291. Chapter on " Campaign." 132 Ainee again quoted and refuted. Neither the fifth verse of the nmth Sura, nor the thu^ty-sixth of the same, allowed 107. Hcalabi refuted. war of ao-o-ression. Both of them were published on the occasions of defensive wars, and the party against whom they were directed were the aggressors. All the verses quoted by Halabi, bearing on the subject, have been discussed and explained in the foregoing pages, from 92 to 106. Ainee, the author of the commentary on the Hedaya, 108. Ainee again called Binayah, in justifying the quoted and refuted. ^^^ ^f aggrcssiou against the un- believers, quotes two verses from the Koran, ^ and two traditions from the Prophet,^ and says, — "If it be objected that these absolute injunctions are restricted by the word of God, ' if they attack you, then kill them' (II, 187j, which shows that the fighting is only incumbent when the unbelievers are the aggres- sors in fighting, as it was held by Souri, the reply is that the verse was abrogated by another, ' So fight against them until there be no more perse- cution ' (II, 189), and ' fight against those who do not believe in God' (IX, 29)."^ But he is wrong in asserting that the verse II, 187 was abrogated by II, 189, and IX, 29. There is no authority for such a gratuitous assumption. And besides, both these ' Sura IX, 5 and 12. These verses have been discussed at pages 51 — 55. ^ " The Jihad will last till the day of the Resurrection." " I have been enjoined to fight the people until they confess there is no o"od but the God." For these traditions see the next para. ' Vide Ainee's Commentary of the Hedaya, Vol. II, Part II, p. 790. Traditions quoted and refuted. 133 verses (II, 189, and IX, 29) relate to defensive wars as it has been already explained in paras. 96 — 99. The verse 189 shows by its very wording the 109. Continuation existence oi fitnah or persecution, of the above. torture, and fighting on the part of the aggressors. By suppressing the Meccans' persecution, the Moslems had to regain their civil and religious liberty, from which they were so unjustly deprived. And this war of the Moslems to repel the force of their aggressors was the war of defence and protection enjoined in the verse. The 29th verse of the ninth Sura appertains to the expe- dition of Tdbuk, if not to that of Khyber. These expeditions were of a defensive character. Vide pages 37 and 41. The jurists further quote a tradition from the com- 110. Traditions pil^tion of Abu Daood that the quoted and refuted. Prophet had Said, "The Jihad will last up to the day of the Resurrection :" But in the first place, Jihad does not literally and classically mean warfare or fis-htino; in a war. It means, as used by the classical poets as well as by the Koran, to do one's utmost ; to labour ; to toil ; to exert one's- self or his power, efforts, endeavours, or ability ; to employ one's-self vigorously, diligently, studiously, sedulously, earnestly, or with energy ; to be diligent or studious, to take pains or extraordinary pains. Vide Appendix A. In the second place, Yezid bin Abi Shaiba, a link 134 Early Moslem Legists quoted. in the chain of the tradition, is a Mujhool,^ i.e., his biooraphy is not known, therefore his tradition can have no authority. There is also another tradition in Bokharee to the effect that the Prophet had said, " I have been en- joined to fight the people until they confess that there is no god but the God." This tradition goes quite contrary to the verses of the Koran which enjoin to fight in defence, — that is, until the persecu- tion or civil discord was removed. — ( Vide Sura II, 189 ; VIII, 40.) Thus it appears that either the whole tradition is a spurious one, or some of the narrators were wrong in interpreting the words of the Prophet. That the Koran did not allow war of ao-o-ression "o&" 111. Early Moslem either whcii it was rcvcalcd, or legists quoted against _ , ■■ . . Jihad. in future as the early juriscon- sults did infer from it, will be further shown from the opinions of the early Moslems ; legists of the first and second century of the Hegira, like Ibn (son of) Omar the second khalif, Sotian Souri, Ibn Shobor- mah, Ata, and Amar-bin-Dinar. All these early legists held that the fighting was not religiously incumbent (wdjib), and that it was only a voluntary act, and that only those were to be fought against who attacked the Moslems.^ ' Vide Ainee's Commentary of the Ilcdaya, Vol. II, Part II, p. 798. * Vide Kazee Budrudeen Mahmood bin Ahmed Ainee's (who died in 855 A. H.) Commentary on fhe Tledinja, called BintDj ah, and generally known by the name of Ainee, Vol. II, pp. 789-90, " Book of Institute." Biograpfilad .sketches of the Lecjlsts. 135 I will give here short biogra- Bkelches^oS'iiyi*.' rl"<:''l sketches of the legists named above — (1.) "Abu Abd-ur-Rahman Abdullah ibn Omar ibn-al Khattab was one of the most eminent amono; the companions of Muhammad by his piety, his generosity, his contempt of the world, his learning and his virtues. Though entitled by birth to aspire to the highest places in the empire, he never heark- ened to the dictates of ambition; possessing a vast influence over the Moslims by his rank, his instruc- tion, and his holy life, he neither employed nor abused it in favour of any party, and during the civil wars which rao:ed anions; the followers of Islamism, he remained neutral, solely occupied with the duties of religion. For a period of thirty years persons came from all parts to consult him and learn from him the Traditions .... He died at Mekka A.Ii. 73 (A.D. 692-3) aged 84 years . . . ." — \_Tahahat al Fohaha, fol. 5.] (2.) Ata Ibn Abi Rabah.— " He held a high rank at Mekka as a juris-consult, a Tdbi, and a devout ascetic; and he derived (his knowledge of the laic and the Traditions) from the lips of Jabir Ibn Abd Allah al- Ansari, and Abd Allah Ibn Abbas, Abd Allah Ibn Zubair, and many others of Muhammad's companions. His own authority as a traditionist was cited by Amr ibn Durar, Al-Aamash, Al-Auzdi, and a great num- ber of others who had heard him teach. The office 136 Biographical sketches of the Legists. of Mufti at Mekka devolved on him and on Mujahid, and was filled by them whilst they lived .... He died A. H. 115 (A.D. 733-4); some say 114 at the age of eighty-eight years." — \_lbn Khallikans Bio- graphical Dictionary, translated from the Arabic by Baron MacGucMn De Slane ; Vol. II, pp. 203-204. London, MDCCCXLIII'] (3.) Amr Ibn Dindr. — " He is comited among the most eminent of the Tabis, and considered as a traditionist of very highest authority. He was only one of the Mujatahid Imams. Died A. H. 126, (A.D. 743-4), aged eighty years." — [Tab-al-Fokaha'\. (4.) " Abd Allah Ibn Shuburma ibn Tufail ad Dubbi, a celebrated Imdm, and Tabi was an eminent jurisconsult of Kufa. He learned the Traditions from Ans, As-Shabi, and Ibn Sirni, and his own authority was cited for Traditions by Soffian Ath- Thauri, Sofyan ibn Oyaina, and others. His veracity and his eminence as a doctor of the law was univer- sally acknowledged. He was an abstemious, intelli- gent, devout, generous, of a handsome countenance, and possessing a talent for poetry. He acted under the Khalif Al-Mamuu, as kadi of the cultivated country (Sawad) around Kufa. Born A. H. 92, (A.D. 710-11); died A. H. 144 (A.D. 761-2)."— [Tabal-Fak. Al-Yafi.'] (5.) " Sofyan Ath-Thauri (As- Sauri) was native of Kiifa and a master of the highest authority in the Traditions and other sciences; his piety, devotion. European Wrilers' Mistake. 137 veracity, and contempt for worldly goods were uni- versally acknowledged, and as an Imdm, he is count- ed among the Mujtahids .... Sofyan ibn Oyaina declared that he did not know a man better informed than Soyfan Ath-Thauri respecting what was permitted and what was forbidden by the law .... Sofyan was born A. H. 95 (A.D. 713-4). Other accounts place his birth in 96 or 97. He died A. H 161 (A.D. 713-4) at Basra It has been stated by some that Sofyan died A. H. 162, but the first is the true date." — \_Ibn Khallihan^s Bio- graphical Dictionary, translated from the Arabic by Baron MacGucJcin De Slane, Vol. I, pp. 576 — 8. Lo?idon, MDCCCXLIIL'] "^hat it is a mistake on the j)art of the European 113. European wri- Writers to asscrt that the Koran ters' mistake. allows wars of aggrcssiou, or in other words, to wage war against the unbelievers without any provocation, is shown by the testimony of Mr. Urquhart and Mr. Edward William Lane. The latter writes : " Misled by the decision of those doctors, and an opinion prevalent in Europe, I re- presented the laws of ' holy war ' as more severe than I found them to be according to the letter and spirit of the Kur-an, when carefully examined, and accord- ing to the Hanafee code. I am indebted to Mr. Urqu- hart for suggesting to me the necessity of revising my former statement on the subject; and must express my conviction that no precept is to be found in the s 138 Sir William Miiir quoted. Kur-an, which, taken with the context, can justify unprovoked war."^ I will quote several remarks of European writers, lu. Sir William including clergymen and Indian Muir quoted, missionaries, to show how astray they go in attributing to the Koran and Moham- mad the wars of aggressions and compulsory pro- selytizing. Sir William Muir represents the prin- ciples of Islam as requiring constant prosecutions of war, and writes — " It was essential to the permanence of Islam that its aggressive course should be continuously pursued, and that its claim to an universal acceptance, or at the least to an universal supremacy, should be enforced at the point of the sword. Within the limits of Arabia the work appeared now to be accomplished. It remained to gain over the Christian and idolatrous tribes of the Syrian desert, and then in the name of the Lord to throw down the gauntlet of war before the empires of Rome and Persia, which, having treated with contempt the summons of the Prophet addressed to them in solemn warning four years ago, were now rife for chastisement." ^ The occasion to which Sir W. Muir refers here was to wipe out the memory of the reverse at Muta. The expedition to Muta was occasioned by the ' The Modern Egyptians, by Edward William Lane; Vol. I, p. 117, 7iotc : fifth edition, London, 1871. ^ Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, pp. 251-252. Islam not aggressice. 139 murder of a messenger or envoy dispatched by Mohammad to the Ghassanide prince at Bostra. A party was sent to punish the offending chief, Sharah- bil. This could, by no means, be maintained as a warhke spirit or an aggressive course for the prosecution of war, or for enforcing the claim of universal supremacy at the point of the sword. That Islam as preached by Mohammad was never 115, Islam not ag- aggrcssivc has been fully shown ^^^^^^^®' in several places of the Koran. Darmg the whole time of his ministry, Mohammad was persecuted, rejected, despised and at last made an outlaw by the Koreish at Mecca, and a fugitive seeking protection in a distant city ; exiled, attacked upon, besieged, defeated, and prevented from return- ing to Mecca or visiting the Holy Kaaba by the same enemies at Mecca and other surrounding tribes who had joined them, and even from within Medina plotted against by the Jews who were not less aggressive towards him than their confederates of Mecca, the Koreish, whom they had instigated to make war on him and had brouo;ht an overwhelmino- army, had proved traitors, and even more injurious than the Koreish themselves. Consequently, he was constantly in dangers and troubles, and under such circumstances it was impossible for him to be aggressive, to get time or opportunity to pursue any aggressive course, or enforce, at the point of the sword, any attempt of his for universal acceptance, 140 Mr. Freeman quoted. or universal supremacy even if he had designed so. But it was far from his principles to have cherished the object of universal conquest. "That Islam ever stepped beyond the limits of Arabia and its border lands," admits Sir. W. Muir in his Rede Lecture for 1881, just twenty years after he had written the passage I am dealing with, "was due to circumstances rather than design. The faith was meant originally for the Arabs. From first to last, the call was addressed primarily to them. " He writes in a foot- note of the same lecture (page 5) : " It is true that three or four years before, Mahomet had addressed dispatches to the Kaiser, and the Cliosroes, and other neighbouring potentates, summoniEg them to em- brace the true faith. But the step had never been followed up in any way."^ 116. Mr. Freeman ^r. Freeman writes regarding quoted. Mohammad :— " Mahomet had before him the example of Mosaic Law, which preached a far more rigorous mandate of extermination against the guilty nations of Canaan. He had before him the practice of all surrounding powers. Christian, Jewish, and Heathen ; though, from the disaffection of Syria and Egypt to the orthodox throne of Constantinople, he might have learned how easily persecution defeats its own end .... Under ^ The Early Caliphate and Rise of Islam, being the Rede Lecture for 1881, delivered before the University of Cambridge by Sir William Muir, K.C.S.I., LL.D., page 5, London, 1881. Tlie Revd. Stephens quoted. 141 his circumstances, it is really no very great ground to condemnation that he did appeal to the sword. He did no more than follow the precedents of his own and every surrounding nation. Yet one might say that a man of such mighty genius as Mahomet must have been, might have been, fairly expected to rise superior to the trammels of prejudice and precedent." ^ Mohammad never professed to have followed the footsteps of Moses and Joshua in waging war of extermination and proselytism. He only appealed to the sword in his and his followers' defence. Never he seems to have been anxious to copy the practice of the surrounding nations. Christians, Jews, and Egyptians. His wars of defence, as they certainly all were, were very mild, specially with regard to the treatment of children, women, and old men who were never to be attacked ; and above all, in the mildness shown towards the captives of war who were either to be set free or ransomed, — but were never to be enslaved, — contrary to the practice of all the sur- rounding nations. This virtual abolition of slavery (vide Sura XLVII, 5, and Appendix B) has, been a great boon to mankind in general as a beneficial result of Mohmamad's wars of defence. 117. The Revd. The Revcrcnd Mr. Stephens Stephens quoted. writCS : " In the Koran, the Mussulman is absolutely and ' The Histoiy and Conquests of the Saracens, by Edward A. Freeman, D.C.L., LL.D,, pp. 41-42 ; London, 1877. 142 The Revel. Stephens quoted. positively commanded to make war upon all those who decline to acknowledge the Prophet until they submit, or, in the case of Jews and Christians, purchase exemption from the conformity by the payment of tribute. The mission of the Mussulman, as declared in the Koran, is distinctly aggressive. We might say that Mahomet bequeathed to his disciples a roving commission to propagate his faith by the employment of force where persuasion failed. ' Prophet, fight for the religion of God ' — ' Stir up the faithful to war,' such are commands which Mahomet believed to be given him by God. ' Fight asfainst them who believe not a God, nor the last day,' ' attack the idolatrous in all the months,' such are his own exhortations to his disciples."^ The Reverend gentleman is very much mistaken in his assertions ao-ainst the Koran. There is no absolute or positive command in the Koran for a war of aggression or compulsory proselytism. The sen- tences quoted by Mr. Stephens are but mutilated verses forcibly dislocated from their context. A dis- jointed portion of a verse, or a single sentence of it cannot be brought forth to prove any doctrine or theory. Due regard must be made for the context, the general scope, and parallel passages. The verses referred to by Mr. Stephens are Sura lY, 86, and ' Christianity and Islam ; The Bible and the Koran ; by the Rev. W. R. W. Stephens, Loudon, 1877, pp. 98-99. ^[)'. Bosioorth Smith quoted. 148 Sura IX, 29, 3G. All these have been quoted in full and discussed elsewhere.^ They relate only to defensive wars, s^ii'th ,Jotk.''""""' Mr. BoswortU Smith says :- " The free toleration of the purer among the creeds around him, which the Prophet had at first enjoined, gradually changes into intolerance. Persecuted no longer, Mohammed becomes a persecutor himself; with the Koran in one hand, the scymitar in the other, he goes forth to offer to the nations the threefold alternative of conversion, tribute, death." ^ Mohammad never changed his practice of tolera- tion nor his own teachings into intolerance ; he was always persecuted at Mecca and Medina, but, for all we know, he himself never turned a persecutor. The three-fold alternative so much talked of, and so little proved, is nowhere to be found in the Koran. This subject has been fully discussed in paras. 34 — 39. Mr. George Sale, in his celebrated preliminary dis- 119. Mr. G. Sale course to the translation of the '^'^''^^^' Koran, writes, referring to the thirteenth year of Mohammad's mission : — " Hitherto Mohammed had propagated his religion by fair means, so that the whole success of his enterprise, before his flight to Medina, must be attri- ' Vide paras. 17, 29, 126. ^ Mohammed aud Mohammedanism. Lectures delivered at the Royal Institution of Great Britain in February and March 1871, by R. Bos- worth Smith, M.A., Second Edition, page 137 ; London, 1876. 144 Mr. G. Sale quoted. bated to persuasion only, and not to compulsion. For before this second oath of fealty or inauguration at al Akaba, he had no permission to use any force at all ; and in several places of the Koran, which he pretended were revealed during his stay at Mecca, he declares his business was only to preach and ad- monish ; that he had no authority to compel any person to embrace his religion ; and that whether people believed or not, was none of his concern, but belonged solely to Grod. And he was so far from allowing his followers to use force, that he exhorted them to bear patiently those injuries w^hich were offered them on account of their faith ; and when persecuted himself chose rather to quit the place of his birth and retire to Medina, than to make any resistance. But this great passiveness and modera- tion seems entirely owing to his want of power and the great superiority of his oppressors for the first twelve years of his mission ; for no sooner was he enabled by the assistance of those of Medina to make head against his enemies, than he gave out, that God had allowed him and his followers to defend themselves against the infidels ; and at length, as his forces increased, he pretended to have the divine leave even to attack them, and to destroy idolatry, and set up the true faith by the sword ; finding by experience that his designs would otherwise proceed very slowly, if they were not utterly overthrown, and knowing on the other hand that innovators, when they depend Mr. G. Sale quoted. 145 solely on their own strength, and can compel, seldom ran any risk ; from whence, the politician observes, it follows, that all the armed prophets have succeeded, and the unarmed ones have failed. Moses, Cyrus, Theseus and Romulus would not have been able to establish the observance of their institutions for any length of time had they not been armed. The first passage of the Koran, which gave Mohammed the permission of defending himself by arms, is said to have been that in the twenty- second chapter : after which a great number to the same purpose were revealed. " That Mohammed had a right to take u]^ arms for his own defence against his unjust persecutors, may perhaps be allowed ; but whether he ought after- wards to have made use of that means for the estab- lishing of his religion, is a question which I will not here determine. How far the secular power may or ought to interpose in affairs of this nature, mankind are not agreed. The method of converting by the sword gives no very favourable idea of the faith which is so propagated, and is disallowed by every body in those of another religion, though the same persons are willing to admit of it for the advance- ment of their own ; supposing that though a false religion ought not to be established by author- ity, yet a true one may ; and accordingly force is as constantly employed in these cases by those who have the power in their hands as it is con- 14G Major Osborn quoted. stantly complained of by those who suffer the violence."^ I do not agree with these words of Mr. George Sale regarding Mohammad, " and at length, as his forces increased, he pretended to have the divine leave even to attack them, and to destroy idolatry, and set lip the true faith by the sword ; " he never attacked the Koreish or others except in his own defence. The destruction of idolatry was the chief mission of Mohammad, and that even was not resorted to by force of arms. There were neither compulsory con- versions nor his history points to any extirpation of the idolaters at the point of sword from their native countries, as the chief objects of his mission. The persecutions and civil discord were to be re- moved or put a stop to, and force was used to repel force, but nothing more. Conversion by the sword was not enforced on any proselyte by Mohammad. Major Osborn has drawn a very dark picture of 120. Major Osborn what he calls " The Doctriiic of ^^^^^^ ' Jehad," in his Islam under the Arahs.^ The defensive wars of Mohammad are ex- plained by him as " means of livelihood congenial to the Arab mind, and carrying with it no stain of dis- grace or immorality. This was robbery. Why ' The Koran, by George Sale. The " Chandos Classics." The Prelimi- nary Discourse, Section II, pp. .37-38. ^ London : Longmans, Green & Co., 1876, pp. 4G-51. Major O^horn quoted. 147 should not tlie faithful eke out then* scanty means by adopting this lucrative and honourable profession, which was open to everyone who had a sword and knew how to use it ? Surely, to despoil these infidels and employ their property to feed the hungry and clothe the naked among the people of God, would be a work well pleasing in His sight . . . And thus was the first advance made in the conversion of the relio-ion of Islam with the religion of the sword " (pages 46-47). After this the Major writes again : " The ninth Sura is that which contains the Prophet's proclamation of war against the votaries of all creeds other than that of Islam " (page 52). Then he quotes several verses, some of them half sentences, violently distorted, from the eighth and ninth Suras, in a con- secutive form, without giving the numbers. These are Sura IX, 20, 34, 35, 82, 121 ; Sura VIII, 67 ; Sura IX, 36, 5, 29, 19 ; Sura XLVII, 4 ; Sura IX, 5 ; and Sura VIII, 42. Lastly, the learned Major concludes by saying, — " Such was the character of the Sacred War enjoined upon the Faithful. It is Muhammad's greatest achievement and his worst. When subjected himself to the pains of persecution he had learned to perceive how powerless were torments applied to the body to work a change of conviction in the mind. ' Let there be no violence in relio-ion ' had then been one of the maxims he had laid down. 'Unto every one of you,' he had said in former da3^s, speaking of Jews and Christians, ' have we 148 Major Oshorn refuted. given a law, and an open path ; and if God had pleased He had surely made you one people ; but He hath thought fit to give you different laws, that he might try you in that w^liich He hath given you respectively. Therefore, strive to excel each other in good works ; unto God shall ye all return, and then will He declare unto you that concerning which ye have disagreed.' But the intoxication of success had lono^ aojo stilled the voice of his better self. The aged Prophet standing on the brink of the grave, and leaving as his last legacy a mandate of universal war, irresistibly recalls, by force of contrast, the parting words to his disciples of another religious teacher that they should go forth and preach a gospel of peace to all nations. Nor less strikmg in their contrast is the response to either mandate ; — the Arab, with the Koran in one hand and the sword in the other, spreading his creed amid the glare of burning cities, and the shrieks of violated homes, and the Apostles of Christ working in the moral darkness of the Roman world with the gentle but irresistible power of light, laying anew the foundations of society, and cleansing at their source the polluted springs of domestic and national life." The learned author quoted above has either misun- 121. Major Osborn dcrstood the character of the wars ^^ " ^ ■ of the Prophet of Islam, or has grossly misrepresented it. He errs in two points : First, he makes the wars as w^ars of conquest, com- pulsion, and aggression, whereas they were all Major Odiorn refuted. 149 undertaken in the defence of the civil and religious rights of the early Moslems, who were, as I have said before, persecuted, harassed, and tormented at Mecca for their religion, and after a long period of perse- cation with occasional fresh and vigorous measures, were condemned to severer and harder sufFerino-g, were expelled from their homes, leaving their dear relations, and religious brethren to endure the cala- mities of the persecution, and while taking refuge at Medina were attacked upon by superior numbers, several of the surrounding tribes of Arabs and Jews joining the aggressive Koreish, making runious in- roads and threatening the Moslems with still greater and heavier miseries. From this statement it will appear that these wars were neither of conquest nor of compulsory conversion. The second great mistake under which Major Osborn seems to labour is that he takes the injunctions of war against the Meccans or other aggressors as a general obligation to wage war against all unbelievers in the Moslem faith. In fact, these injunctions were only against those aggressors who had actually committed great encroachments on the rights and liberties of the early Moslems, and had inflicted very disastrous injuries on them. These injunctions had and have nothing to do with the future guidance of the Moslem world. It is a great misrepresentation on the part of Major 122. Theixth Sura Osbom to assert that "the ninth of the Koran. o • i.i i. i • i l ' ^.i oura 18 that which contains the 1,50 IXth Sura of the Konm. Prophet's proclamation of war against the votaries of all creeds other than that of Islam." No statement could be farther from truth than this of his. The ninth Sura, or, more correctly, the beginning or open- ing verses of it, contain the Prophet's proclamation of war ao-ainst those of the Meccan idolaters, who, in vio- lation of the treaty of Hodeibia, had attacked the Moslems.— (Sura IX, 4, 8, 10, 12 & 13, vide pages 23- 25.) They were allowed four months' time (IX, 2, 5) to make terms. They submitted, and Mecca was taken by compromise, in consequence of which the threatened war was never waged. Those who had not broken their treaties were especially mentioned, with whom the proclamation or the period allowed for peace had no connection. — ( Vide Sura IX, 4, 7, quoted above, pages 23-24.) Thus it is quite clear that the proclamation of war was only against the violators and aggressors, and not against the votaries of all creeds other than that of Islam. I have further discussed the ninth Sura in para. 40 of this work. The other verses of this Sura refer to the expedition of Tabiik, which was purely defensive in its nature as has been described in para. 33 of this book. (See also para. 42.) The Reverend E. II. Wherry, ^l. A., in his note 123. The Reverend ^^^ bale's Preliminary Discourse, Wherrv quoted. co^'c • Stl_) S . " Though Muhammad undoubtedly took Moses as his pattern, and supposed himself following in his Tlie Reverend Wherry quoted. 151 footsteps when he gave the command to liglit against the infidels, yet there is no comparison between them whatever so far as warring against infidels is con- cerned. The Israelites were commanded to slay the Canaanites as divinely ordained instruments of des- truction ; but Muhammad inaugurated war as a means of proselytism. The Israelite was not permitted to proselytize from among the Canaanites, (Exod. XXIII. 27 — 33), but Muslims are required to proselytize by sword-power." ^ Mohammad never had said that he did follow the footsteps of Moses in giving the command of fighting in self-defence, and in repelling force by force. There could be no comparison whatsoever between the wars of Moses, which were merely wars of conquest, aggres- sion, extermination, and expatriation, and those of Mohammad waged only in self-defence. Mohammad did not inaugurate his career by prosecuting war as a means of proselytism, and never did proselytized any one by the sheer strength of the sword. Mr. T. H. Home, M.A., writes regarding the extirpation of the Canaanites : — • " After the time of God's forbearance was expired, they had still the alternative, either to flee elsewhere, as in fact, many of them did, or to surrender them- selves, renounce their idolatries, and serve the God ' A Comprehensive Commentary on the Quran ; comprising Sale's Trans- lation and Preliminary Discourse, with additional Notes and Emendations, by the Revd. E. M. Wherry, M.A.. page 220 ; London : Trubner & Co., 1882. 152 Exainple cited from Jewish History. of Israel. Compare Deut. XX. 10—17."' This was certainly compulsory conversion and prosely- tizing at the point of the sword. There is only one instance in the Koran in which 124. Example cited ^^^ example is citcd for the war from the Jewish history, ^f defence by Mohammad, from the Jewish History. It is the asking of the children of Israel their prophet Samuel to raise up a king for them to fight in their defence against the Philistines, who had very much oppressed the Israelites. Saul was appointed king over the Israelites, and David killed Goliath, called Jdlut in the Koran, which was in defence of the Israelites. I have quoted the verses relating to the above subject from the Koran (Sura II, 2-i7 and 252) in page 19th of this work. " Hast thou not considered the assembly of the children of Israel after the death of Moses, when they said to a prophet of theirs, — ' Raise up for us a king ; we will do battle for the cause of God ? ' He said, ' May it not be that when fighting is ordained you, ye would not fight ?' They said, ' And why should we not fight in the cause of God, since we are driven forth from our dwellings and our children ?'.... This shows that what the Koran or Mohammad took as an example from the history of the Jews was only their defensive war. ' An Introduction to the Critical Study and Knowledg-e of the Holy Scripture, by Thomas Hartwell Home, Esq., M.A. Vol. II, page 524 ; London. 1828. Mosaic Injunctions. 153 It is very unfoir of the Christians to make too 10- TVT n-. • •„,.. much of the wars of Mohammad, l2o. JJlosaic injunc- ' *^*^"^- which were purely of a defensive nature, and offer apologies for the most cruel wars of conquest and extermination by Moses, Joshua and other Jewish worthies under the express commands of God. — {Vide Numbers XXXI ; Deut. XXI, &c.) But see what Mr. Wherry says. He writes in his comments on the 191 verse of the second Sura of the Koran. " (191). Kill them, cj'c. Much is made of expres- sions like this, by some Christian apologists, to show the cruel character of the Arabian prophet, and the inference is thence drawn that he was an impostor and his Quran a fraud. Without denying that Muhammad was cruel, we think this mode of assault to be very unsatisfactory to say the least, as it is capable of being turned against the Old Testament Scriptures. If the claim of Muhammad to have received a divine command to exterminate idolatry by the slaughter of all impenitent idolaters be admitted, I can see no objection to his practice. The question at issue is this. Did God command such slaughter of idolaters, as he commanded the destruc- tion of the Canaanites or of the Amalekites ? Taking the stand of the Muslim, that God did so command Muhammad and his followers, his morality in this respect may be defended on precisely the same ground u 154 The Revd. T. P. Hughes quoted. that the morality of Moses and Joshua is defended by the Christian." ^ The Revd. T. P. Hughes in Hughes quoted.^ ' -^^^^ Notes on Muhammadanism writes : — " Jihad (lit, ' an effort') is a religious war against the infidels, as enjoined by Muhammad in the Quran." Surat-un-Nisa (VI.) *•■ Fight therefore for the religion of God." ******* *' God hath indeed promised Paradise to every one. But God hath preferred those \f\io Jight for the faith." (IV, 97. ) Surat-ul-Muhammad (XL VII). " Those who fight in the defence of God's trne religion, God will not suffer their works to perish." (XL VII, 5.)^ The first verse quoted by Mr. Hughes appertains to the war of defence. The verse in itself has express indications of its relating to the war of defence, but Mr. Hughes was not inclined, perhaps, to copy it in full. He merely quotes half a sentence, and shuts his eyes from other words and phrases of the same verse. The verse has been quoted in page 20. It is as follows : — " Fight then on the path of God : lay not burdens on any but thyself ; and stir up the faithful. The powers of the infidels, God will haply restrain ; for ' Commentary on the Quran by the Revd. Wherry, page 3.58. 2 Notes on Muhammadanism ; beiug Outlines of the Eeligious System of Islam, by the Revd. T. P. Hughes, M.R.A.S., C.M.S., Missionary to the Afghans, page 206 ; Second Edition, 1877. Meaning of Jihad. 155 God is stronger in i)rowess, and stronger to punish." —(Sura IV, 86.) The severe persecution, the intense torture and mighty aggression of the Meccans and their allies is referred to in the original word Bass, rendered prowess into English and referred to in the previous verse 77, which shows that the war herein enjoined was to restrain the aggressions of the enemy and to repel force by force. It is very unfair on the part of the Revd. T. P. Huo-hes to twist or dislocate half a sentence from a verse and put it forth to demonstrate and prove a certain object of his. The second verse quoted by the same author is a 127. Meaning of nicre mistranslation. There is no ^ ^ ■ such word in the original which admits of beino^ rendered as " fio-htino-." The true translation of the sentence quoted above from Sura lY, verse 97, is as follows: — " Good promises hath he made to all. But God hath assigned to the strenuous a rich recompense above those who sit still at home." The word rendered " strenuous " is originally "mojahid " (plural "Mojahidin," from Jihad), which in classical Arabic and throughout the Koran means to do one's utmost, to make effort, to strive, to exert, to employ one's- self diligently, studiously, sedulously, earnestly, zealously, or with energy, and does not mean fighting or warfare. It was subsequently applied 156 Sura XLVIT, v. 5. to religious war, but was never used in tlie Koran in sucli a sense. ( Vide Appendix A.) The third instance quoted by Mr. Hughes is also a mistranslation of a sentence in 128. Sura XLVII, V. 5. verse 5, Sura XLYII. The origi- nal word is "i('OfeM," which means "those who are killed, ^^ and not " those who fight,' ^ as explained and translated by the author. The correct rendering of the sentence is this : " And those who are killed, their work God will not suffer to miscarr}^." Some read the word ^'Mtalu," which means "those who fought," but the general and authorized reading is " kotelii,'^ i.e., "those who are killed." Even if it be taken for granted that the former is the correct reading, it will be explained by several other verses which mean fighting in defence, and not fighting aggressively, which not only has been never taught in the Koran but is always prohibited (II, 186). The verse- to that effect runs thus: — " And fight for the cause of God against those who fight against you ; but commit not the injustice of attacking them first. Verily God loveth not the unjust."— (II, 186.) This verse permitted only defensive war and pro- hibited every aggressive measure. All other verses ' mentioned in connection with fighting on the part of ' the Moslems must be interpreted in conformity i with this. Tlte Rev. Malcolm Mac Coll quoted. 157 i2i). Tbe Rev. Mr. TliG Rev. Malcolui MacColl Mtilcoliii MacColl quot- ed, writes : — "Tbe Koran divides the earth into parts : Dar-ul- Islam, or the House of IsLam ; and Dar-ul-Harb, or the House of the enemy. All who are not of Islam are thus against it, and it is accordingly the duty of the True Believers to fio"ht asjainst the infidels till they accept Islam, or are destroyed. This is called the Djihad or Holy War, which can only end with the conversion or death of the last infidel on earth. It is thus the sacred duty of the Commander of the Faithful to make war on the non-Mussulman world as occasion may off'er. But Dar-ul-Harb, or the non-Mussulman world, is subdivided into Idolaters and Ketabi, or ' People of the Book,' — i.e., people who possess divinely inspired Scriptures, namely, Jews, Samaritans, and Christians. All the inhabit- ants of Dar-ul-Harb are infidels, and consequently outside the pale of Salvation. But the Ketabi are entitled to certain privileges in this world, if they submit to the conditions which Islam imposes. Other infidels must make their choice between one of two alternatives — Islam or the sword. The Ketabi are allowed a third alternative, namely, submission and the payment of tribute. But if they refuse to submit, and presume to fight against the True Be- lievers, they lapse at once into the condition of the 158 Conclusion. rest of Dar-ul-Harb, and may be summarily put to death or sold as slaves."^ I am very sorry the Rev. gentleman is altogether wrono; in his assertions ao-ainst the Koran. There is neither such a division of the world in the Koran, nor such words as " Dar-ul-Islam " and "Dar-ul- Harb " are to be found anywhere in it. There is no injunction in the Koran to the True Believers to fight against the infidels till they accept Islam, fail- ing which they are to be put to death. The words " Dar-ul-Islam" and " Dar-ul-Harb" are only to be found in the Mohammadan Common Law, and are only used in the question of jurisdiction. No Mos- lem magistrate will pass a sentence in a criminal case against a criminal who had committed an offence in a foreign country. The same is the case in civil courts.^ All the inhabitants of Dar-ul-Harb are not necessarily infidels. Mohammadans, either permanent- ly or temporarily by obtaining permission from the sovereign of the foreign land, can be the inhabitants of a Dar-ul-Harb, a country out of the Moslem jurisdiction, or at war with it. It is only a theory of our Common Law, in its 130. The untenable military and political chapters, theories of the Common Law and conclusion. wllicll allow Waging UUprOVokcd ' The Nineteenth Century ; London, December 1877, page 832. ^ This subject has been fully treated in my "The Proposed Political, Legal, and Social Reforms in Moslem States," pp. 22 — 25 : Bombay Edu- cation Society Press, 1883. Conclusion. 159 war with non- Moslems, exacting tribute from "the people of the Book ," and other idolaters, except those of Arabia, for which the Ilanafi Code of the Common Law has nothino- short of conversion to Islam or destruction by the sword. As a rule, our canonical legists support their theories by quotations from the Mohammadan Revealed Law, i.e., the Koran, as well as from the Sonnah, or the traditions from the Pro- phet, however absurd and untenable may be their process of reasoning and argumentative deductions. In this theory of waging war with, and exacting tribute or the capitation-tax from, the non-Moslem world, they quote the 9tli and other Suras. These verses have been copied and explained elsewhere in this book. The casuistic sophistry of the cano- nical leo'ists in deducino; these war theories from the Koran is altogether futile. These verses relate only to the w^ars waged by the Prophet and his followers purely in their self-defence. Neither these verses had anything to do with waging unprovoked war and exacting tributes during Mohammad's time, nor could they be made a law for future military conquest. These were only temporary in their oper- ations and purely defensive in their nature. The Mohammadan Common Law is by no means divine or superhuman. It mostly consists of uncertain traditions, Arabian usages and customs, some frivo- lous and fortuitous analogical deductions from the 160 Suras XLVIII, v. 16; XL VII, vv. 4 and 5. Koran, and a multitudinous array of casuistical so- phistry of the canonical legists. It has not been held sacred or unchangeable by enlightened Moham- madans of any Moslem country and in any age since its compilation in the fourth century of the Hejira. All the Mujtaluds, AM Hadis, and other non- Mokallids had had no regard for the four schools of Mohammadan religious jurisprudence, or the Common Law. Sura XLVIII, 16, is not generally quoted by the Sura XLVIII, 16. and Canonical legists in support of SuraXLVII,4and5. ^j^^-^ ^^^^^.^ ^f j^j^^^^l^ 1^^^ 1^^ some few. It is not in the shape of a command or injunction ; it is in a j)rophetical tone : — • " Say to those Arabs of the desert who stayed behind. Ye shall be called forth against a people of mighty valour ; Ye shall do battle with them, or they shall submit {Yoslemoony . . . ." ' Sir W. Muir, with other European translators of the Koran, trans- lates the word " they shall profess Islam" (The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 39, footnote). It ought to be translated '• they shall submit." There is a difference of opinion among the commentators and canonical legists in this word. Some translate the word Yodemootb '• shall profess Islam," and others ■' shall submit." This difference in the interpretation of the same word is merely of a sectarian nature, each party wishing to serve their own purpose. Those legists who held that the poly- theists and idolaters may either be fought against or be submitted to the authority of Islam by being tributaries, took the word in its proper sense of submission. Those who held that " the people of the Book " ought only to be made tributaries, while all other idolaters and poly- Sura XLVH, vv. 4 and 5. 161 Tlie verses 4 and 5 of Siira XLYIT, like all other verses on the subject, appertain to the wars of defence, and no one has ever quoted them for wars of aggression. These verses have already been quoted at page 85. The aboUtion of the future slavery as enjoined in the 5th verse has been treated separately in Appendix B. The Arabs, like other barbarous nations round them, used either to kill the prisoners of war or to ensLave them ; but this injunction of the Koran abohshed both of these barbarous prac- tices. The prisoners henceforward were neither to be killed nor enslaved, but were to be set at liberty with or without ransom. theists should be compelled either to perish or to embrace Islam, interpret the word technically to mean the religion of Islam. But as the verse is not a legal command, we condemn at once the casuistic sophistry of the legists. W gip^ndix % ON THE WORD "JIHAD" AS OCCURRING IN THE KORAN AND WRONGLY TRANSLATED "WARFARE." 1. The popular word Jilidd or Jilul, occurring in several passages of the Koran, and generally Jihad or Jihd does ■»• o ^ ^ a j not mean war or cru- construed by Christians and Moslems sade. alike- as meaning hostility or the wag- ing of war against infidels, does not classically or literally signify war, warfare, hostility or fighting; and is never used in such a sense in the Koran. The Arabic terms for warfare or fio-htiiio- are Harab and Kitdl. 2. The words Jahada and Jdhada signify that a person Classical meaning of strove, laboured or toiled ; exerted ^ ' '^'^' himself or his power, or efforts, or endeavours, or ability ; emi)loyed himself vigorously, dili- gently, studiously, sedulously, earnestly or with energy; was diligent or studious, took pains or extraordinary pains ^; for example, the term Jdhada fil-amr signifies that a ])erson did his utmost or used his utmost powers, or ' The Sihah of Jouhari (who died 397 or 398), the Asas of Zamakh- shire (born 467, died 538 A.H.), Lisanul-Arab of Ibn Mokarr.am (born 030, died 711), and Kamoos of Fyrozabadee (born 729, died 816), i-jrfe Lane's Arabic-English Lexicon, Book I, Part II, page 473. 164 Meaning of Jihad. efforts, or endeavours, or ability in prosecuting an affair.^ The infinitive noun Jihddan also means clifSculty or embar- rassment, distress, afHietion, trouble, inconvenience, fatigue, or weariness,^ Jauharee, a lexicologist of great repute, whose work is confined to classical terms and their signifi- cations, says in his Sihdh that Jdliada fi Saheelillah or Mojdhadatan and Jihddan and aho A jtcdiada and Tajdhada mean expending power and effort. Fayoomee, author of Mishahel Moneer, which contains a very large collection of classical words and phrases of frequent occurrence, also says that Jdhadaji Saheelillah Jihddan and Ajtahada fit Anir mean he expended his utmost efforts and power in seeking to attain an object. 3. It is only a post-classical and technical meaning of Jihdd to use the word as signifying Post-classical or tech- nical meaning of Ji- fighting against an enemy. Mr. Lane says, " Jahada came to be used by the Moslems to signify generally he fought, ivarred or waged war against unbelievers and the like." This signification is now given by those lexicologists who do not restrict them- selves to the definition of classical terms or significations, like the author of Kamoos. Mr. Lane, the celebrated author of Maddool Kamoos, an Arabic-English lexicologist, clearly shows that the definition of Jihdd, as the act of waging war, is only of Moslem origin and is not classical. And I will show in sequence that the Moslem usage of ' The Misbah by Fayoomee (finished 734 A. H.), tide Lane's Arabic- English Lexicon, Book I, Part II, page 473. * Sihah, Asas, Ibnel Atheer Jezree, author of Nihayeh (died GOG), the Mvighrib of Almotarrazi (born 536, died 610), the Misbah and Kamoos, ■vide Lane, ibid, page 474. Classes of Arabian Poets. 165 Jihad, as signifyiug the waging of war, is a post-Koranic usage, and that in the Koran it is used classically and literally in its natural sense. 4. What is called the classical laTiguage of Arabia or The Classical tongue ^he logJuit, and is an authority for aud Arabian xioets. ^.|-jg genuineness of the Arabic terms and their significations, is the language which was spoken throughout the whole of the Peninsula previous to the appearance of Mohammad. After the death of Mohammad the language was rapidly corrupted by the introduction of foreign words. This was doubtless owdng to the great extension of the Mohammadan power at this period. The classical poets are those who died before these great con- quests were effected, and are the most reliable authorities for Arabic words and their significations, and they are called Jdhili. Next to the classical poets are the post- classical, or Mokhadrams, Isldmi and Moiuallads. Mokha- dram is a poet who lived partly before and partly after Mohammad, and who did not embrace Islamism during the life of the Prophet. The Islami poets are the Moham- madan poets of the first and second centuries of the Hejira, and Mowallads, the poets of the fourth rank, fol- lowed the Islamis. The earliest classical poets date only a century before the birth of Mohammad, and the latest, about a century after his death. The period of the Islami poets is the first and second centuries, — i.e., those who lived after the first corruption of the Arabic language, but before the corruption had become extensive. The Mowallads co-existed with the general and rapid corruption of the language from the beginning or middle of the second century. 166 Jahd and Jihad. 5. The words Jahd and Jilidd and tlieir derivations, amounting to fourteen in number, The conjugation and declension of Jahd and occur in the foUowing passages in the Jihad, Koran : — " Jahada" " Jabaddka " " Jabadoo " Cbapter xxis, 5 ; ix, 19. 4. " Yojabido " 5. " Yojabidoona " 6. " Yojabidoo " 7. " Tojahidoona " 8. '' Jibad " 8.* " Jubd " 9.* "Jobd" 10. "Jiihid" 11. '' Jabidboom " 12. "Mojabidiua" 13. " Mojabidoona' 14. " Jabidoo " Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. Do. xxxi, 14 ; xxix, 7. ii, 215; viii, 73, 75, 76; ix, 16,20,89; xlix, 15 ; ill, 136 ; xvi, 111 ; xxix, 69. xxix, 5. V, 59. ix, 44, 82. Ixi, 11. XXV, 54 ; xxii, 77 ; ix, 24 ; Ix, 1. V, 58; vi, 109; xvi, 40; xxiv, 52; XXXV, 40. ix, 80. ix, 74 ; Ixvi, 9. XXV, 54. iv, 97 ; bis. xlvii, 33. iv, 97. [xxii, 77. V, 39 ; ix, 41, 87 ; The number of ins- tances in which they occur in the Koran. G. There are altogether 3G verses in the Koran containing the words noted above, in the following chapters and verses : — Cbapter ii, 215. Do. iii, 136. Do. iv, 97. MeaniiKj of Jihad. 167 Chapter v, 39, 58, 59. Do. vi, 109. Do. viii, 73, 75, 7G. Do. ix, 16, 19, 20, 24, 41, 44, 74, 80, 82, 87, 89. Do. xvi, 40, 111. Do. xxii, 77. Do. xxiv, 52. Do. XXV, 54. Do. xxix, 5, 7, 69. Do. xxxi, 14. Do. XXXV, 40. Do. xlvii, 33. Do. xlix, 15. Do. xl, 1. Do. xli, 11. Do. xlvi, 9. 7. Out of the above, the verses containing the words In what sense they " J^hd " and " Johd,"— i.e., V, 58 ; vi, are used in the Koran. jQf) . ^^j^ ^q . ^^-^^^ 52 ; XXXV, 40 ; and ix, 80, marked *, are altogether out of dispute, as in all the former passages, except the last one, its obvious meaning is most or utmost solemn oaths,-^ or most energetic oaths or strongest or most forcible oaths, ^ and the latter signifies small provisions upon which a man possessing a little property can live with difficulty. The rest are of two kinds — -first, the verses occurring in the Meccan Suras. As then the Moslems had not resorted to arms in their defence, though suffering from persecutions, Mohammadan com- * Vide Rodwell's Translation of the Koran i/i loco. * Vid/! Lane's Arabic-English Lexicon in loco. 1G8 Conventional signification of Jihad. mentators and jurists and Christian writers are unanimous in construing Jihdd in its natural sense of exertion, effort, energy, and painstaking. Secondly, the verses containing the same words occurring in the Medina Suras, which were revealed or published when the Moslems had taken arms in their defence. As regards this period, the words are considered to have an entirely new and an altogether fortuitous meaning, viz., a religious war of aggression. Even some verses of this period are rendered by Moham- madans and Christians in the literal sense of the word. 8. I fully admit that in the post-classical language of Conventional signi- the Arabs,— i.e., that in use sub- fications of Jihdd. sequent to the time of Mohammad, when the language was rapidly corrupted, the word "Jihdd" was used to signify "warfare" or fighting, but this was in a military sense. Since that period the word has come to be used as meaning the waging of a war or a crusade only in military tactics, and more recently it found its wa}'^ in the same sense into the Mohammadan law-books and lexicons of later dates. But the subsequent corrupt or post-classical language cannot be accepted as a final or even a satisfactory authority upon the point. " It was decided by common consent," says Mr. Edward "William Lane, in Iiis Arabic-English Lexicon (Preface, pp. viiiand ix), "that no poet, nor any other person, should be taken as an absolnte and unqnestionable authority with respect to the words or their significations, the grammar, or the prosody of the classical language, unless he were one who had died before the promulgation of El-Isla,m, or who had lived partly before and partly after that event ; or, as they term it, unless he were a ' Jahilee' or a ' Mukhadram,' or (as some pronounce it) 'Muk- Conventional siynljication of Jihad. 169 hiiJrim,' or ' Mnhadi-aiu ' or ' Muhadriui.' A poet of the class next after the Mukhadraius is termed au ' IsU'uuee :' and as tho corruption of the huigiuige had become considerable in his time, even among those wlio aimed at chasteness of speech, he is not cited as au authority absolutely and unquestionably like the two preceding classes. A poet of the next class, which is the last, is termed ' Muwelled ; ' he is absolutely post-classical ; and is cited as an unquestionable authority with respect only to the rhetori- cal sciences. The commencement of the period of the Muwel- leds is not distinctly stated : but it must have preceded the middle of the second century of the Flight ; for the classical age may be correctly defined as having nearly ended with the first century, when very few persons born before the estab- lishment of El-IsUim through Arabia were living. Thus the best of the Islami poets may be regarded, and are generally regarded, as holding classical rank, though not as being absolute authorities with respect to the words and the significations, the grammar, and the prosody of the classical language." Mr. Thomas Chenry, M.A., writes •} — " Within a century of Mohammad's fliglit from Mecca, the Moslem empire stretched from Kashgar and Mooltan to Morocco and the Pyrenees, and the Arab man of letters was exposed to the corrupting propinquity of men of very different races. Only a poet of Ignorance, that is, one who died before the preaching of Islam, or a Mokhadram, that is, who was contemporary with it, was looked upon as of paramount and unquestionable authori- ty. An Islami, that is, one who was born after the rise of Islam, was of least consideration, and after the first century, the poets are called Muwalladun, and are only quoted for their literary beauties, and not as authorities for the Arab tongue." ' The Assemblies of Al Hariri, translated from the Arabic by Thomas Chenry, M.A., Vol. I, Introduction, p. 67. William aud Norgate, 1867. X 170 Moluimmadan authorities quoted. 9. All commeiifcators, paiM phrases, and jiuisconsulfcs admit that the primary and original ^eSr^orVoteT «g"ifi«atio.> of the words "Ja7.afZ " and "Jilidd" is power, abilit}^ and toil, and that its use, as making wars or crusades, is conven- tional and figurative. Ibn Attiah saj^s regarding verse 69, Chapter XXIX, that it is Meccan, and was revealed before the enjoining of the Orfee or conventional Jihad {vide Fat-hul bayan fi maquasidil Koran, Vol. IT, page 517, by Siddik Hussan). Khateeb Koostlane, in his Irshadiissari, a paraphrase of Bokhari, says that " Jilidd is derived from Jahd, which means toil and labour, or from Johd, which means power. And in technical language it means fighting ■with infidels to assist Islam" (Vol. V, page 26). Moham- mad AUauddin Al Haskafi (died 1088 A. H.), the author of Dur-ral-Muklitar, a commentary on Tan viral Absar, by Skeikli Mohammad Al Tamartashi (died 1004), says in the chapter on Jilidd, that " in the classical language it is the infinitive noun of Jdhadafi Sahil- Allah, and in the lan- guage of the law it means inviting the infidels to the true faith and fighting with him who does not accept it." And Ibn Abidin Shami, in his annotation on the above work, says ; " The infinitive noun of Jdkada means to do one's utmost, and that it is general, and includes any person who supports'all that is reasonable and forbids wliat is wrong." 10. It is admitted by all lexicologists, commentators, and jurisconsults that Jihdd in classi- Whep the word Jihad ^^^ Arabic means to labour, strive was diverted rrom its oriErmalsig-iiification to earnestly, and that the change of its its fig'unitive meaoiug of waging religious meaning or the technical significa- war ? . . , tion occurred only in the post-classical Meanhig of Jlhdd changed long after the Koran. 171 pei-Hxl, i.e., long after tlie publication of the Koran. It is obviously improper, tlierefore, to apj)ly the post-classical meaning of the word where it occurs in the Koran. This ftiet is furtlier admittcil by all the iM oh am mad an commen- tators and English translators of the Koi-an, who render the word in its original and literal meaning in all the ]\Ieccan and in the early Medinite Suras or Chapters of the Koran.^ It is only in a few of the latest chapters of the Koran published at later dates at Mediiua, tliat they (the commen- tators and translators) ileviate from tlie original meaning, and prefer the subsequent unclassical and technical signifi- cation of waging war or crusade. 11. I herein place in juxtaposition the several English .„ p XI r^ translations of the word " Jiltdd" All verses or the Ko- ran containing the together with its etymolooical deriva- word Jikad and its de- j a rivation quoted and tion and several grammatical forms, explained. to show, in the first place, tliat Mr. ' In the treaty of Medina, which was made as early as the second year of the Hejira, the word Jihad is used, regarding- which Sir W. Muir says : — " This word came subsequently to have exclusively the technical signification of Jihad or crusade ov fighting for the Faith. If we give it this signification here, it would involve the clause in the suspicion of being a later addition ; for as yet we have no distinct development of the intention of Mahomet to impose his religion on others by force : it would have been dangerous, in the present state of parties, to advance this prin- ciple. The word is sometimes used in the more general sense in the Coran ; Sura XXIX, 5, 6!) ; XX. 77. and a few other places."— Muir's Life of Ma- homet, Vol. Ill, p. 32. Again he says with reference to Sura II, v. 21.5, which also contains the same word : " The word (Jikdd) is the same as that subsequently used for a religious war, but it had not yet probably acquired its fixed application. It was applied in its general sense before the Hejira, and probably up to the battle of Badr." — Ibid, p. 74, foot- note. 172 T]te Translators of the Koran. George Sale and the Rev. J. M. llodwell and other Euro- pean authors generally give the literal, original, and classi- cal meaning; and in the second place, to show how they differ in giving various meanings, literal and technical, in some passages to the same word in the same verses. It will be observed from a perusal of the statement, that the Rev. Mr. Rodwell, M.A., is more correct than the earliest English translator of the Koran, Mr. George Sale, and the latest, Mr. W. H. Palmer. The latter is the most unsatisfactory of all in this respect, as everywhere, except in six places— XXIX, 7 ; V, 39, 59 ; IV, 97 ; and IX, 74, 89— he translates Jihad as meaning; fio-htino- — a circumstance which not unnaturally leads to the supi)osition that he had paid but slight heed to the context. The difercnt versionfi of the word Jllidd. V a « ■V3 o ;-i ja -►i bo ^ r tC r^ >^ - ^ .. » o o _>> In a 73 03 O -J O a a a c r ei? o a o o . >- "tV, 4) « /> o a a Ut -ui -0 ;-) CO 03 03 cj a > 0-j -43 |4 tn to ,a to o "S a a5 > ra to 03 Ol 03 o 03 fco ^ fe a 5 fSH fa » ^ s P5 r^ 1^ m K ; - - •: - t t a o L c5 ; ; ~T O ^ c '^ < 'm p, iJ rt -^ -^ ",; ^ 03 r- o ^J .O r QQ - OS H '3 l4 o a ^ a to r2» a 1 O -ta a i^ o > cj -t3 rg - to 4J 1 03 _03 . tc 'S eS "cS A bp ^ _> 0) 03 _bp ra o c o 1 c3 OS O fcp &5 > 0) H O s S s fa tf " ■* "" " "* ■* ■* ■* " " C o '^ -i : : _o — . a •V. oj '-^ ^.2 (B ~» -1 " cj (U ^ U ■^ 05 ^ 03 ^. — • a -^ 2 'm gj M 0) ^ a c3 -^1 CM OJ io • a o . ••A Eh ■n m ''^ a -^ o C3 "^ •-1 a 03 o -a a ° ,^ a o > > c3 Ol a S a> ■q a S _a3 to o _a 05 9) (7 ^ > c3 05 a o a -3 to o CO Ol o so ;; ^ „ f S3 :; ^ „ cS r r "rf M o o " M o o a rt o ^ ^ o '^ (T-T J^ r^ -a ■a r^ -a - - TS 'So c! •a a c« OS CS cS r2 '^ oi 'r* J 2 A J ,a ja ,a ,a ,a O ce >cS cS rt ^rt 1-5 t-s -' i-s i-s •-s 1-5 ►-5 1-3 ►-S ►-S "* " " ■* " _" "* - " 'C «M r : 1—5 hH 1— ( CJ o !^^5^ M X >< > M ~ > M o -^ M !^ M M « X ^ t-H ■ON l«!-i9S - '^' 1 -isT- -tl IQ ec t^ 00 Cl o ^^\ - c>v "> (-^ N 17-1 The different versions of tlie word Jilidd. o ^ s - CM o a c; o •-> '" o ■r. a K o 4^ 4J •o s: TTJi.iag a ^ cS a; .a V. rS r^ ■^ ~ i> ti -IJ - c o o J ^ p > c ■-1 ~ £ 3 o f a t; S3 5t-i X a' a 4J 'T! "^ ^ o »j o ci ^1 u ^ J "Z ii -ui ^_ ■ — '^ p S b: J^ ? hH > i-i 1-3 > 1^ ^ TJte different vers'ioiis of the word Jilidd. 175 XI ;3 i^t' t-.-r; ^ 3S - -3 a -J a^ — -S i - 9 .^"^ ^ "« ^-'2 to 'v. r2 -^ ^■^ 1^ p 3 o a a a ^ 3 ^ r. Eh c a £•2 o 3 'P-T! CO a o '*-* ^ ^ a 0} u m 42 a CO rt o _ -_• ^ — 3 5 ci ;« 1 g 0) * ^ m a bo _a '■S O a S -3 Ui a o bo To O rn W t : - a o 5 S a o < 'A c ^ c3 3 a ^ 3 '^1 o to a p, -a a t3 a a < oi ■n-^a :i ^ -a a o ^ %—> 'S =3 fcC; tr. -^ '? " CB o H % ^ a o — a a :t ;=! Ti OJ o k-m r^ r S =5 a ** a a ^ ^ cc O o o o 0) +i - o •« s OJ 3 CO 1 "ON IBU3S CO 5^ ?3 a M CO Comments on the fofet/oi/u/ icords. ■ 177 12. The above verses quoted with remarks. I will now proceed to give a correct translation of all the verses of the Koran referred to above, in the chronological order of the chapters of the Koran as far as it is ascertained; together with my observations and remarks on them, and quotations from Moliammadan commentators when necessary. I.— THE MECCAN SURAS. 13. " But if they exert tlieir utmost (Jaliaduka) to make en Lokmau XXXI ^^'^^ to join tliat with Me of which thou ^^- liadst no knowledge, obey them not." Chapter XXXI is one of the oldest of the Meccan Suras, having been revealed between the sixth and tenth year of the Prophet's mission. The admonition relates to a man's behaviour to his parents. He is enjoined to treat them with kindness, but not to obey them if they lead him to polytheism. Here " Jdhadd " means " if the}^ two (parents ) task or toil thee, or make efforts and endeavour (that thou shouldst associate an}^ god with God)," and none of the translators and commentators take the word to mean the making of war or hostilities or fighting. 14, " Moreover had We pleasured We ^SV. ^^^^^^' ^^V, jij^^j certainly raised up a warner in every 53, 54. J L J city." '• Do not then obey the unbelievers, but by means of this (Jdhid) exert with them witli a (Jihadan Icahird) strenuous exertion (or labour with great labour)." This evidently relates to the Koran, or the warning mentioned in the preceding verse, and it is wrong to trans- late " Jihad" as meaning to fight strenuously with them, or as inciting to strenuous fighting as tianslated by Henry Y 178 Comments on the foregoing wards. Palmer (Vol. II, p. 88). Mr. Sale and the Rev. Mr. Rod- well do not translate it fighting, and so Mohammadan commentators. Fakhr-ad-diii Razi (died GOG A.H.), the Imam, in his great commentary says : " Some say Jdhid Jioom Mhi Jihdddn Kahird means to make efforts in preaching, but some say it meant fighting, and others say it meant both ; but the former is nearer tlie truth, as the chapter was revealed at Mecca, and the command for fighting •was issued after the Fliglit, some time afterwards" (Vol, VI, p. 490).- 15. " Believers ! bow down with wor- (3) The Pilgrimage,' i - w XXII, 76, 78. ship your Lord and work righteousness, haply ye may prosper." "And {' Jdhidoo') make efforts in God, as {Jihddehi) yonr making efforts is His due. He hath elected you, and hath not laid on you any hardship in religion, the Faith of your father Abraham, He hath named you the Muslims." Messrs. Sale and Palmer translate the Avord here as meaning fighting, which is wrong, as it is imclassical and not literal. Rodwell translates it " do valiantly," and Sir William Muir says it is used in the more general sense (Vol. Ill, p. 32). This verse is a brief and concise version of the great maxim in Deut. VI, 5 ; Mark XII, 30 ; and Luke X. 27,— " Thou shalt love thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy mind, and with all thy strength." See also Luke XIII, 24 : " Strive to enter in at the straight gate," ' Tliis Sura is generally said to have been revealed at Mecca, but this is probably only the case as regards verses 1, 24, 43, 56, CO, 65, 67, 75. Mr. Muir places it at the close of the Meccan Suras of tbe fifth period. See Nold, p. 158 ; Rev. Rodwell, p. 600, Comments on the foregoing icorch. 179 IG. " Wlioso after lie liatli believed in God denietli Him if (4) The Bee XVI ^^^ were forced to it, and if his heart ' ^^^- remain steadfast in the faith, shall be guiltless ; but whoso openeth his heart to infidelity — on them, in that case, shall be wrath from God, and a severe punishment awaitetli them." " To those also who after their trials fled their country, then (Jdhadoo) toiled and endured with patience. Verily, thy Lord will afterwards be forgiving, gracious." Dr. Sprefiger (Life of Mohammad, \). 159) explains this verse of the seven slaves purchased and manumitted by Abu Bekr. They had been tortured for professing Islam, shortly after Mohammad assumed the prophetic office. The flio-ht referred to in verse 111th is the early Ab3'ssinian flio-ht. These verses relate to the persecutions endured b}^ humble and needy Moslems from their townspeople of Mecca. These Moslems, after being persecuted and forced as far as denying God, while their remaining steadfast in the faith, had to flee elsewhere, and then suffered much in their wanderings ; but they endured their labours and fatio-ues, losses, disadvantages both in body and mind, patiently. There is no allusion to fighting or waging war. The Rev. Mr. Rodwell and Mr. Palmer ai e both wrong in translat- ing ' Jdhadoo ' as fighting. Sale is right in not translat- ing it as fighting, but he is too paraphrastic when he translates, " and who have since fought in defence of the true religion" as their "Jihad" was only their great exertion and toil in suffering from persecutions. 17, "And whoso (' Jdhada' ) labours (' Yojdhido') toils (.o) The Spider, ^^^' ^'^^ own good only. Verily God is ^^'■^' ^- independent of all the worlds." 180 Comments on the foregoing ivords. Mr. Palmer is wrong in making Jaliada and Tojdhido to mean fighting strenuously. Mr. Sale and the Rev. W. "Rodwell are right in translating by " striveth " and " efforts" respectively, and so is Sir W. Muir in taking it into, what he styles, the general sense of the verse (The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, p. 32). 18. " Moreover We have enjoined on man to show kindness (6) The Spider ^^ parents, hnt if they (Jdhadd) strive XXIX, 7. with thee in order that thou join that with Me of wliich thou hast no knowledge, then obey them not. To Me do ye return, and I will tell you of your doings." None of the eomnientators take the word Jdhadd in tliis passage to mean fighting or crusade, and it is difficult, therefore, to understand why the word should have been distorted from its proper literal and classical meaning in other places of the same book. 19. "And those who (Jahadoo) made efforts for Us, in (7) The Spider "^^'' V^^^^ ^'^^ ^^ surely guide; for XXIX, G9. verily God is with those wlio do righte- ous deeds." Mr. Palmer translates the word here as meaning " fought," contrary to Mr. Sale, the Rev. Mr. Rodwell, and Sir William Muir, who translate it " endeavour," "effort," and " strive." The conventional term Jihad, meaning crusade or war- fare, was not in use in the time of the revelation of the Koran. 20. " And they swear by God with their (Jahd) utmost (8) The Bee XVI, oaths that * God will never raise him ^^- wlio once is dead.' Nay, but on Hiui is a promise binding though most men know it n«;t." Comments on the foregoing words. 181 Sale renders the word " most solemnly ; " Rodwell, " most sacred oatli ;" Palmer, "most strenuous oath." 21. " They swore by God with their (Jahd) utmost oath that ro^ Creator XXXV shonUl a preacher come to them tliey •l'^- would yield to guidance more than any people : but when the preacher came to them, it only increased in them their estrangement." Sale's rendering is "most solemn oath," Rodwell's, " mio-htiest oath," and Palmer's, " most strenuous oath." II.— THE MEDINITE SURAS. 22. " But they who believe, and who fly their country, and (10) The Cow or {Jahadoo) exert their utmost in the Heifer, II, 21.5. ^j^^y ^f Grod, may hope for God's mercy, and God is Gracious and Merciful." Mr. Sale and the Rev. Mr. Rodwell translate Jahadoo as those who fight, and Mr. Palmer as those who iua,ge luar ; but there is no reason to change the proper meaning of the word. Sir William Muir translates the verse thus : — " But they that believe and they who emigrate for the sake of their faith and strive earnestly in the way of God, let them hope in the mercy of God, for God is forgiving, merciful."! In a footnote he says : — " The word Jihad is the same as that subsequently used for a religious war ; but it had not yet probably acquired its fixed application. It was employed in its general sense before the Hejira, and pro- bably up to the battle of Badr."^ I have only to add that the word never acquired its fixed application during the lifetime of the Prophet, nor is it used as such in any chapter of the Koran either before or after the Hejira. ' Vide Muir"s Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, 74. ^ ^i/,;, footnote. 182 Comments on the foregoing ivoirls. The connection of flight mentioned in the verse as put together with Jihad, sliows that it means the labour, toil, and distress which befel the fugitives in leaving their families unprotected in the hands of their persecutors on their expulsioo from their country. 23. " Do ye tliiuk that ye could enter Paradise without God (11) A!l Amran, III, taking knowledge of those among you who '^^ • (Jdhadoo) have toiled and of those who steadfastly endured." The Rev. Mr. Rodwell translates Jdhadoo, " did valiantly," and does not agree with Sale and Palmer, who translate it, "fought strenuously, " or " fought well." By the connection of enduring patiently, the word Jdhadoo probably means those who toiled and suffered in their exile from Mecca. 24. " Verily, they who believe and have fled their homes and (\'>) The Spoils (Jdhadoo) toiled with their substance ^^^^! ''3. and themselves in the way of God, and they who have taken in and have helped, shall be near of kin the one to the other. And they who have believed, but have not fled their homes, shall have no rights of kindred with you at all, until they too fly their country. Yet if they seek aid from you, on account of the faith, your part is to give them aid, except against a people between whom and yourself there may be a treaty. And God beholdeth your actions." Sale renders the word Jihad (or Jdhadoo) in this passage as meaning "employed their substance and their persons in fighting." Rodwell ... " Spent their substance and themselves." Palmer ... " Fought strenuously with their wealth and person." Comweiits on ihc forf(join(j irords. 183 As the word Jihad lias been applied lierc to both one's- self and his substance or wealth, it cannot mean "fighting," even if taken in the technical signification. 25. " But as for those who liiive believed and fled their (VS) The Spoil VIII country and (Jdhadoo) took pcains in the '•'• way of God, and have been a refuge or help, these are the faithful, mercy is their due and a noble provision." Sale ..." Fought." Rod well ... "Fought." Palmer ... " Fought strenuously." There is nothing in this passage to warrant a departure from the literal and proper signification of the word Jdhadoo, and using it in a post-Koranic sense. 26. " And they who have believed and have since fled tlieir (14) The Spoil VIII country, (Jdhadoo) toiled with yon, these '*'• also are of you. Those who are united by the ties of blood are the nearest of kin to eacli other. This is in the Book of God. Verily God knoweth all things." Sale ... "Fought." Rodwell ... "Fought." Palmer ... " Fought strenuously." There is no valid excuse here for changing the sio-ni- fication of the word Jdhadoo into that which is never used in the Koran or in the classical Arabic. (15) The Cattle, VI, 27. "With their (Jahd) most bind- ■ ing oath liave they sworn I^y God . . . ." Sale ..." Most solemn oath." Rodwell ... " Most binding oath." Palmer ... " Most strenuous oath." 184 Comments on the foreejoing icorch. 28. " And We will surely test you until We know {Mojdhi- (10) Mohammad, deena) who did tlieir utmost, and who ' were the steadfast among you ; and We will test the reports." fSale ... " Who fight valiantly." Rodwell ... " Valiant." Palmer ... " Fought valiantly." ^' MojdhicV is not synonymous with '' Ilokdtil." 29. " Believe in God and His Apostle and (JdJddoo) do (17) Battle Array, strive in the way of God with vonr LXI, 11. •' wealth and your persons ! " Sale ... " Who fought valiantly." Rodwell ... " Who fought valiantly." Palmer ... " Fight strenuously," Devotion or worship has been divided into two kinds, — bodily, which also includes mental ; and pecuniary or mone- tary, and the believers are exhorted here to worship God both bodily and mentally. 30. " Those believers who sit at home free from trouble and those who (1, Mojdhidoona) toil in the (18) Women, IV, 97. , ^ . • , , • , way 01 God with their substance and their persons shall not be treated alike. God has assigned to those who (2, Majdhadoona] strive with their persons and with their substance a rank above those who sit at home. Goodly promises hath He made to all ; but God hath assigned to those (3, Mojdhadina) who make efforts a rich recompense above those who sit at home." Sale : 1st ... " Those who employ their fortune and their substance for the religion of God." 2nd ... " Those who employ their fortune and their substance." 3rd ... "Those who fight." Comments on the foregoing words. 185 Rodwell : Ist ... " Those who fight valiantly." 27ul ... " Contend earnestly." ord ... " Strennous." Piilmer: \st ... "Strenuous." 2nd ... " Strenuous." 5rd ... " Strenuous." I have already explained the two sorts of worship or service of God— bodily and mental The same applies here too. 31. "And they swore by God with (19) Light, XXIV, 52. ,, . , , ,1 ^ ^ =" then' utmost oath .... Sale ... " Most solemn oath." Rodwell ... " Most solemn oath." Palmer ... " Most strenuous oath." 32. " Prophet, (Jdhid) do thy utmost with the unbelievers ^ ,.•,-,. and hvpocrites, and be strict towards (20) The Forbidding, '"'" nj'puoi , LXVI, 9. them." Sale ... "Attack the infidels with arms and the hypocrites with arguments." Rodwell ..." Make war." Palmer ... " Fight strenuously." (21) The Immunity, 33. The same verse, word for word. IX, 74. Sale ... "Wage war." Rodwell ..." Contend against." Palmer ... " Strive strenuously." The word Jdhkl is the same in both the passages, yet the translators differ in their interpretation of it. As there hai."" been no war against the hypocrites, the word cannot bo held to bear the construction they put on it, even if we df'prived it of its proper signification. In one place Sale 186 Conmients on tlie foregoing woixh. takes Jdhid to mean " attacking with arms," and in an- other he takes it in the sense of attacking with arguments. There is no signification of "attacking" in Jihdd, but only that of " exerting," and the verse simply means, " exert thyself in preaching to, and remonstrating with, the un- believers and hypocrites, and also be strict towards them," — i. e., not to be smooth with them, nor to be beguiled by tliem.^ 34. " Ye believers! take not my foe and your foe for friends : ye show them kindness althousrh they (22) The tried, LXI. ' believe not that truth wliich hath come to you : they drive forth the Apostle and yourself because ye believe iu God your Lord ! If ye have come forth^ [Jihddan) labouring iu my cause, and from a desire to please Me, ye show them kindness in private, then I well know what ye conceal and what ye discover ! And whoso of you doth this hath verily, therefore, gone astray from the even way." Sale translates Jiliddan as meauuiug '' to fight iu the defence of my religion." Kodwell ... "To fight on my path." Palmer ... " Fighting strenuously." The translators quoted above say that Hatib had in- formed the Meccans of an intended surprise of Mecca on the part of Mohammad with the view of making terrris for his own family, which had been left there. On this occasion the passage was revealed. This shows that the campaign of Mecca is termed Jihdd. But Sir William Muir does not agree with them. He says in a footnote : — " The open- » Vide Sura LXXII, 9 ; XVII, 69. ^ ?. e., from Mecca when driven out of it by the Meccans iu your" persecution . Comiiunt.<^ on tlie foregoing icords. 187 in<^ verses of the sixtieth Sura are said to refer to Hatib ; but they appear to have a general bearing against too great intimacy with the Coreish during the truce and to be, therefore, of a prior date."^ 35. Hatib's story. The story regarding Hatib's revela- tion of the intended attack upon Mecca by Mohammad, is not supported by authentic and trustworthy traditions. The authentic tradition of Bokhari^ only states that the occasion of the verse being revealed was in the case of Hiitib, but does not say that it was during the campaign of Mecca, nor that the information contained anything about the intended campaign. The authentic tradition onl}^ says that the report contained information regarding some of the aflf'airs of the Prophet. Besides this, it is wrong to translate in kun turn hJiaraj- tum Jihadanfi Sahili, as " if ye go forth to figlit in defence of my religion," or " if ye go forth to fight on my path," or " if ye go forth fighting strenuously in my cause." It simpl}'' means, " if you have come out striving in my cause," and the sentence is a complement or correlative of the verse, meaning, if you have come out of Mecca, strivino-, or to strive, in my cause, suffering from exile and under- going the afflictions and distresses of living homeless, leaving your family and property unprotected, and all these pains (Jihad) you have taken to please me, then you should not make friends with my foes and 3'our foes, who do not believe in the truth ^vhich has come to you, and have driven out the Prophet and yourselves ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, p. 114. ' Kitahul Jlhdil, Mughdzi and Tufsccv. 188 Comments on the foregoing words. (from Mecca, your home) only for the reason that you be- lieve in God your Lord. 36. " The true believers are tliose only who believe in God and C>3^ The Apartment ^^^ Apostle and afterwards doubt not ; and XLIX, 15. •yylio (Jdhadoo) strive with their substance and their persons on the path of God, These are the sincere." Sale here translates Jdhadoo those " who employ their substance and their persons in the defence of God's true religions." Kodwell ... " Contend with their substance and their persons." Palmer ... " Fight strenuously with their wealth and persons." See my observations under No. 17, para. 28. 37. '*' Think not that ye shall be forsaken and that God doth (24) The Immunity, "^^ yet know those among you who I^> 1^' (Jdhadoo) do their utmost and take none for their intimate friends besides God and His Apostles and the faithful. But God is well apprised of your doings." Sale ... " Fought for his religion.'* Eodwell ... "Fought valiantly." Palmer ... " Fought strenuously." 38. " Do ye place the giving drink to the pilgrims and the visitation of the sacred temple on the (25) Ibid, 19. same level with him who believeth in God and the last day, and {Jdhada) taketh pains in the way of God. They are not held equal by God, and God guideth not the unrighteous." Sale ... "Fighteth." Rodwell ... "Fighteth." Palmer ... "Is strenuous. Comments on the foregoing iwrds. 189 39. "They who have believed and fled their homes and (20) The Immunity, (.J<'i^^adoo) toiled with their substance and IX, 20. -with their persons on the path of God are of the highest degree with God, and these are they who shall enjoy felicity ! " Sale ... " Employ their substance and their persons in the defence of God's true religion." Rodwell ... " And striven with their substance and with their persons in the path of God." Palmer ... "Been strenuous in the way of God with their wealth and their persons." 40. " Say, if your father and your sons and your brethren and your wives, and your kindred and (27) Ihid, 24. wealth which ye have gained, and mer- chandise which ye fear may be unsold, and dwellings wherein ye may delight be dearer to you than God and His Apostle and (JiJiddan) toiling in My cause, then wait until God shall Himself enter on His work ; God guideth not the impious." Sale ... " Advancement of his religion." Rodwell ..." Efforts on his path." Palmer ... " Fighting strenuously." 41. " March ye forth light and heavy and (Jdhidoo) toil with your substance and persons on the way of God. (28) 75^,41. m • -p i •. -ii i i . f This, if ye knew it, will be best tor you. Sale ... " Employ your substance and your per- sons for the advancement of God's true religion." Rodwell ... " Contend with your . . . ." Palmer ... " Fight strenuously with your wealth and persons." 190 Comments on the foregoing ivords. 42. "Tliey who believe in God and in the last day will not (29) The Immuuity ^^^^ leave to be exempt from (Tojdhadoo) toiling witb their substance and their But God knoweth them that fear Him." IX, 44. persons. Sale Rodwell Palmer .. "Employ their substance and their per- sons for the advancement of God's true religion," ,. ''Contending with their substance and persons." . " Fighting strenuously." " They who were left in their homes were delighted be- hind God's Apostle and were averse from (Yojdhidoo) exerting with their riches and their persons for the cause of God, and said, ' March not out in the heat.' Say, a fiercer heat will be the fire of hell ! Would that they understood this." 43. (30) Ibid, 82. Sale Rodwell "Employ their substance and their per- sons for the advancement of God's true reliirion." Palmer .. " Contending with their riches and their persons." ,. " Fighting strenuously with their wealth and their person." " Moreover when a Sura was sent down with "Believe in God, and (Jdhidoo) toil in company with his Apostle," those of them who are pos- sessed of riches demanded exemption, and said, "Allow us to be with those who sit at home." Sale ... "Go forth to war." Rodwell ... "Contend." Palmer ... " Fight strenuously." 44. (31) Ibid, 87. Comments on the foregoing words. 191 45. " But the Apostle, and those who share his faith ,.,.-,. T^, T ■, (JdJiadoo) exerted with their substance (:>'2) The Immuuity, V ^ IX, 8'.>. and their persons, and these ! good things await tliem and these are they who shall be happy. Side ... " Expose their fortune and their lives." Rodwell ... " Contend with purse and person." Palmer ... "Are strenuous with their wealth and with their persons." 4G. " ye who believe ! fear God and desire union with Him and (Jdhidoo) toil on His path. It (3.-!) The Table, V, 39. . , . may be that you will obtani happiness. Sale ... "Fight." Rodwell ... " Contend earnestly." Palmer ... "Be strenuous." 47. " And the faithful will say, ' Are these they who swore by God their (Jahda) utmost oath that they (31) lbid,5S. ; •: 9. ^7 • ,1 • were surely on your side : Vaiu their works ; and they themselves shall come to ruin." Sale ... "Most firm." Rodwell ... " Most solemn." Palmer ... " Most strenuous." 48. "0 ye who believe! should any of you desert his religion, God will then raise up a people (35) Ibid, 59. whom He loveth, and who love Him, lowly towards the faithful, lofty to the unbelievers ( Yojdhidoona) striv- ing in the path of God, and not fearing the blame of the blamer. This is the Grace of God ; on whom He will He bestoweth it, and God is all-embracing. Omniscient !" Sale ... " They shall fight for the religion of God." Rodwell ... "For the cause of God will they con- tend." Palmer ... " Strenuous in the way of God." 192 Conclusion. 49. Jihad does not mean the waging of war. These are all the verses of the Koran which contain the word " JaJiad" or ".Jihcld,'^ or any derivations from them. I believe that I have clearly shown by means of a careful comparison between the translators and commentators and the original passages in the Koran, that the word JaJid or JiluUl in the classical Arabic and as used in the Koran does not mean waging war or fighting, but only to do one's utmost and to exert, labour or toil. The meaning which has come to be ascribed to the word is undoubtedly a conventional one, and is one that has been applied to it at a period much less recent than the revelation of the various chapters of the Koran. 50. Katal and Kitdl. I do not mean to contend that the Koran does not contain injunctions to fight or wage war. There are many verses enjoining the Prophet's fol- lowers to prosecute a defensive war, but not one of aggression. The words "katal" and "hitdl" distinctly indicate this. 51. Conclusion. I have already analysed all the verses containing these words {katal and kitdl) in this book. What I have aimed at in the Appendix is to show that those authors and translators who cite certain verses of the Koran containing the word Jahd or Jihad and its derivations in support of their assertion, and that the Mohammadan religion sanctions the waging of war and the shedding of blood, are altogether in the wrong. g^pjiijudix 1. SLAVERY AND CONCUBINE-SLAVES AS CONCOMITANT EVILS OF WAR. 1. It is a false accusation against the Koran, that it allows enslavement of the captives of Slavery and con- cubinage not allowed war, and sanctions female captives to bv the Koran. , , , • , i the conquerors embrace, or, in other words, female captives are made concubines on the field of battle. There is not a single sentence in the Koran allow- incr either of the above allegations. Sir W. Muir, in his " Life of Mahomet," could neither quote any verse of the Koran sanctioning the enslavement of the captives of war or servile concubinage, nor was he able to relate any instance of them during the several battles described therein. Yet, in a recent work,^ he refers boldly, but vaguely, to the Koran; and regarding the battle of Walaja fought by Khalid against the Persians in A. H. 12 writes, after quoting Khalid's oration on gaining the victory : — " Now, also, the cunning device of the Coran, with respect to the other sex, began to tell. Persian ladies, both maids and matrons, ' taken captive by tlie right hand,' were forthwith, without stint of number, lawful to the conquerors' embi-ace ; and, 1 Annals of the Early Caliphate. By Sir W. Muir, K.C.S.I., LL.D., D.C.L., page 75, London, 1883. A 2 194 Slavery. in the enjoyment of this privilege, they were nothing loth to execute upon the heathen ' the judgment written.' " I do not understand why, if such was the case, Khalid did not refer the believers to the so-called " cunning device" of the Koran ? By referring to this imaginary device of the Koran to the lawfulness of female captives " to the conquerors' embrace," he might have struck a chord, at which every Bedouin heart would have leapt with joy, instead of referring, as he did, merely to the riches of the land and fair fields. In fact there is no such inducement in the Koran. 2. Slaves are mentioned in the Koran defado, but not dejure. The Koran took several mea- Meastires taken by the Koran to abolish sures to abolish future slavery. Its steps for its abolition were taken in every moral, legal, religious, and political departments. The liberation of slaves was morally declared to be a work of piety and righteousness — (Sura XG, 13 ; II, 172).^ Legally the slaves were to be emancipated on their agreeing to pay a ransom — (Sura XXIV, 33).'-^ They were to be set at liberty ' " It is to ransom the captive." — XC, 13. " There is no piety in turning your faces towards the east or the west, but he is pious who believeth in God and the Last Day, and the Angels and the Scriptures and the Prophets ; who for the love of God disburfeeth his wealth to his kindred and to the orphans and the needy, and the wayfarer and those who ask ; and for ransoming," &c. — II, 172. ^ " And to those of your slaves who desire a deed of manumission, execute it for them, if ye know good in them, and give them a portion of the wealth of God which He hath given you. Force not your female slaves into sin, in order that ye may gain the casual fruitions of this world, if they wish to preserve their modesty. Yet if any one compel them, then verily, after their compulsion, will God be Forgiving, Merciful."— XXIV, 33, Slavery. 195 as a penalty for culpable homicide — (Sura IV, 94);^ or in expiation for using an objectionable form of divorce — (Sura LVIII, 4) f and also they were to be manumitted from the Public Funds out of the poor-taxes — (Sura IX, 60).^ They were religiously to be fi-eed in expiation of a false oath taken in mistake — (Sura V, 91).* These were the measures for the abolition of existing slavery. The future slavery was abolished by the Koran by putting hammer deep unto its root and by annihilating its real source. The captives of war were, according to the clear injunctions of the Koran contained in the 5 th verse of the 47th Sura, to be dismissed either by a free grant or by exacting a ransom. They were neither to be enslaved nor killed. 4. " When ye encounter the unbelievers strike off their heads, till ye have made a great slaughter among them, and of the rest make fast the fetters." ' '• A believer killeth not a believer but by tnischance : and whoso killeth a believer by mischance shall be bound to free a believer from slavery," &c.— IV, 9i. ^ " And those who thus put away their wives, and afterwards would recall their words, must free a captive before they can come together again,'' &c. — LVIII, 4. 3 " But alms are only to be given to the poor and the needy, and those who collect them, and to those whose hearts are won to Jxlam, and for ransoming- and for debtors, and for the cause of God, and the wayfarer," &c.— IX, 60. ■* " God will not punish you for a mistaken word in your oaths ; but He will punish you in regard to an oath taken seriously. Its expiation shall be to feed ten poor persons with such middling yVw^Z as ye feed your families with, or to clothe them ; or to set free a captive : but he who cannot find the means shall fast three days. This is the expiation of your oaths when ye have sworn. Keep then your oaths. Thus God maketh his signs clear to you. Haply ye will be thankful." — V, 91, 196 Slavery. 5. " And afterwards let there either be free dismissals or ransoming, till the war hath laid down its burdens. Thus do. . ." Sura XL VII. These verses convey very clearly tlie decree of the aboli- tion of future slavery, and do not require any further remarks. Moreover they were acted upon accordingly even in the lifetime of the Prophet. 3. None of the prisoners of Badr A. H. 2, of Karkart-al- ■KT c ^\. • Kadr A. H. 3, of Katau in Naid None of the prisoners •^"'"-1^ ^^- ^^- ->> ^■- j of war was enslaved. ^ jj^ 4^ ^f 2at-al Riqa ^ A. H. 5, of Bani Mustalik A. H. 5, of Koreiza A. H. 5, of Batan Makka A. H. 6,^ or of Honain (Hawdzin) A. H. 8,=^ was enslaved. All, witliout an exception, were set free either by way of free dismissal, or by exacting ransom ' Vide Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, page 22.3. ^ According' to Hishami, p. 745, a party of fifty or forty Koreish went round about Mohammad's camp at Hodeibia. seeking- to cut off any stray followers ; and having attacked the camp itself with stones and arrows, they were caught and taken to Mohammad, who pardoned and released them. — Vide Muir's Life of Mahomet, IV, p. 31,/. n. ; and Moslim's collection of genuine traditions Kitab-ul Jihad vas-Siyar, chapter on Tanfeel and Ransom. ^ All the prisoners of Hawazin at Honain were released without taking any ransom and were not made slaves. See Muir's Life of M9,ho- met, Vol. IV, pp. 148-149. That Mohammad had presented three female slaves to AH, Othman, and Omar from the captives of Bani Hawazin, as stated by Sir W. Muir, Vol. IV, p. 149, is void of all truth. The captives were not enslaved. They were mere prisoners, as Sir W. Muir himself calls them so {ibid, pp. 148-149) ; yet he styles these three of them " female slaves." The captives together with the captured camp were removed to the valley of Jierana, pending negotiations {ibid, p. 142). At the end of the negotiations the prisoners were released. Thus there could be no distribution of prisoners to anyone. Slavery. 107 (ill cash or in exchange of Moslem prisoners) in strict conformit}^ with the dictates of Sura XLVII, 5. Tiiere were no prisoners in the battles of Ohad A. H. 3, Alizab A. H. 5, and Khyber A. H. 7.^ ' Sir W. Muir writes : — '" Hishamee says that from the time of Kheibar slaves became very plentiful among the Moslems, p. 333. I do not fiud that, excepting the family of Kinana, any mention is made of slaves taken at Kheibar. But money, which the victors obtained plentifully at Kheibar, could purchase them cheaply in any part of Arabia." (The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, pp. 7:5-74, and footnote.) But the word originally used by Hishamee, " sabaya, " means captives and property captured, and not slaves, though captives, if not rausomed, were used to be made slaves under the Arab International Law. Besides this even the family of Kinana was never enslaved. Kinana was taken captive and executed, because he had killed Mahamiid bin Muslama. Vide para. 75 of this book. The story that Jlohammad immediately on Kinana's execution sent for her and cast his mantle over her, signifying that sbe was to be his own, and consummated his marriage with her, and that her dower was her freedom (y/rZe Muir, ibid, pp. 68-69), is not genuine and authentic. His family, by which is meant Sofia and her cousin, was not enslaved, and there is no tradition, genuine or apocryphal, to corroborate it. I here take the opportunity of quoting a speech ascribed to Mohammad while addressing Sofia, the widow of Kinana, copied by Abul Mo'tamar Soleiman (died A. H. 143) in his " Campaigns of Moham- mad." Mohammad addressed her thus: — " I give thee choice either of Islam, or of Judaism. If thou acceptest Islam, perhaps I may keep thee for myself. But if thou preferest Judaism, I may perhaps liberate thee, and join thee to thy family." Vide Wakidi's '• Campaigns of Mo- hammad," page 393, Calcutta, 1856. This speech shows amply that Mohammad had no intention of enslaving Sofia. The story of Mohammad's marriage with Sofia after her being given to and purchased from Dihya, emanates from Anas, who cannot be relied upon. Anas had very recently been associated with Mohammad. He entered Mohammad's service only the other day when he started for the expedition of Khyber, and was but a boy only a dozen-years old at that time. It is related by Bokhari from Anas himself, who said that the Prophet had 198 Slavery. 4. Some will contend regarding the Baiii Koreiza that Bani Koreiza not en- ^^^^ei^" women and children were made ^^'''^®'^" slaves, and as such sold in Najd. Sir W. Muir quotes the judgment of Sad in the case of the asked Abu Tulhah to get him a boy to serve him during the Khyber expedi- tion. So he took me to him, and I was a boy close to maturity {Bolihari- Kitdhul Jihad). Anas has given two contradictory accounts about Sofia; in one he says, " Dihya asked Mohammad's permission for a captive girl, and took Sofia. When Mohammad heard about Sofia, he asked Dihya to take another one ; and having liberated Sofia married her, and her freedom was her dower." In another tradition, Anas relates that " Sofia fell to the lot of Dihya, and Mohammad purchased her from him for seven camels. He says : — " The people did not know whether he had married her, or had made her a concubine-slave, but when she rode on a camel, and IMohammad put veil round her, the people knew from this that she was his wife." Both these traditions are narrated from Anas by Moslem in his Sahech (Book on Marriage). The idea that Mohammad married Sofia under the circumstances noted above is not satisfactorily established. It was only the fancy of the people, or was a conjecture of Anas. Yet Sir W. Muir has the effrontery to remark against Mohammad that : "Indeed, he is not free from the suspicion of being influenced in the destruction of Kinana by the desire of obtaining his wife." (The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, page 68, footnote.) Kinana was executed for killing Mahmood bin Muslama. and Sofia was neither enslaved nor married by Mohammad. Even if it be shown that Moham- mad married her afterwards under some other circumstances, it (Sir W. Muir's presumption) is an idle guess unwarranted by any reasonable argument. The traditionists. Anas and others, have probably confounded Sofia, the aunt of Mohammad, who was with him during the expedition of Khyber {vide Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, page &&. footnote), with Kiuana's widow of the same name, whom they fancied Mohammad might have married and carried with him on the same camel. The lady for whom Mohammad lowered his knee to help her to ascend the camel {_ibid, page 70) was most probably Sofia, his aunt. Slavery. ] 99 Bani Koreiza, — " That the female caj)tives and the children shall he sold into slavery," and that it was approved of by Mohammad. He writes further : — " A fifth of the booty was, as usual, reserved for the Pro- phet, and the rest divided. From the fifth Mahomet made cer- tain presents to his friends of female slaves and servants ; and then sent the rest of the women and children to be sold among the Bedouin tribes of Najd in exchange for horses and arms."^ I have shown in para. 30 of this book (pages 87 and 38) that Mohammad never appreciated the judgment of S^d. And I have further to add that the said judgment, accord- ing to true reports, did not contain the illegal verdict of enslaving the women and children of the Bani Koreiza, as this might have gone directly against the Koran and the precedents of the Prophet. In the collections of Bokhari, Book of Campaigns, Chapter on Bani Koreiza, there are two traditions cited on the subject. Both of them quote the words of Sad to the effect that "the women and children be imprisoned." The same is the case in Bokhari's other chapters (Book oi Jihdd, Chapter on the Surrender of Enemy, Book of Mandhih, Chapter on the Merits of Sad). It is not a fact that Mohammad made certain presents to his friends of the female slaves out of the captives of Bani Koreiza. The captives were not made slaves, there- fore it is wrong to confound captives with slaves. There is no proof to the effect that they were enslaved. The Koran distinctly says that they were prisoners (Sura XXXIII, 2G). Vol. Ill, pp. 278-279. 200 Slavery. lu fact, the women and children were not guilty of treason, and deserved no punishment. Sad's judgment must be either wrong regarding them, or applied only to those who were guilty. " One woman alone," according to Sir W. Muir, " was put to death ; it was she who threw the millstone from the battlements " (Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, page 277). I conclude, therefore, that all the women and children were released afterwards ; some ransomed themselves, others went off with their freedom. But no- body was ever sold in slavery. The assertion of Hishamee, quoted by Sir W. Muir, that tlie women and children were sent to be sold among the Bedouin tribes of Najd in exchange for horses and arms (Vol. Ill, page 279), is void of all authority, and is in direct contradiction of what Abul Mo'tamar Soleiman bin Tarkhan (died 143 A. H. and was prior to Hishamee) says, and whose account seems to be more probable. His version is that the horses of Bani Koreiza were sent by Mohammad to Syria and Najd for the ])urpose of breeding, and that they got big horses. Vide Wakidi Campaigns of Moham- mad, page 37-i, Calcutta, 1855. This shows that only horses, and not women and children, were sent to Najd. The words of Hishamee (page 693) are " sahdya tnin sahdya Bani Koreiza." Sahdya, plural of sahi, applies to both person and property, as they say sabal aduvva vaghairohu, he made captive, captured or took prisoner the enemy, and other than an enemy. (Vide Lane's Arabic Dictionary, page 1303, col. 1.) So probably Hishamee had in view only the horses captured of the Bani Koreiza and sent to Najd, but not the women and children of the captives of Koreiza. Slavery. 201 5. Rihdna, a woman of the captives of Koreiza, is said by Sir W. Muir to liave been taken Hibana. . . ,, by Mohammad " for his concubine. He always confounds prisoners with slaves, and female captives as well as slaves with concubines. There are several conflicting and contradictory traditions regarding Rihana. Moliammad bin Sad Katib Wakidi has related, various traditions from Omar-bin-al Hakam, Mohammad bin Kab, and from other various sources that Mohammad had married Rihana. The Katib says " this tradition is held by learned men. But he has also heard some one relating that she was his concubine."^ But Sir W. Muir chooses the latter uncertain and unauthentic traditions. He writes in a footnote : — " She is represented as saying, when he offered her marriage and the same privileges as his other wives : ' Nay, Prophet ! But let me remain as thy slave ; this will be easier both for me and for thee.' " 2 Even if this tradition be a genuine one, he is not author- ized in his remarks in the text, where he says — " He invited lier to be his wife, but she declined ; and chose to remain (as indeed, having refused marriage, she had no alter- native) his slave or concubine." She was neither enslaved, nor made a concubine. It is to be resetted that the writer of the " Life of Mahomet " most absurdly confounds slavery .and concubinage. ' Vide The Biographical Dictionary of Persons who knew Mohammad, by Ibn Hajar. In Biblotheca Indica, A collection of Oriental Series, published by the Asiatic Society, Bengal, No. 215, Vol. IV. Fasciculus 7, Calcutta, 18G6 ; Art. Rehana, No. 444. - The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, page 278. B 2 202 Slavery. 6. During the sovereignty of Omar, the second Khalif, in accordance witli the injunctions of Omar, the second Khalif, liberated all the Mohammad to abolish slavery, all the existing Arab slaves were set free. It will appear that the wishes of Mohammad to that effect were but partially carried out. In ages that succeeded the death of Mohammad, they were altogether lost sight of, and even Arabs were allowed to be enslaved by the later jurists. Sir W. Muir, in his latest work, entitled " The Annals of the Early Caliphate," says : — " Yet great numbers of the Arabs themselves were slaves, taken prisoner daring the apostasy, or in the previous intertribal •warfare, and held in captivity by their fellow-countrymen. Omar felt the inconsistency. It was not fit that any of the noble race should remain in bondage. When, therefore, he succeeded to the Caliphate, he decreed : ' The Lord,' he said, ' hath given to us of Arab blood the victory, and great conquests without. It is not meet that any one of us, taken in the days of Ignorance,^ or in the wars against the apostate tribes, should be holden in slavery.' All slaves of the Arab descent were accordingly ran- somed, excepting only such bondmaids as had borne their masters' children. Men who had lost wives or children now set out in search, if haply they might find and claim them. Strange tales are told of some of the disconsolate journeys. Ashath recovered two of his wives taken captive iu Nojeir. But some of the women who had been carried prisoners to Medina preferred remaining with their captors."^ ' " The days of Ignorance, that is, the period preceding Islam." 2 " Two such are named by Tabari, I, page 2i8." " A light ransom was fixed for each Arab slave — seven camels and six young ones. In the case of some tribes which had suffered most severely Concubinage. 203 Even tliis Rpeecli of Omar shows that no one was enslaved dining the wars of Mohammad, as he only refers to the captives of the days of Ignorance before the Prophet, and those taken in wars against the apostate tribes after him having been enslaved. 7. The Koran has never allowed concubinage with female captives. And after the aboli- Concubinage. . , , . tion of future slavery enjoined m the Koran, there is no good in discussing the subject of concubinage, which depends on the legality or otherwise of slavery. The Koran had taken early measures for prevent- ing the evil directly and indirectly, positively and nega- tively. In the first place, it recognizes marriage as the only legal condition of the union of both sexes. Marriage was also enjoined with the existing female slaves. {Vide Sura IV, 3, 29; and XXIV, 32, 33.) The prevention of concubinage is set forth in plain terms in Sura V, 7. The verses run thus : — 3. "And if ye are apprehensive that ye shall not deal fairly with orphans, then of other women who seem good in your eyes marry, hut two or three or four, and if ye still fear that ye shall not act equitably, then (marry) one only; or (marry) the slaves ■whom ye have acquired. Tliis will be more proper that ye may not have numerous families or households. And give women their dowry as a free gift ; but if of their own free will they kindly give up aught thereof to you, then enjoy it as con- venient and profitable." (as the Beni Hanifa, the Beni Kinda, and the people of Oman discomfited at Daba) even this was remitted." Annals of Early Caliphate. By Sir W. Muir, K.C.S.I., LL.D., D.C.L., London, 1S83, pp. 63, 64. 204 Concubinage. 29. " And whoever of you is not ricli enough to marry free- believing women, tlien let liim marry such of your believing maidens as have fallen into your hands as slaves. God well knoweth your faith. Ye are sprung, the one from the other. Marry them then with the leave of their masters, and give them a fair dower ; but let them be chaste and free from fornication, and not entertainers of lovers." — Sura IV. 32. " And marry those among you who are single, and your o-ood servants and your handmaidens. If they are poor, God of his bounty will enrich them. And God is all-bounteous, know- in f. And let those who cannot find a match live in continence till God of his bounty shall enrich them." 33. " And to those of your slaves who desire a deed of manumis- sion, execute it for them, if ye know good in them, and give them a portion of the wealth of God which He hath given you." — Sura XXIV. And you are permitted to marry virtuous women, who are believers, and virtuous women of those who have been given the Scriptures before you, when you have provided them their portions, living chastely icith them without fornication, and not taking con- cubines." — Sura V. ■ The 28tli verse of the fourth Sura does b}'' no means sanction concubinage. It has nothing to do with it. It only treats of marriage. It, together Avith its preceding verse, points out whom we can marry and whom not. Its next verse interdicts concubinage when it enjoins marriage with the then existing slaves. 8. I will here take the opportunity of noticing Maria the Coptic, who is alleged to have Maria tlie Coptic. been a concubine-slave of Moham- mad, although she does not come under the category of prisoners made slaves. According to Sir W. Muir, the Roman Governor of Egypt had written to Mohammad : — Maria the Coptic. 205 " I send for thine acceptance two damsels, liiglil}^ esteemed amono- the Copts."^ The writer converts them at once into " two slave-girls," and remarks, "a strange present, how- ever, for a Christian Governor to make."^ She was neither a captive, nor a slave, nor was she described as such in the Governor's letter. I am at a loss to know why or how she has been treated by the biographers of the Prophet as a slave or a concubine. (1) I have great doubts regarding the truth of the stor}^ tliat ]\[okowkas the Governor had sent two maids to Mohannnad, and taking it for granted they were so^sent, that one of them was the alleged Maria ; (2) it is not a fact that she was a slave; (3) nor a concubine-slave of the Prophet; (4) nor she as such bore a son to him; (5) and lastly, the notorious scandal about her much talked of by European writers is a mere calumny and a false story. It will be a very tedious and irksome task to copy the various traditions bearing on the above subjects and to discuss their autheuticity, and criticise their genuineness, on the principles of the technicalities peculiar to the Science of Traditions, as well as on the basis of scientific and rational criticism. Therefore I will notice only briefly each of the above subjects. 9. (1) That Mohammad had sent a dispatch to Mokow- Dispatch to Mokow- 1^^«' ^^^^^ Roman Governor of Egypt, ^^^- and that in reply he had sent Ma- ria the Coptic maid, together with other presents, to Mohammad, is not to be found in the traditions collected by the best critics of Mohammadan traditions like Bokliari ' Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, page 56, - Ibid, page 57, footnote. 206 Maria the Coptic. and Muslim, who had sifted the whole incoherent mass of genuine and apocryphal traditions regarding the Prophet, and had picked up but a very small portion of them whicli they thought to be relatively genuine. We can fairly conclude that such a tradition, which is related by other non-critics and story-tellers, who have indiscriminately narrated every tradition — whether genuine or apocryphal — like Wakidi and Ibn Stid, was surely rejected by these Imams (Doctors in the Science of Tradition) as having not the least possibility of its genuineness. Even Ibn Ishak (died 150),^ Hisham-bin-Abdul Malik (died 213 A.H.),^ and Abul Mo'tamar Soleiman (died 143 A.H.^)* have not inserted the portion of the tradition of Maria the Coptic maid being sent by the Egyptian Governor to Mohammad. The tradition narrated by Ibn Sad — (1) through Wakidi and Abd-ul-Hamid from Jafar, (2) and Abdullah bin Abdur Rah- man bin Abi Sasata — is undoubtedly apocryphal, Wakidi and Abd-ul-Hamid are of impeached integrity, or no authority at all. Ibn Khallikan, in his Biographical Dictionary, trans- lated by Slane, writes regarding Wakidi: — "The Traditions received from him are considered of feeble authority, and doubts have been expressed on the subject of his {vera- city) " ^ Ibn Hajar Askalani writes regarding Wdkidi in his Tahrih, that " he has been struck off as an authority (literally left out), notwithstanding his vast knowledge." ' Vide Hishamee, page 972. 2 7i; Vide Mizan-ul-Etedal by Zahabi. - Vide Nos. 976, 977. and 978 in the Biographical Dictionary of Persons who knew Mohammad, by Ibn Hajar, published by the Asiatic Society, Bengal, Calcutta, 1870, Vol. IV, pp. 779, 780, and 781. Maria the Coptic. 209 confusion in mixing up maidservants -with slaves or con- cubine-slaves. 12. (4) Those who have converted Maria into a slave or a concubine-slave have furnished Maria had no son. ^ i • her — the creature of their own ima- gination — with a son. There are various traditions as to the number and names of the Prophet's sons, all of whom died in infancy. Some traditions give different names to one, and othei's give as many sons as the names are report- ed. There might have been a son of Mohammad by the name of Ibrahim, but tiiat he was born of Maria the Coptic is a perfect myth. This piece of the story is the continua- tion of the traditions of Ibn Sad, which I have already criticized in paras. 9 and 11. Ibn Sad has related another tradition through Omar bin Asim and Katada to the effect that Mohammad's son Ibrahim was born of a captive woman. Asim has been condemned by Abu Hatim, a doctor and critic in the Mohammadan traditional literature;^ and Katada (died 117 A.H.) was not a contemporary witness of what he relates. Thus he fails in giving any authority to his narration. There are two more traditions in Ibn Sad from similar authorities like Katada, namely, Zohri (died 124 A.H.) and Mak-hool (died 118 A.H.) — not contempora- ries (of Mohammad, but of the class of Tabaeen — to the effect that Mohammad had aaid, " Had Ibrahim lived, the capitation-tax would have been remitted to every Copt ! " and that " Had Ibrahim lived, his maternal uncles would never have been enslaved ! " They do not say who was Ibrahim ! * Vide Mizan, by Zahabi. c 2 210 Maria the Coptic. Another and the last tradition in Ibn Sdd through Yahia bin Hamraad, Abu Avdna, Soleiman-al-Aamash, Muslim, and Bara is to the effect that Ibrahim was born from a Coptic maid of the Prophet. The narrator Soleiman-al-Aamash was a modallis {Tahrih in loco), or in other words, a liar. Besides the whole chain of the narration is Mo-an-an. In none of the canonical collections of traditions like those of Bokhari, Muslim, and others Ibrahim is said to have been born of Maria. Therefore any of their traditions regarding Ibrahim is not against us. It is also related in some genuine traditions that an eclipse of the sun took place on the day of Ibrahim's death.-^ The historians have related only one eclipse, which occurred in the sixth year of the Hejira, when Mohammad was at Hodeibia. This shows that Ibrahim could not be Maria's son. She only could come to Arabia a year later, as the dispatches to several princes were sent only in the seventh year. Yafaee, in his history M irdt-uz-Zaindn, has noted that the sun was eclipsed in the sixth year of the Hejira. In the tenth year, he says, — " A genuine tradition has that the sun was eclipsed on the day of Ibrahim's death, and it has been stated above that it was eclipsed in the sixth year. There is some difficulty. It was noted once only during the time of the Prophet. If it occurred twice, there is no difficulty ; and if not, one of these two events must be wrong, either the eclipse took place in the tenth ' " An eclipse of the sun occurred on the same day, and the people spoke of it as a tribute to the death of the Prophet's son. A vulgar impostor would have accepted and confirmed the delusion ; but Mahomet rejected the idea."—" The Life of Mahomet " by Sir W. Muir, Vol. IV, page 166. Maria the Coptic. 211 year, or the Prophet's son died in the sixth year." But historically the eclipse was noticed ouly in the sixth year. There are different dates of Ibrahim's death reported by the biographers — the fourth, tenth, and fourteenth of lunar months, but in none of them can an eclipse take place. 13. (5) Lastly, I have to notice the infamous calumny ao-ainst Mohammad concocted up by The story of Haplaf5a and Maria a spurious his enemies, that Haphsa surprized the Prophet in her own private room with Maria. " She reproached her lord bitterly, and threat- ened to make the occurrence known to all his wives. Afraid of the exposure and anxious to appease his offended wife, he begged of her to keep the matter quiet, and promised to forego the society of Maria altogether." But he afterwards released himself from it by a special revelation — (Sura LXVI, 1). Sir W. Muir remarks :— '' As in the case of Zeinab, Mahomet produced a message from Heaven, which disallowed his promise of separation from Mary. ..." The passage in the Koran relating to the affair is as follows : — "0 Prophet! "Why hast thou forbidden thyself that which God hath made lawful unto thee,i out of desire to please thy wives ; for God is forgiving and merciful ? " ^ ' " Meaning the company of his female slave." 2 Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, pp. IGl and 162. Taking concubine-slaves was an established and recognized institution of the Arab society, until Mohammad abolished it. Practically the custom has prevailed up to the present time. No blame attached to such alliances in the social system of the Arabs. " The Caliphs of the House of Abbas were all of them the children of concubines except as — Saffah, 212 Maria the Coptic. 14. Now this is perfectly a fictitious story. Neither there was any such afiair, nor is there The affair not no- ticed in the early bio- anything on this head mentioned in the Koran, It is very strange that Sir W. Muir has abruptly left aside, in this instance, all his principal authorities, the Arabian biographers, Ibn Ishak, Wakidi (his secretary), and Tabari. The story is not to be found in any of these biographies, nor in the canonical collections of Bokhari, Muslim, and Tirmizee. Sir W. Muir had himself laid down the rule that only these original authorities are to be depended upon, and the later authors are to be rejected. He writes : — " To the three biographies by Ibn Hisliam, by Wackidi his secretary, and Tabari, the judicious historian of Mahomet will, as his original authorities, confine himself. He will also receive with a similar respect such traditions iu the general collections of the earliest traditionists — Bokhari, Muslim, Tirmizi, &c. — as may bear upon his subject. But he will reject as evidence all later authors, to whose so-called traditions he will not allow any historical weight whatever."^ 15. Bat in this instance. Sir W. Muir, being anxious _ Sir w. Muir's author- ^0 quote his fictitious story to calum- ities nob valid. niate Mohammad, has ceased to be a judicious historian, and deviates from his self-imposed rule. He does not reject the story as he ought judiciously and conscientiously to have done, as it is not to be found in any of the earliest and original authorities mentioned Al-Mahdi, and Al-Amin " (History of Caliphs. By Sayute, Translated by Major Jarret, page 20, Calcutta, 1880). If the story regarding Mo- hammad be true, there was no fear of exposure or ofiEending the wives. ' Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. I, Introduction, page ciii. 3Iaria the Coptic. 213 by him ; on the contrary, he compromises himself by con- descending to quote from secondary and later authors. He writes in a footnote without quoting his original authority : — " Tlie version given in tlie text is accredited by Jeliilood-deen, Yiiliia, Beizawi, and Zamaksbari, &c." (Vol. Ill, page 163.) These authors were neither biographers nor historians, and are therefore no authorities at all. Zamakshari and Beizawi were commentators in the sixth and seventh cen- turies respectively. They give two stories, one regarding Maria and another to the effect that the oath or promise of Mohammad had been to the effect that he would not ao-ain partake of a species of strong-scented honey disliked by his wives. Jelal-ud-deen Mahalli was a commentator of the ninth century of the Hejira. Yahia is not known among the commentators. He may be one of the latest autliors. The commentators are generally no authority in the matter of traditional literature. " To illustrate allusions in the Coran, they are alwaj's ready with a story in point, but unfortunately there are almost always different tales, all equally opposite to the same allusion. The allusion, in fact, was often the father of the story. What was ori- ginally, perhaps, a mere conjecture of supposed events that might have given rise to an expression in the Coran, or was a single surmise in explanation of some passage, by degrees assume the garb of fact. The tradition and the facts which it professes to attest thus, no doubt, often rest on no better authority than that of the verse or passage itself."^ J "The Calcutta Review," Feby. 1SG8, page 374. 214 3Iaria the Coptic. 16. Those commentators who are well versed in the Science of Traditions, as well as doc- The best commenta- tors and traditionists tors in the traditional literature, have refute the story. • ^ j xi • i; at • ^i rejected the story oi Maria as the subject-matter of Sura LXVI, as apocryphal. Baghvi, the author of Misbah (the text of Mishkat), says that the Sura was revealed on the subject of honey, and not in the case of Maria. The latter story is neither in the Sahihain (Bokhari and Muslim), nor has it been narrated in any authentic way. Hafiz Ishmael Ibn Kaseeral Qarashi, as quoted by Kust- Icinee (notes on Bokhari, Vol. YII, page 313), says that the Sura was certainly in the case of honey. Imam Nodvee, in his notes on Muslim, Vol. I, page 463, says : — " In fact it was revealed in the case of the honey, and not in the case of Maria." 17. Sir W. Muir himself admits that the earliest bio- The story not accre- gi'aphers do not relate the story, but dited by the Koran. g^^gg ^ false excuse for his not follow- ing their example. He writes : — " The biographers pass over the scene in decent silence, and I should gladly have followed their example, if the Coran itself Lad not accredited the facts, and stamped them with unavoidable notoriety." ^ The allegation is absurdly false, as everybody can satisfy himself by referring to the Koran, which does not contain the fictitious and spurious story. 18. The currency of the story did neither take place ^, , -L f I during the time of Mohammad, its The story when fab- » ricated. proper age, nor during the lifetime of » The Life of Mahomet, Vol. IV, page 160. Zeinah, 215 the companions. It was fabricated and imposed on some of the Tahaee of weak authority in the second century.^ There is no doubt that the whole story is a sheer fabrication from beofinning: to end. 19. In conclusion, I will offer a few remarks in passing regarding Sir W. Muir's reference Zeinab's case. , ^ here to Zeinab s case. He writes : — " The clifirms of a second Zeinab were by accident discovered ■ Zeid bin Aslam (in Tahrani), who narrates the story, though he does not mention Maria, is a Tabaee (died A. H. i;?6), and does not quote hia authority. Besides, his authority itself is impeached ; ride Ibn Adi in his Kamal. Masrook (in Saeed bin Mansoor) only came to Medina long after Mohammad's death ; therefore his narration, even if it be genuine, is not reliable. Zohak Ibn Muzahim (in Tahrani), also a Tabaee and of impeached authority, narrates it from Ibn Abbas, but he never heard any tradition from him, nor had he even seen him {vide Mzan-ul-Etedal, by Zahabi, and Ansdh, by Sam-aui). His narration must be hence considered as aijocryphal. The ascription of Ibn Omar's (died 73 A. H.) story, not strictly to the point, is untrustworthy. Abu Hurera's narration is also admitted as apocryphal ; vide Bur-rxd- nnansoor, by Soyuti. All these traditions are noted by Soyuti in his Dur-rul-mansoor. The tradition by Nasaee (died 303 A. H.) from Anas (died 90 A. H.) regarding the affair of a slave is equally contradicted by the tradition from Ayesha, the widow of the Prophet, narrated by the traditionist Nasaee in the same place of his collection of traditions. This is the story of the honey. Vide parsi. IG, vbi sujji-a. Ayesha's tradition is more trust- worthy than that of Anas. Hammad bin Salma, a narrator in the ascrip- tion of Anas, has been impeached owing to the confusion of his memory in the later days of his life (vide Tckrecb). Sabit, another link in the same chain, was a story-teller by profession {vide Zahabi s Tabakdt,) 216 Zeinah. too fully before the Prophet's admiring gaze. She was the wife of Zeid, his adopted son and bosom friend ; but he was unable to smother the flame she had kindled in his breast, and by divine command she was taken to his bed." ^ The story is from the beginning to end all untrue. Mohammad knew Zeinab from her infancy, she was his cousin ; and he had himself arranged her marriage with Zeid. When Zeid divorced her, she was thirty-five years old, and possibly could have no charms to fascinate even a stranger. Had she been charming or fair to look upon, Zeid should not have separated himself from her. There is no historical authority for this, or for any other version of the story. The Koran, while treating the subject, has not the slightest reference to any of the stories afterwards made out to the effect that Mohammad had been to Zeid's house, and, having accidentally seen the beauty of Zeinab's figure through the half-opened door; or that the wind blew aside the curtain of Zeinab's chamber, and disclosed her in. a scanty undress, was smitten by the sight. ^ 20. These stories, and I believe a few more varied The stox-y a spurious accounts of the same, like those of the °^^' story of Maria the Coptic, were origin- ally mere conjectures of supposed events that might have given rise to an expression in the Koran (Sura XXXIII, verse 37) — if not wilful misrepresentations of story-tellers and cannot be depended upon. And Nasaee himself has rejected the tradition ascribed to Anas, and is reported to have said that Ayesha's tradition has good ascription, while there is nothing valid in that regarding Maria ; vide Kamalain's Annotations on Jcldlai/i in, loco. » The Life of Mahomet by Sir W, Muir, Vol. IV, page 310. ^ Ibid, Vol. Ill, page 228, and footnote at pp. 229 and 230. Zeinab. 217 and enemies of Islam — which the European writers re- present in the garb of facts. The words of the Koran which liave been the father of the story are : — " And when thou saitlst to Lim unto whom God liad shewn favour, and unto whom thou also hadst shewn favour, ' keep thy wife to thyself, and fear God,' and thou didst hide in thy mind what God would bring to light, and thou didst fear men; but more right it had been to fear God." Tliis shows Mohammad dissuaded Zeid from divorcing his wife, notwitlistanding the great facility of divorce common at that time in Arabia. Sir W. Muir is not justified in copjniig these stories from Tabari. They are not related by earliest biographers from an}'- authentic and reliable source. He ought to have rejected them as spurious fabrications under historical cri- ticism, as he rejects other traditions which are on a better footing of truth than these false and maliciously forged stories. 21. Sir W. Muir has exceeded the limit he himself had Sir W. Muir's conjeo- i^iarked out for a judicious historian tures not justified. ^f Mohammad when he abounds in his wild fancies, and observes — ** Zeid went straightway to Mahomet, and declared his readi- ness to divorce Zeinab for him. This Mahomet declined : ' Keep thy wife to thyself,' he said, ' and fear God.' But Zeid could plainii/ see that these n'ords 'proceeded from luuvilUng lips, and that the Prophet had stdl a longing ei/e for Zeinab."^ » The Life of Mahomet by Sir W. Muir, page 228. The italics are mine. D 2 216 Zeindb. Now this is a mere libellous surmise. He goes on still with his defamatory conjectures, and writes : — " Still the p.assion for Zeinab could not be smothered ; it conti- niied to barn within the heart of Mahomet, and at last bursting forth, scattered other considerations to the wind."l Mohammad never professed to have received a divine command to marry Zeinab. It was not necessary for him to have done so. The outcry raised by the Pagan Arabs was not because they suspected an intrigue on the Prophet's part to secure a divorce, but because they looked upon an adopted son in the light of a true son, ami considered, therefore, the marriage with Zeinab, after her divorce from Zeid, as falling witliin the prohibited degrees. This adop- tive affinity was already abolished in the Koran (Sura XXXII 1, 4) : " God hath not made your adopted sons as your own sons." Sir W. Muir gravely mistakes in his remarks when he says : — "The marriage caused much obloquy, and to save his reputa- tion, Mahomet had the impious effrontery to sanction it by special Revelation from on high, in which the Almighty is repre- sented as formally recording a divine warrant for the union."^ He quotes verse 36, Sura XXXIII. But he has hirpself admitted (Vol. Ill, page 229 footnote) " that this verse is rather in a recitative style of a past event," and not a divine command to marry Zeinab. The words " we joined thee in marriage unto her " in the verse do not mean ' Muir's Life of Mahomet, Vol. III. page 229. The tradition quoted by Sir W. Muir ia this page is apocryphal and technically Mursal. « Ibid, p. 230. Zeinah. 219 a command for marriago. They simply mean tliat the marriage had taken place. The plirase " we joined thee in marriage unto her " is a mere form of expression. Ahnost all human actions are attributed to Gt)d in the Koran, and %vliatever occurs in the world by the ordinary course of nature, and by the free agency of men, is referred in the Koran to the immediate agency of God. 22. In the next verse — " There is no offence charge- able to the Prophet in that which ofirw^MuS"'^^^''''' ^o^^ ^^""^^^ enjoined upon him"— he wrongly translates Faraza as enjoin- ed, and thus conveys an idea of a divine command, Faraza means he made (a thing) lawful or allowable. [See Lane's Arabic Dictionary, Bk. I, Pt. VI, page 2373.] In giving the above meaning Mr. Lane quotes this very verse.^ Such unions were made lawful not only to Mohammad, but for all the Moslems, and there was nothing partaking of a special prerogative for him. No special sanction is conveyed by these verses. No special revelation from on high was brought forward to secure his own object or to give him an exceptional privilege. It was merely said that no blame attached to the Prophet for doing what was lawful. The word " Amr," translated " command " and " behest," in XXXIII, 87 and 38, by Sir W. Muir and others, in fact means here and in other similar passage (XIX, 21 ; IV, .50; XI, 76 ; and VIII, 43, 46),— God's foreknowledge of future 1 " (T. A.) he viade [a thing] lawful, or alloivnile, to him (Jel in XXXIII, 38, and Kull in page 275 and T. A.*) relating to a case into which a man has brought himself (Kull) : this is said to be the meaning when the phrase occurs in the Kur :" An Arabic-English Lexicon, by Edward William Lane, page 2373. 220 Zeinah. continsfencies and not a lesjal command. The same is the case with the word " Qadr " in XXXIII, 88, as well as in XV, 60, and LXXIII, 20, which means God's prescience and not a predestinated decree. 23. In conclusion, Sir W. Muir remarks : — ** Our only matter of wonder is that tlie Revelations of Maho- met continued after this to be regarded In Zemab s case no exceptional privilege by his people as inspired communications was secured. ,.1-1 t , irom the Almighty, when they were so palpably formed to secure his own objects, and pander even to his evil desires. We hear of no doubts or cjuestionings, and we can only attribute the confiding and credulous spirit of his followers to the absolute ascendency of his powerful mind over all who came within its influence. "^ The verses 37 and 38 of the thirty-third Sura had not in any way "secured the objects of Mohammad, much less pandered to his evil desire." As his marriage with Zeinah had taken place long before they were published, they could not be said to confer any exceptional privilege upon hira. 24. The story copied by commentators that Mohammad had accidentally seen Zeinab and ad- The false story traced j^.g^-^ ^i^^ jg ^^.^^^^ ^^ Muk^til,^ a to Mukatil. . ' commentator of the Koran in the second century, who died at Basra 150 A.H. " The doctors {in traditions)," writes Ibn Khallikan in his Biographical Dictionary, translated by Slane, " differ in opinion respect- ing M ukcitil : some declare that, as a traditionist, he was ' The Life of Mahomet, Vol. Ill, page 231. 2 Vide Sec rat Halali ; or, Insan-nl-Oijoon, Vol. II, page 402. Zeinab. 221 worthy of confidence, and othoi's accus(yl liira of falsehood. . . . Ahmed bin Saiyiii" says : — ■ " Mukdtil Ibn Sulaiman, a native of Balkh, went to Marw, "whence he proceeded to Inik. His veracity is suspected ; his Traditions shoukl be left aside and declarations should be rejected. Speaking of the divine attributes, he said things which it would be sinful to repeat." Ibrahim Ibn Yakub-al- Juz-Jani called Mukatil an audacious liar. Abu Abd ar- Rahman an Nasai said : — " Liars notorious for forging Tradi- tions and passing them off as coming from the Proj^hefc were four in number: Ibn Abi Yaiiya, at Medina; Al- Wakidi, at Baghdad; Mukatil Ibn Sulaiman, in Khorasan ; and Muhammad Ibn Said, surnamed Al-Masluh, in Syria." Waki Ibn al-Jarrah said of Mukatil that he was a con- firmed liar. Abu Bakr al-Ajurri said : " I asked Abu Dawtid Sulaiman Ibn al Ashath concerning Mukatil, and he answered : — ' All Traditions given b}' him should be reject- ed.' According to Omar Ibn al-Ghallas, Mukatil Ibn Sulaiman was a liar, and his traditions were to be rejected." " As for Mukatil Ibn Sulaiman," said Al-Bukhari, " pass him over in silence." In another place, he says of him : " He is just nothing at all." Yahya Ibn Moin declared that Mukatil's traditions were of no value ; and Ahmad Ibn Hanbal said : "As for Mukatil Ibn Sulaiman, the author of the Commentary, I should not like to cite anything on his authority." " His Traditions are to be rejected," said Abu Hatim ar-Razi. According to Zakari^^a Ibn Yahya as-Saji, people said of Mukatil Ibn Sulaiman, the native of Kho- rasan, " that he was a liar, and that his traditions should be rejected." ^ ' Ibn Khallikau'a Biographical Dictiouary, Vol. IIJ, pp. 40y-410. 222 Zeinab. Ikrama (died 107 A. H.), another liar, had only surmised before Mukatil that Mohammad might have admired Zeinab. His words, as related by the traditionists, Abd bin Hamid and Ibn-al- Munzar, are "as if she had fallen deep in his mind."^ But Mukatil has converted this hazardous conjecture into a fact. Abd Allah Ibn al-Harith relates as follows : — " I went to visit Ali, tlie sou of Abd Allah Ibn Abbas, and I saw Ikrama tied up at the door of a privy, on which I said : ' Is it thus that you treat your slave ? ' To which he replied. ' Know that that fellow has told lies of my father.' "2 Mohammad bin Yahya bin Habban ^ (died 121 A.H.) has also given the tradition of Moham- Mohammad bin Yahya. mad's admiriug Zeinab at Zeid's house, but does not give his authority. He was not a contempo- rary narrator, therefore his narration is apocryphal and technically Mursal. 25. All these silly fables, wild romances, and scan- dalous conjectures have their origin in Katada's conjectural ^ _ _ interpretation not war- Katada's improper interpretation of ranted. . , these words, " and thou didst hide m thy mind what God would bring to light" (Sura XXXIII, 37). Katada (died 117 A. H.) C(mjectured that the Prophet con- cealed his desire that Zeid should divorce Zeinab. But all other authors* have found fault with Katada in his surmise, ' Vide Du7--rul-man.soor, by Sayiiti, iii, loco. '^ Ibn Khallikan's Biographical Dictionary, Vol. II, page 207. ^ Narrated by Ibn Sad and Hakim. * Vide Abdur Razzak. Abd bin Hamid, Ibn Jarir, Ibn-al-Monzar, Ibn Abi Hatim, and Tubrdni's Collections of Traditions. Zeinab. 223 wiiich Is not supported by any woTd in the text or by any contemporary evidence. This interpretation of Katada is contradicted by tlie very words of Moliammad to Zcid in the same verse : " Keep tliy wife to thyself and fear God." 26. Many liave been tlie conjectures as to wliat did Mohammad liide in his mind. There Other conjectures. is one by Katada ah'eady ex))lained. Another is this, that he I'rnew Zeid would divorce her, but concealing this in his mind, he interdicted Zeid from doing so. A third conjecture is tills, that he concealed in his mind that if Zeid, contrary to his (Mohammad's) advice, were to divorce her (Zeinab), he (Mohammad) would many her. These conjectures are all far-fetched and arbitraiy, but it appears more probable that the social inharmony and domestic disturbances between Zeid and Zeinab, and their resolve of sej)aration, were withheld from the public by Mohammad, fearing the scandal it might give rise to among his enemies. This is the only secret referred to in the verse so often cited. gH^piinrlh (^, The references to the particular events and circum- stances relating to the defensive wars mentioned in the Koran, quoted and referred by me in this work, may be classified as follows : — I. — The Persecutions of the Koreish at Mecca (B. H. 10—1). Suraxvi, 43, 44, 111. Sura ii, 210, 214, 215. Sura iii, 194. Sura iv, 97, 99, 100. Sura xxii, 57. Sura Ix, 8, 9. Sura xlvii, 14. Sura xlviii, 25. Sura ix, 40, 48, 95. II. — The Aggressions of the Koreish at Medina, AS well as those of the Inhabitants thereof (A. H. 10). Sura ii, 214 ; Sura viii, 72 ; Sura ix, 13, 48, 72. III. — The Wars of Defence against the Koreish and THE Arabs, &c., with several References to their Aggressions (A. H. 1 — 8). Sura xxii, 39 — 42. Sura ii, 186—189, 214, 215, 245, 247, 252. Sura iv, 76—78, 86, 91, 93. Sura viii, 19, 39—41, 58—66, 73, 74. Sura ix, 10, 13. E 2 226 Authorities cited. IV. — The Various Battles, &lc. (1) The Battle of Bach- (A. H. 2). Sura iii, 11, 119 ; Sura viii, 5—19, 39—52, 66—72 ; Sura xlvii, 4, 15. (2) The Battle of Ohad (A. H. 3). Sura iii, 117—122 ; 134—154 ; 159—162. (3) The Second Battle of Badr (A. H. 4), and The Expulsion of the Bani Nazeer (A. H. 4). Sura iii, 167 ; and Sura lix, 2 — 14. (4) The Battle of Ahzdb (A. H. 5). Sura xxxiii, 9 — 25. (5) The Jeivs, Bani Koreiza, £;c. (A. H. 5). Sura viii, 58 — Q)(o ; Sura xxxiii, 26-27. (6) The pilgrimic Expedition to Hodeihia (A. H. 6). Sura xlviii, 1—3, 10, 11, 24, 25 ; Sura Ix. (7) The Expedition to Khyher (A. H. 7). Sura xlviii, 17, 20—22. (8) The breach of the truce of Hodeihia hy the Koreish (A. H. 8). (a) Before the Conquest of Mecca. Sura ix, 1 — 15. (5) After the Conquest of Mecca. Sura ix, 16—24. (9) The Battle of Honain (A. H. 8). Sura ix, 25 — 27. (10) After the Battle of Honain (A. H. 9). Sura ix, 28. (11) The Expedition to TahuJs against the Christians {Romans) and their Jeiuish Allies (A. H. 9). (a) Exhortation to go to war in defence. Sura ix, 29—41, 124, Authorities cited. 227 (6) Backwardness reproached. 42-52, 56-57, 82—90. (c) Exhortations for contribution. 53—55, 58—60, 81. (cZ) The disaffected chided. 65—76, 121, 122, 125—130. {e) The Bedouins reprobated. 91—102. (/) The penitents forgiven. 103—107, 118. THE END, INDEX. A. A amir. Hi. Aamir biu Tofoil, chief of Bani Aamir, xlvi. Abbas, 34. Abd-bin Hamid. 100/. ?i.. 222. Abd biu Kosayy. xxxiii. Abd Monat, xvii/. m. Abd Shams, xxviii. 7. Abdel Malik ibn Hishara, 72/. n., Tiif. n. Abd-ud-Dar, xxxiii. Abd-ul-Kays, xlvi, lii. Abdul Hamid, 20f), 208. Abdul Rahman, Mohammad's instruction to him, xxvii. Abdullah, 96, 97. Abdullah bin Abdur Rahaman bin Abi Sasta, 20G, 208. Abdullah bin al Harith, 222. Abdullah bin Jahsh, 3 1 , 56. Abdullah bin Khalal, 96. Abdullah bin Omar, 68 /. n. Abdullah ibn Abbas, 135. Abdullah ibn Masood, 79. 80. Abdullah ibn Oneis, 69, 73. Abdullah ibn Rawaha. 72, 102. Abdullah ibn Shuburma ibn Tufail ad Dubbi, 136. Abdullah ibn Zubair, 13.5. Abdur Razzak, 110/. n. Abs, xxxiv, xli, xlii, xlvi. Abu Abd-ur-Rahman Abdullah ibn Omar ibn-al Khattab, 13.5. Abu Abd-ur Rahman an Nasai, 221. Abu Afak, 61. 64, 65. Abu Avana, 210. AbuBakr, vi, lix, 9, 179. Abu Bakr al Ajurri, 221. Abu Barda, 83. AbuBasir, 98, 99, 101. Abu Bera Amr ibn Malik, a chief of Bani Aamir, xlvi. Abu Cobeis, 6. Abu Daood, his book of Jihad, 71/ «., 78/ n., 79, 80 / «., 96, 133, 207. Abu Hattim, 207, 209. Abu Hurera, 215. F 2 230 Index. Abu Jahl, 7, 55. Abu Naeem, 78. Abu Obeida, 107. Abu Omar-ad-Damishki, 08/. n. Abu Omar-al-Madni, 107. Abu Rafe, chief of the Baui Xazeer, Gl, 71-72. Abu Sofian, viii, 7, 11, li, 31, 32, 34, 53, 55, 56, 74, 7.5, 76; attempted assassination of, 61. Abu Talib, 6 ; his death, 7. Abu Yola, xxii. Abu Zara, 208. Abul Bakhtari, 34. Abul Hukeik, the chief of Bani Nazeer, 39. Abul Mo'tamar Soleiman, 89, 197, 200, 206. Abul Ozza, 76, 80, 81. Abwa, Expedition of, 29. 56. Abyssinia, The emigration of the Moslems to, v, xxxiii, 5 ; the two emi- grations of, 11 ; Nadhir ibn Hareth's flight to, 78, 179. Age, The Apostolic, 109. Ahl Hadis, 160. Ahmas, liii. Ahmed bin Hanbal, 221. Ahmed ibn Abi Daood, 113. Ahmed Khan, Syed ; his Commentai-y of the Koran, 95/. n, Ahzab, vii, xxii, xxiii, 10, 197. Ainee. a Commentary of the Hedaya, 125, 132, 134/ n. ' Ajtabada, 164. Ajtahada fil Amr, 164. Akhnas, 99. Al-Aamash. 135. Al-Amaran, 182. Al-Amin, 212/ n. Al-Auzai, 135. Ali. 9,80, 196. All bin Abdullah bin Abbas. 68. Al-Is, 57. Al-Lat, 7. Allah, 38. Allauddin Al Haskafi. 170 Almotarrazi. 164. Al-Mamun, Khalif, 136. Al Yafi. 136. Amalekites, 153. Amar, commissioned to fight with Abu Sofian. 74, 81, 219. Amar-bin-Dinar, 134, 135, 136. Ameer Ali, Moulvie, quoted, 90. Tndex. 231 Anil-. (",4. Ami- bin Saasaa. xxxiv. xli. Aiiiru ibu Omerga. 75. Anaza, liii. Anuajmns Saqib (star of piercing railiaiice), xxxvi. Annals of the Eastern Caliphate quoted, 193, 202. Ans, 9:3/. ?(... VM\, 197-198, 215. Ans bin Qizi, 89. Ansab, 215. Ausars, people of Medina. 32, 41. Apartment, The (Sura), 188. Arabs, their society, ii, 26 ; pagan, 125. Arafat, xlviii. Arqam, Slohammad sought refuge in the liouse of, xxxiii. Asad, xii, xiii. xxxiii, xlvi, liii. Asas of Zamakhshire, 103/. «.. IG4. Ashar, xvi. Ashja, xii, xiii, xlii, xliii, xlv. Ashraf, G6. Asim, 80. Aslam. xliii. Asma bint Marwan. 61, 62— 64. Assemblies of aU Hariri, translated by Thomas Chenry, 169. As Sauri. 137. As Shabi, 136. Astromancy of the Jinns, xxxvi. Ata. 68. 116/ «., 134. Ata ibn Abi Rabah, 135. Autas. xxiii, 16. Aws Allah, xxxix. Aws Tribes (The), xxxix, xlii. xliv. Ayesha, 215, 216. Ayla. the Christian chief, xix. ^ Azd. xlv, liii. Azdite Tribes (The), xxxix, xlv. Azhar, 99. Azruh, The Jews of, xix. B. Badr. vi, vii, viii, ix, x, xi, xxii, xli. xlii. 10 ; the battle of. 11, 32. 34 ; Nadhir executed at, 78, 110/ «., 170, 181, 196. Baghdad, 221. Baghvi, 224. Bahrein, 11. Baihakee, his traditions. 114. Balca, 40. 232 Index. Balkh, 22. Bahila, liii. Balira, liii. Bajila, liii. Bakka. xxxiv, liii. Bakr, xvii, xxviii, xli, xlii, liii, 15, 22, 53. Bali, xlvi, liv. Bariq, liv. Baus, Meaning of, xxi. Bir Manna, xii. Boas, Battle of. xlii. Bokharee, xxii, 96, 134, 199, 207. C. Calcutta Review (The) quoted, 213. Campaigns of Mohammad by Wackidi, 78/. «., 102, 197, 198. Canaan, 140. Canaanites, 153, Capitation-tax, 120, 159. Cattle, The (Sura), 183. Caussin de Perceval, xxvii. Cazenove, Dr., xxvii. Chaldean, xxxv. Chenry, Thomas, quoted, 169. Chosroes, 140. Christians, 141, 142, 147, 157. Code, The Hanafee, 137, 159. Commentary of the Koran, 154. Commentai'y on International Law, xxx. Concubinage not allowed by the Koran, 193; of Rihana with the Prophet not proved, 201 ; of Maria the Coptic, 204—211 ; of Haphsa and Maria, 211. Coppee's (Henry) History of the Conquest of Spain by the Arabs quoted, xxix. Corinthians, 1, vii, 12 — 16 ; vii, 15, 112. Cow, The (Sura), 181. Creator, The (Sura), 181. Cushite Tribes (The), xxxv. Cyrus, 145, D. Dahis, The war of, xli. Daniel. The Book of, xxxv. Daree, liv. Dar-ul-Harb. 157, 158. Dar-ul-Islam, 157, 168. David, 152. huUv. 233 Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, xxiv. Descriptive Astronomy by Chambers quoted, xxxvi. Deutroaomy, xx, 20, 1 10. Ditto, XX, 10—17, 152. Ditto, xxi, 153. Ditto, vi, 5, 178. Dhnmra. .'50. Dictionary, Biographical, by Ibn Khallikau quoted, i;?.j — 1:57, 20(1.230. Dictionary, Biographical, of persons who knew Mohammad, 208. Dihya sent by Mohammad to the Roman Emperor, xiii, li)7. Ditch, Battle of the, 13, 35. Dods, Dr., quoted, Ix, Ixxiii, Ixxxiii. Dous, xlv. Duma, The Christian chief of, xix, 12. Dumatal Jandal, xii. Dur-rul-Mansoor, 215, Dur-rul-Mukhtar, 170. Dzu Nowas, xxxix. E. Early Caliphate and rise of Islam, by Sir W. Muir, HO. Egypt, 110 ; Governor of, 205, 20G. Exodus, xxiii, 27 — 33, 151. Extraordinary Popular Delusions, by Charles Mackay, quoted, xxxviii. F. Fadak, \of.n., 39. Fakhr-ud-deen Razi, 178. Faraza, 219. Farwa, liv. Fasad, The war of, xliii. Fayoomee, Author of Misbahel Moneer, 164. Females in connection with the treaty of Hodeibia, 110- 112. Fezara, xiii, xxxiv, xlii, xlv, xlvi, liv, 35, 39 ; executed by Abu Rafe, 71, Fitnah (Persecutions), ii, xvii, 17, 18, 44, 45, 122, 133. Fluegel, Translation of the Koran by, 120. Forbidding, The (Sura), 185. Freeman, Dr., quoted, 140, 141. Fruit-trees, 109-110. Furkan, 177. Fyrozabadee, 163/. n, G. Ghaba, Al, 93. Ghafiq, liv. Ghauim, liv. Ghassan, The tribes of, xxxiv, xlii. xlvi, liv. Ghassauide, Prince at Bostra (The), xxxix, 16, 139. Ghatafauj xii, xiii, xli, 12, 35, 39 : tribes of, 72, 89, 2U Index. Ghaus, xliii. Ghazavat. IMeaning of the word, xxi. Ghifar. xliii. Ghussan, 40. Gibbon quoted, xxiv, 26, 40/. n. Green, The Revd. Samuel, quoted, xxiii-xxiv. H. Habbar, 113/. n. Hafasa, xxxiv. Hafiz Ishmael ibu Kaseer-al-Qarashi, 214. Hakeem-bin-Hizam, 114. Halabi, 30 ; lusau-al-Oyoon of, 91 ; quoted and refuted, 129 — 132. Hall's (William Edward) International Law, xxix. Hallam, Ixiii, Ixv. Hamadan, liv. Hammad bin Salma, 21.5. Hamra, Abul Ozza caught at, 81, 82. Hamza, 29, 55 Hanafee Code (The), 137, 159. Hanifa, xxxiv, xxxix, liv, Iv, 203. Haphsa, 211. Harb (Warfare). 1G3. Harb-fijar, Battle of, xli. Haris, xxxiii. xxxiv, xlii, Iv, 48 /. ii., 64, 106. Harith of Najran, xxxix. Harith ibn Amir, 34. Hashim, xxxiv, 34. Hashimites (The), xxxiii, 6. Hatib's story, 187. Hawazin, xlii, xliii, xlvi, xlviii. 16, 39, 86, 196. Hazaramaut, li. Hedaya (The), 116 ; quoted, 117, 118, 120, 125. Hegira (The), 8. Hilal bin Amr, bin Saasaa, Iv. Hims, 40. Himyar, xliii, xlvi. Iv. Himyarite stock, xlv. Hinzala Tribe (The), xxxiv. Hira, The Kingdom of, xli. Hisham, 34. Hishami, xxxiii, 74, 81/. n., 89, 196, 197, 200. Hisham-bin-Abdul Malik, 206. History and Conquest of the Saracens quoted, 140, 141. History of European Morals quoted, 105. History of Mohammadanism (The), quoted, xxviii. History of the Conquest of Spain by the Arabs, xxix. Imle.r. 235 History, The Jewish, \'^2. Hodeibia, Truce of , xi, xiv; violation of the truce, xvi. xxvi. xliii. xlix. IH, 22, 86 ; one of the articles of the treaty of Ilodtibia. !>0 ; females in connection with it, 110, 19G. Honaiu, xviii, xxii, xlvii, Ki; Nadhir ibn Ilarith piescnt at the Battle of, 78,86, 196. Home, T. H., 151. Hughes, The Revd. T. P., quoted, loi. Huweisa, 106, 107. I. Ibn Abbas; his evidence, 68, 96, 113, 215. Ibn Abdeon, 127, Ibn Abi Yahya, 221. IbnAdi,215. Ibn Al Athir, 30. 164/. n. Ibn al Ky-yim, 100. Ibn al Mosayyib, 68. Ibn Attiah, 170. Ibn Hajr al Askalani, 68. 206, 208 ; quoted and refuted, 12S. 129. Ibn Hisham, xv, xxii, xxxvi, xlvii, 30, 63, 64, 68 /. n., 69, 71, 74, 78, 80, 82, 86, 91, 92, 93 /. n., 102, 106, 107, 109/. «., 207, 214. Ibn Ishak, xxii, 30, 64, 69, 71, 73, 74, 79, SO, 91, 93/ m., 100, 106, 109/ M, 206, 207. Ibn Jarir Tabari, 93/. n. Ibn Khaldun. 90. Ibn Khallikan's Biographical Dictionary quoted, 136 /. n., 137, 206. 220. Ibn Maja, 113,207. Ibn Mauda, 78. Ibn Mardaveih, 93 / «., 109/ n. Ibn Mas-ood, 79, 80. Ibn Mokrram, 163/ n. Ibn Ockba, 109/ n. Ibn Omar, 21.5. Ibn Omeya, 74. Ibn Sad Katib Wakidi, xxii, 63, 69, 74, 7.5, 78, 114. 206. 208, 210. Ibn Sanina, 106. 107. Ibn Sayyad al Nas, 89. Ibn Shahab, 113. Ibn Shobormah, 134. Ibn Sirui, 136. Ibn Sofian, 114. Ibrahim, 80. Ibrahim, the son of Mohammad, 209. 210. Ibrahim bin Maisura, 68 /. n. Ibrahim ibn Yakub al Juz Jani, 221. 236 Index. Idolatry'. IMohammmTs nbhorence of, C. Ii^norauce, Time of. 87, 1G9, 202. Ikrama biu Abi Jabl, bis lying cbaracter, OS. 113, 222. Iinara (Tbe). 117 ; tbe Mujtabid, l."G, 200. Immunity, The (Sura), 185, 188, 189, 190, 191. lusan-ul-Oyoon, 30, 80/ n., 81/ «.. 91/ «., 102, 129. 131 / n. International Law, by W. E. Hall, quoted, xxix. Intolerance of tbe Koreisb, 8 ; allegation on Mohammad, xxxi, 42, .51. Introduction of the Book, p. i. Introduction of the critical study and knowledge of the Holy Scrii^- tures, by T. H. Home, quoted, 151. 152. Irak, 221. Irsbadussari, 170. Irving, W., quoted. 74, Islam, the first propagation at Mecca, xxxii — xli; the impediments it received on account of internecine wars, xl. Islam under the Arabs, by Major R. D. Osborn. quoted. 14G, 148. Islami i:)oets, 165, 1G9. Israel, 152, Israelites commanded to slay tbe Canaanites, 151. Istizan, 38. J. Jaad, Iv. Jaafir bin Kelab ibn Rabia, Iv. Jabir, xxii. Jabir ibn Abdullah, G8, 135. Jabra, The Jews of, xix. Jadila, xliii. Jafar, 20G, 208. Jahad, 170, 192. Jabada, 163, 166, 170, 191. Jabada fil Amr, 163. Jabada fi Sabeel Allah, 164, 170. Jahadaka, 1G6, 173. Jabadoo. 166, 173, 179, 180, 181, 182, 188, 189, 191. Jabd, 166. 167, 170, 181, 183. Jabid, 166. 173, 185. Jabid-hom, 166. Jahidoo, 166, 173, 175, 176, 180. Jahili, 165, 168. Jaliit (Goliath), 152. Jarrefs (Major) Translation of History of Caliphs by Sayute, 212. Jazima, 87. Jedda, Tbe abode of Bani Ashar, xlv. Jeifer bin al Jalandi, Ivi. Jelalud-Deen Mahalli, 213. Index. 237 Jews (The) of Medina, iv, 34 — 40, 7:5 ; excited to take up arms by Nueim, 107, 125, 131), 141, 142, 147, 157. Jierana, The valley of, 19G. Jihad, The popular, 114— IGl, meaning defined, 155; does not mean war or crusade, IGS; classical meaning- of Jihad, &c., 1G3; post-classical or technical meaning of Jihad, 1()4; the classical tongue and Arabian poets, 165 ; the conjugation and declination of Jahd and Jihad, 1G6; the number of instances in which they occur in the Koran, IGG; in what sense they are used in the Koran, 1G7 ; conventional significations • of, 168; Mohammadan commentators quoted, 170; when the word 'Jihad' was diverted from its original signification to its figurative meaning, of waging religious war, 170 ; all the verses of the Koran containing the word Jihad and its derivatives quoted and explained, 171 — l'J2. Jihadan, 1G4, 170, 175, 186, Jinn, Tribe of, xxxiv — xxxviii. Jizya, 35. Johd, 167,169. Joheiua, xlii, xliii. xlvi. Ivi, Jomahites (The), xxxiii. Joshua, 141, 153. Jouhari, 163/. 7i., 164. Judzam, xiii, xlvi, 40. Jufi, Ivi. Juzam, see Judzam. K. Kaaba, viii ; Moslems prevented from, xlv, 5, 139 ; stripped of its idols, xlix. 1. Kab, xxxiv, Ivi. Kab bin Yahooza, 107. Kab ibn Ashraf. 61, G6— 68. 106. Kahins. xxxv, xxxvi. xxxviii; Kahinite stock (The), xlv. Kahlanite stock, xxxix, xlv, xlvi. Kainuka, xlii, 34, 35. Kalb, xxxiv, Ivi. Katib Wakidi, xlvi. Kent's Commentai-y on International Law, xxx. Khalid ibn Waleed, 87, 193. Khasafa, xlvi. Khas-am bin Ammar, Ivi. Khaulan, Ivi. Khazraj tribes, xxxix. xlii, xliv. Khozaa, xii, xvi, xvii, xliii, 123. Khozeimah, xxxiv. Khushain, xlv. Khyber, xiii, xviii, xxii, xxiii, 37/. n. G 2 238 Index. Kifaya, 122, 125, Kilab, lii. Kinana, Tortures of, Ivi, 95 ; Bani, lii. Kinda, xxxiv, xlii, Ivi. Kitab-ul-Maghazi, xxii. Kital (Warfare), 163, 192, 193. Koostlanee, his Commentary of Bokharee, xxii, 92, 93, 170. Koran does not enjoin compulsory conversion, xxxi. everywhere preaches tolerance of every religion, xxxii. Koreish, ii, iii. iv, v, vi, vii, ix, x, xi, xii, xiii, xxiv, xxxiii, xxxix ; the heavy persecutions of, 1 ; their embassy to the Court of Abyssinia, 5 ; send Bcouts to search for Mohammad, 9 ; their severity to fugitives, id. ; their maltreatment of children and women, id. ; become more and more hostile. 11 ; joined by the Bani Slustalik, 12 ; their anxiety to postpone hostilities, 13 ; besiege Medina once more, 14 ; violate the treaty of Hodeibia. xvi, 15; their intolerance, 27 ; excited to take up arms by Nueim, an Arab, 101, 139, 187. Koreishite persecution, xxxiv ; caravans alleged to be intercepted, 55, 56. 67. Koreiza, The Jewish tribes of, xiii, xix, xxii, xlii, 14, 34 ; execution of, 87—94, 196—200. Kotelu, 156. Koukabi Durrari Sharah. 68. Kozaaite Tribe (The), xliii, xlvi. Kufa, 136 ; the abode of Bani Shaitan, xxxiv. Kulab, xlii. Kunniat (patronymic), 208. Kurz-bin-Jabir, a Koreish, commits a raid upon Medina, xi, 11, 92. Kustalani, vide Koostalanee. L. La-Arjomonnaka (I will assuredly say of thee), xxxviii. Lahyan, xii, 12, 69. Lakhm, 40. Lane, E. W., quoted, 137-138/. n., 168-169. Lane's Arabic-English Lexicon, xxxviii, 163/. n., 164, 167, 200, 219. La-taatadii (do not attack first), xxvii. Law, The common, in connection with Jihad, 116-117 ; its commentators, 119-120. 158. Law of Moses (The), 110, 140. Law of Scriptural interpretations ; limited or conditional, general or absolute, 118. Law of the Koran with regard to unbelievers. 111. Law, The Mohammadan Revealed, or the Koran, 159. Lecky, his standard of Morality, 104-105. Lecture, The Rede, quoted, 140. Leena, 110. Index. 239 Legists, The early Moslem, against Jiliad, 134 ; their biographical sketches, 135 — 137. Leith. lo/. n. Lieber Fnmcis quoted, 33, 76. 88 ; on Military necessity. 101. Life of Muhomet, founder of the Religion of Islamism, by the Revd. S. Green, xxiv. Life of Mohammad by Dr. Sprenger quoted, xxiv. Light, The (Sura), 18.5. Lisanul-Arab of Ibn Mokarram, 163. Loghat, or The Classical Tongue of Arabia, 105. Lokman, 177. Luke, X, 27 j and xiii, 124, 178. M. MacColl, The Revd. Malcolm, quoted, 157. Macna, The Jews of, xix. Maddool Kamoos. by Mr. Lane, 164. Maghazi. 38, 187 (accounts of the Campaigns of Mohammad), xlir. Mahmud, killed by Kinaua. 9.3. Mahmud bin Muslama, brother of Mohammad bin Muslama^ 95, 197. Mahrah, Ivi. Mak-hool, 209. Malak, 38. Malik, 38. Manakib, 199. Marafat. Anwaa ilra Hadees, 68. Maria the Coptic, 204 ; sent by the Roman Governor to Mohammad, 205 ; neither a slave nor a concubiue, 20(J— 20S ; had no son, 209 ; the spurious character about her story, 211, 214, 216. Mark, XII, 30, p. 178. Marr-al Zahran. xlviii. Marriage, a strict bond of union in the Koran, 113. Marw, 221. Marwan, 62. Masrook,79, 215. Mecca, xvi, xxii, 7. Meccans, iii, 9; their invasion of Medina, 10, 32. Medina, 100; Koreish march upon, vi, vii, xiii ; the flight of Mohammad to, 0. Mesopotamia, xxxv, xlviii. Mikyas ibn Subaba, 96, Mill's (Charles) History of Mohammadanism quoted, xxviii, Mirat-uz-Zaman, 210. Misbah-ul-Moneer of Fayoomee, 164, 214. Mishkat (Book of Retaliation), 71 /. n., 96/. n, Mizan-ul-Etedal, 68, 208, 210, 215 Moadd, xlvi. 240 lucle.v. Moadrlite stock (The), xxxiv. xliii, xlvii. Mo-fin-an, 210. Moavia ibn Mughira, 76, 81—83. Modallis. 210. Modern Egyptians of Lane, 137, 138. Mohajirin (Refugees), 32. Jloharib, xxxiv, Ivi. Moharram, 23 /. n., 53. Mojahadatan. 161. Mojahadina, 181. Mojabadoona, 181. Mojahid. 15.5, 184. Mojabiddin, 155. Mojabidina, 166. 171. 184. Mojabi.doona, 166. 171. 181. Moleil bin Zamra. xliii. Mohammad, his incapacity to undertake offensive wars against hia enemies, the Koreisb, pp. ii, iv, v; bad no intention to waylay the caravans at Badr, viii — x ; his singular toleration and his wars of self- defence, xiv ; the number of his wars, xx, xxiii ; considered a sangui- nary tyrant by the Revd. M. Green, xxix ; defence of his allegation, xxiv-xxv ; a second view of the wars of Mohammad, xxviii — xxx. His imprisonment, his preaching at Tayif, xxxiv ; his followers persecuted, 1; insults offered him, 5 ; prevented from offering his prayers, id. ; his preaching against idolatry, 6 ; his insecurity at Mecca. 7 ; sets off to Tayif, id ; proscribed by the Koreisb, 9 ; hides himself for three days in a cave, \d ; gains the battle of Badr, 10 defeated and wounded at Obad, 12 ; fights the battle of the Ditch. 11 undertakes the lesser pilgrimage of Mecca, \d ; encamps at Hodeibia. 15 marches to defend the Bani Khozaa, 16 ; his wars purely defen- sive, 17—26 ; was justified in taking up arms, 27 ; his attacks mere acts of retaliation, 33 ; gives quarters to his enemies, and enters into a treaty with the Jews, 34—10; his last war with the Romans, 41 ; never taught intolerance, 43 ; the object of his wars, .50-51 ; his alleged interceptions of the Koreish caravans, 55 — 57 ; the alleged interceptions proved impossible. 58 ; the assas.sinations said to have taken place at his own instructions, GO— 76 ; his alleged cruelty in executing the prisoners of war, 76 — 83 ; represented as directing the execution of the prisoners of Badr ; 83 — 85 ; his kind treatment of the prisoners of war, 85 — 87 ; had no share in the execution of a singing girl as alleged by his biographers, 96-97 ; never refused Abu Basir from going back to his guardian, 99; his adherence to the treaty of Hodeibia, 100 ; never gave any permission for the murder of Sanina, 106-107 ; his Koran never teaches aggressive wars, 125 ; Freeman Stephens, Bosworth Smith. George Sale. Major Osborn, the Revd. Wherry, the Revd. Hughes, and the Revd. MacColl, on the wara of Mohammad, 116 — 161. Index. 241 Moliammtui (Snra).lSI. Moljiimmad bin Isliak, 08. Moliammad biu Kobcib Hasbimi, 80. Mobaramad bin Mushima, 9."). Mohamma.l bin Sad Kalib Wakidi, 68, 201, 207. IMobammad bin Sireen, 08. IMobammad bin Yabya bin Habban. 222. Mohammad. Buddha and Christ, by Dr. Dods. quoted. Ixxiv. Mohammad Karamat-ul AH of Delhi, 100/. n. JTohammad and Moliammadauism, by B. Smith, quoted, 143, Mokatil, 184. 220-221. ]\Iokhadrams. poets, 105, 109. Jlokowkas, the Roman Governor, 205. Moleil-bin-Zamra. xliii. ]\rooahib of Koostlauee, 93/. n. Mooltan. 109. Morad, Ivi. Jlorocco, 169. Mosaic injunctions. 153. Moses. The law of, 110. 140. 141, 145, 150, 152, 153. ]\Iosheim, Dr.. quoted, Ixi, Ixiii, Ixv. Moslems forced to resort to arms in pure self-defence, 10 ; threatened by Abu Sofian with an attack, 7. 13. Moslim. his collections. 71/. n., 80, 196, 198, 210, 214. Movatta, by Malik, 114. Jlowallads. poets, 105. Mozar, xlvi. Jlozeina. xlii. xliii. Muallafa Qolubohum (those whose hearts are to be won over), xlviii. Mudlij, Iv ; a tribe of Kinana, iv, 30. Mufti. 130. JMu.^hrib of Almotarrazi (The). 164/. n. IMuheiasa. the murderer of Ibn Sanina. 106, 107. Muir's (Sir W.) Life of Mahomet quoted, i. vi, viii. ix/ n., xxvii. xxviii, xxxi, xxxii, xxxiv, xxxix, xliii. xlvi. xlviii, xlix, 1, Ixvi, Isvii. Ixx, Ixxii, Ixxviii, Ixxx, 9 /. w., 27, 29/ 7i.. 30/ n., 39, 43, 40, 47, 49 /. n., 51, 52, 56, 58/ 71., 64/ ?i., 65, 67, 68/ ti., 69. 72, 73, 75, 76. 78, 82, 83, 85, 89, 91, 93, 97, 98, 99, 102, 106, 108, 109, 110, 111, 112. 113 / n., 138, 140, 160/ n., 170, 178, 180, 181, 187, 188, 193, 196, 197, 198, 200, 201, 205, 210, 212, 214, 216, 217, 218, 219, Mujanna, xlviii. Mujbool, 134. JIujtahid. 137, 160. Mukwhumites (The), xxsiii. MuTitafiq. Ivi. Muraisia, xviii. ' 242 Index. Murra. xiii, xlv, xlvi, Ivi, 15, 39, Mursul. 109/. n. Musa-biu-Akba, xxii. Musab. 78. Mustalik, xii. xviii ; a branch of Khozaa, xxiii, 12 ; released without ransom, 86. 196. Muta, Expedition to, 138. Mut-im, 7. N. Nadhirbin Harith, 76, 77 — 78. Naeem, 13. Najashee. xxxiii. Najd, xii. 12 ; the Bedouin tribes of, xli, xlii, xliii, 89, 196, 199, 200; celebrated for Baui Tamim, xlvii. Najran, The Christians of, xxxiii, 37, 48. Nakha, Ivi. Nakhla. the Jinns converted at, xxxv, xxxvi, 30, 56. Nasaee. 207, 21.".. 216. Nations, The battle of, 13. Nazeer treasoued against Medina, xii, xlii, 34, 66, 71 ; its chief, 72; the expulsion of. 108 — 110. Nazr, xxxiv. 78. Nihayeh of Ibu-al-Atheer. 164/. n. Nineteenth century (The) quoted, 158. Nineveh, xxxv. Nisibin, xxxv. Noavee, 214. Nohd. Ivi. Notes on Muhammadanism. by Revd. T. P. Hughes, 154. Nueim, his alleged employment to breakup the confederates who had besieged Medina, 101 — 105. Numbers, xxxi. 153. Nuraddin Ali-al-Halabi quoted and refuted, 129 — 132. O. Obada-bin-Samat, 58/. n, Obeida, 29, 55. Ohad, Battle of, vii. xii, xviii, xxii, xlii, xlvii, 10, 11, 34, 69, 197, Okaz, xlviii, Okba bin Mueit, 76, 79—81. Oman, li. Omar, 83, 196, 202. Omar bin Asim. 209. Omar ibn al Ghallas, 209. Omar ibn al Hakara, 201. Omeir, 02, 03. Index. 243 Omeya bin Kh.ilf, 56. Omiyyiads, xxxiii. 0mm Kirfa, yi. 0mm Rabab, 203. Ommara, 80. Oneis, 7.3. Orfce, 170. Orna. 69. Osaba-fi-Tamiz Issahaba. 68/. n. Osborn, R. D., Major, quoted, 42, 62 ; refuted, Ixviii, Ixxxv, Ixxxvii, Ixxxviii, Ixxxix, H6 — 149. Oseir ibu Zarim. the chief of Nazeer of Khyber, 39, 01, 72-7;5. O.sheira, Expedition of, 29, 56. Osman. the Moslem envoy to Mecca, xv. Osman, 80, 196. O.sman bin Affan, 89. Osman bin Zaed, 91 /. n, Otheil, 78/. n. Oyoon-al Asar, 89. Ozra, xxxiv, Ivi, Ivii. P. Palmer's (H.) Translation of the Koran quoted, 172. 17.3. 174, 175, 176, 178. 179, 180. 181, 182, 18:5. 184, 18-5, 186. 188, 189, 190, 191. Patriarchal form of Government at Mecca, iii. Pargod (Veil), xxxviii. People of the Book (Kitabi), 157. Persia, The Empire of, loS. Persecution of the early Moslems, 1 ; noticed in the Koran, 2 — 4 ; their historical summary. 5 ; of the jMediua converts. 9 ; of the Moslems by the Koreish after their flight from Mecca, 9 ; of the Koreish at Mecca, 225. Philistines, 152. Pilgrimage, 14, 178. Pilgrims. 8. Poets Jahili, Mokhadrams, Islami. and Mowallads, 165. Poole, S. L., quoted, Ixxxv. 61, 97-98. Prisoners of war defined, 76. Puffeudorf, 70. Punishment. Forms of primitive, 94-95. Pyrenees, 169. Q. Qadr, 220. Qalqashandi's Dictionary of Arab tribes, xxxiv, Qarashi, 214. R. Rabia, The Bani Abd-ul-Kays, the descendants of, xlvii. 244 Index. Radd-nl Muhtar of Ibn Abdeen, 127. Raha, Ivii. Rahrahan, Battle of, xli. Raid of a Koreish chief upon Medina, 11. of Bani Asad and Bani Lahyan, 12. of Bani Duma, 12. Rajab, 56. Raji, xii. 12, 39, 74. Rajm, Meaning of, xxxviii. Ramzan, 23/. n., 32, 53. Rawasa, Ivii. Red Sea, 5.. Reforms, The proposed, political, social, and legal, 113/. n., 158/. n. Resurrection, The day of, and Jihad, 133. Rifaa, a Koreishite, 88 /. n. Rihana. 201. Ril, a clan of Bani Aamir, xlvi. Robbers, The Uruee, 92— 9."i. Rodwell's Translation of the Koran quoted, 120 /.M.,1C7. 172, 173. 174, 175, 176, 178, 179, 180, 181. 182, 183, 184, 185, 186, 188, 189, 190, 191. Rojiim (conjecture), xxxviii. Romans. The expedition against them, 40-41. Rome. The Empire of, 138. Romulus, 145. S. Saad, xiii. xlii. Saad Hozeim, Ivii. Saad ibn Bakr. xiii, xl, xliii, xlv. Sabaya, 197— 2C0. Sabit. 215. Sad, 35 ; his judgment, 37-38, 55, 198, 199. Sad bin Obadah, 89. Sadif, Ivii. Sadoos. Ivii. Sadr Av-val (the Apostolic Age), 109. Saeed, 83. Saeed bin Mansoor, 215. Saffah-al-Mahdi, 212. Safra, 31. Safwan bin Omayya, 113. Saheeh, 198. Saheeh Bokharee, 68. Saheeh of Moslim, 86. Sahim, Ivii. Sahm, xxxiii/, n. Index. 245 Rakeef, Ivii. Sakiflfces (The), xviii. xxxvi. Salaba, xlvi. Saliimani. Iviii. Sale, G., his Trauslation of the Korau. xxix ; quoted. 14:? — 140, 172, 17:?, 174, 175, 176, 178. 17'.), 180, 181, 182, 184, 185, 180, 188, 189. 190, 191. Saleim, xii, xiii, 15 /. n. Salim, 65/. m. Sallam ibn Abul Hokeik, Abu Raf e, 7 1 . Sam-ain, 215 /. n. Samaritan, 157. Samuel. 152. Saraya, Meaning of, xxi. Sawad, 130. Sayute'.s History of Caliphs, 212/. n., 215/ n. Schedim (Demons), xxxviii. Seeker. Archbishop, quoted, 27. Seerat Halabi, 80/ n.. 81/ n., 100/ «., 102/ n. Seerat Shamee. 63, 100/ n. Seerat-ul-Mohammadiya, 100. Seleucas, xxxv. Self-defence, Right of, xxv. Shaban, 53. Shahbudeen Ahmed bin Hajr Makki. quoted and refuted, 128-129. Shaiban, Iviii. Shaitain, Battle of. xxviii, xlii. Shamee. 100. Shamsuddin Karmani. 68 / n. Sarakhsee Suras-ul-Aimma (the sun of leaders), 126 — 128. Shaw-wal, 23. Sheb, the quarter of Abu Taleb, 6. Sheb Jabala, Battle of. xli. Sheikh Mohammad Al Tamartashi, 170. Sihab of Jouhari. 1G3, 164. Slane, De, Barou MacGuckin, 135 — 137. Slavery and concubine-slaves as concomitant evils of war, 193 — 224 : slavery and concubinage not allowed in the Koran. 193 ; Sir W. Muir quoted, 193 ; measures taken by Mohammad in the Koran to abolish slavery, 194 — 196 ; none of the prisoners of war was enslaved, 197-198 ; the Bani Koreiza not enslaved, 198 — 200 ; Omar the second Khalif liberated all Arab slaves, 202-203. Smith, Bosworth, quoted, i, xxvii, 143. Smith's (W.) Dictionary of the Bible, xxxvi. Sodaa, Iviii. Soffian Ath-Thauri, 136-137. Sofia, 197, 198. H 2 240 Inde.T. Sofian ibn Khalid. 61. 69— 71. Sofian ibn Oyaiua, 136, 137. Sofian Sowri, 134. Sohail. 93/ n. Soleiman-al-Aaraash. 210. SpMer, Tlie (Sura). 180. Spoil.^i, The (Sura), 182, 183. Spreuger. Dr., Life of Mahomet quoted, xxix, xxxiii. I 79. Stanley defended. 112. Stephens, The Revd.. quoted, Ixxv, 141-142. Stobartquoted, Ixviii, 2, 52. Strabo. xxxv. Suleim, xii, xiii. xlii, slv, xlvi, 12. Sura II, xvi, xxvi, xxvii, 3,10, 18-19, 42/ «.. 44. 49. 50, 51, 1 11, 116 / w.. 118, 120/ n., 121, 122, 123, 124, 126, 127, 128, 130, 132, 133, 134, 152, 156, 166, 171/ n., 173/ «., 181, 194, 225, Sura III, xii, 3, 50, 166, 174, 182, 225, 226. Sura IV, XV, xl, 4, 10, 19-21, 50, 95, 111, 113, 118, 122, 142,154, 155, 166-167, 172, 174, 184, 195, 203, 204, 219, 225. Sura V, xxvi, xxxiii, 42 /. n., 50, 122, 130, 166, 167, 191, 195, 203, 204. Sura VI, 122, 154, 166, 167, 174, 176, 183. Sura VII, 122. Sura VIII, viii. ix, x, xv, xvi, xxvi, 5, 21, 22, 35-36, 45, 51, 118, 121, 122, 124, 134, 147, 166, 167, 174, 182, 183, 2.19, 225 226. Sura IX (Sura Barat), xi, xvii, xix, xx, I, 4, 16, 22, 25, 36-37, 42 / 71.. 51—55, 118, 121, 122, 123, 125, 126, 127, 128, 129, 131, 132, 133. 143, 147 149-1.50, 159, 166-167, 172, 173, 175, 176, 185, 188,189,190,191,195. 225, 226, 227, Sura XI. 219. Sura XV, xxxvi, xxxvii, xxxviii, 122, 127, 220. Sura XVI, 2, 3, 122, 127, 130, 16G, 167, 173, 180, 225. Sura XVIII, xxxviii. 42/ n., 130. Sura XIX, xxxviii, 219. Sura XX, 171/ n. Sura XXII, vi, 1, 3, 17. 118, 122, 127, 128, 166, 167, 173, 178. 225. Sura XXIV, iv, xviii, .50, 131, 166, 167, 185, 194, 203, 204. Sura XXV, 166, 167, 173, 175, 177. Sura XXVI, xxxvii. xxxviii. Sura XXIX, 166, 167, 170, 171/ n., 172, 173, 179, 180. Sura XXXI, 130, 166, 167, 173, 177. Sura XXXII, xxxvii. xxxviii. Sura XXXIII, 37. 89, 199, 216, 218, 219, 220, 222, 226. Sura XXXV. 166, 167, 173, 181. Sura XL, 167. Sura XLI, xxxviii, 167. Sura XLVI, xxxv, 167. p Index. 247 Sura XLVII, xxvii. 85, Ul. 117. 1(34, 15(5, IGO. Uil, l. 107. 174, 184, I'Jo. 1!)6. 197, 225, 22G. Sura XLVIII. xv, xvi, xl. ICO. 225. 226. Sura XLIX, 1(50, 1G7, 173, 175, 188. Sura LII. 130. Sura LVIII, 195. Sura LIX, 110, 226. Sura LX. 4. 110, 111, 112/ n.. 166. 225. 226. Sura LXI. 166, 173. 175, 184. 186. Sura LXVI. 166, 185, 211, 214. Sura LXVII, xxxvii. Sura L.'i^XII. xsxvi. xxxvii, 18()/. n. Sura LXXIII. 130, 220. Sura LXXXV. 50. Sura LXXXVI, xxxvi. Sura XC, 194. y^ Sura XC VI. 5. ]) V/ (V Suras, Meccan. 177 — 181. Suras. Medinite. 181 — 191. Surat-al-Moliammad, 154. Surat-un-Nisa. 154. Syed Ameer All Moulvie. M.A., LLB.. 91 /. //. Syria, viii, 30, 40, 89, 140, 200. T. Tabaeen, 209. 21.5-216. Tabakat al Fokaha. 135-136. Tabakat of Ibn Sad Katib Wakidi. 114. Tabari30, 212. Tabi. 135, 136. Tabikha, The ancestors of Baui Tamiui. xlvii. Table, The (Sura). 191. Tabuk, xix, 37/. ii. ; the last expedition of Mohammad against. 40. Tafseer Majma-ul-Bayan Tabarasee, 116/.//., 187. Taghlib, Iviii. Taimee. Okba executed at. 80. Tajahada, 164. Tiijeeb. Iviii. Takreeb. 210, 215. Tamim (The), xxvii, xxxiv, xli. xlvi. Iviii Tanfeel, 7, 196. Taavir-al Absar, 170. Tariq (Comet or night comer), x.xxvi. Tay. xxxix, xliii, Iviii. Tayif, xxii; Mohamm.ad preaches at, xxxiv ; sacrilegious wai at. xli. Taym bin Morra. xxxiii. Testament, The Old, 153. 248 Index. Thakeef, Ivii, 16. Theseus, 145. Tirmizee, 113, 207. TojahJdoona, 166, Tradition (a niursal). 100/. n. Traditions quoted and refuted. 133. Tried. The (Sura), 186. Tuhfat-ul-Muhtaj fi Sharah-al-Minhaj. 129/. n. Tuleiba, chief of Bani Asad bin Khozeima, xlvii. U. Urnee Robbers, 92—95. Urquhart, 137. Us Tayif, xxxvi. Usseya, a clan of Bani Aamir. xlvi. Uyeiua, the chief of the Bani Fezara. xiii. xlvi. Y. Vans Kennedy, Major, quoted, 28. Von Kemer's History of Mohammad's Campaigns, 90/ v., 102. W. Wady-al-Koraa, The Jews of, xiii, xliii. Wahid, 83. Wajib (Legal), Jihad not. 134. Waki ibn al-Jarrah, 221. Wakidi, 29/ n., 30. 63. 64. 74. 78/ «., 80 / n., 31 /. «., 91 ; Campaigni' of Mohammad, xliii. 102, 197. 200, 201, 205, 206, 208, 212, 221. Wars of Mohammad, their defensive nature, ii. Weil, Dr.. 63. Wheaton's International Law, 70/ ii. Wherry, The Kevd. E. IM.. quoted, 150—152, 154/. n. Wolff, 70/ 11. Woman, The (Sura), 184. Y. Yafa-ee, 210. Yahya, 213. Yahya bin Hammad, 210. Yahya bin Moin, 221. Yahya bin Saeed al Ansaree, 68. Yakoob bin Mohammad, 208. Yemama, Ii. Yenbo,the abode of Bani Joheina, xliii. Yemen, xxxix, Ii. Yezid bin Abi Shaiba, 133. Yojahido, 106, 179. Index. 249 Yojahidoo, 16G, ITG. 190. Yojahidoona, 166, 176, 191. Yoseir bin Razim (Oseir bin Zarim). 72/. n. Yoslemoon, IGO. Z. Z;ifl-al-ma:id of Ibu al Kyyiin, lOO./'. n. Zahabi, 215. Zakawi'iu, a clan of Bani Aamir, xlvi. Zalkada, 14, 23/. n., 53. Zamaa, 3i. Zamra. iv. Zamakbshire, 163, 213, Zat-al-Rikaa, xii, 196. Zat Atlab, 15/ n. Zeid killed Moavia, 81. Zeid. the adopted son of Mohammad, and his? connection with Zeinab, 215, 216, 217, 218, 222. Zeid bin Arqam, xxii. Zeid bin Aslam, 215. Zeid bin Haris, seized and plundered by the Bani Fezara, xiii. Zeid Monat, xxxiv. Zeinab, 113, 211 ; her story, 215-216 ; the story of Mohammad's amour, a spurious one, 216; Sir W. Muir's conjectures about her, not justi- fied, 218 ; in her case no exceptional privilege was secured to Moham- mad, 220 ; the false story traced to Mukatil, 222. Zu Towa, the Koreish encamped at, xv. Zil Kassa, a party of Moslems slain at, xiii. Zobeid, Iviii. Zobeir, a Koreishite, 88, 96. Zobian, xli, xiii, xlvi. Zohak, 80. Zohak ibn Muzahim, 215. Zohra, xxxiii. Zohri, 128, 209. Zorkanee, 80/. n. ; on'Mooahib, 93, 100, 109/ n,, 110/ «. Zu-kar, Battle of, xli. Zulhij. 23/ ?t., 53. Zul-Kada, xiii. 23/ n. Zul-Majaz, xlviii. /! '^/ 15738YC. 311 05-01-03 32180 MS Princeton Theological Seminary Libraries 1 1012 01279 4733